Bibliotek

Sök aktuell litteratur inom anhörigområdet

Sökresultat

Din sökning på resulterade i 8018 träffar

How older adults and the informal carers prevent falls: An integrative review of the literature

Wilkinson A, Meikle N, Law P, Yong HJ, Butler P, Kim J. (2018)

Abstract
Falls in older persons are prevalent and costly for the individual and the health system. Falls prevention guidelines have been developed from best evidence to minimise falls in older persons.

Aim: To synthesise the literature on falls prevention strategies used by community dwelling older persons and/or their informal carers and to compare the commonly adopted strategies with those recommended by falls prevention guidelines.

Data sources: Health sciences databases for full text articles published in English plus reference list searching of included articles.

Review method: An integrative review approach. Studies were included if they identified fall prevention management strategies used by community dwelling older adults and/or their informal carers. Quality appraisal was undertaken using appropriate Joanna Briggs Institute critical appraisal tools. Information relevant to the aim of the review were extracted and coded into categories then inductively sorted into sub-themes and themes.

Results: Of the seventeen studies included in the review, eleven identified older adults' falls prevention strategies, two investigated fall prevention strategies used by carers, and four explored perspectives of older persons together with their carers, representing the perspectives of an estimated 501 older persons and 102 carers. Strategies used by older adults arose because of self-awareness about their changing physical ability, and advice and support mainly from family or friends. Carer fall prevention strategy was predominantly around protection of the older adult from falling by discouraging independence.

Conclusions: The fall self-management strategies adopted by older adults and their carers to prevent falls, in the main, do not align with international best practice fall prevention guidelines.

Hur bedömer man behov som kolliderar? En kvalitativ vinjett- och inervjustudie om biståndshandläggares hantering av etiska dilemman i ärenden där makar har olika behov och önskemål

Juslin Ellen (2015)

Det övergripande syftet med denna studie är att genom undersökning och analys söka en
förståelse för hur individens självbestämmande beaktas och hur intressemotsättningar mellan
makar hanteras av några av Stockholms stads biståndshandläggare. Studien fokuserar på
intressemotsättningar i form av att den ena maken/makan vill bo kvar hemma medan den
andra maken/makan inte orkar med den påfrestning det innebär att ha en vårdkrävande
make/maka i hemmet. Studien innefattas av tio av Stockholms stads biståndshandläggares
ageranden och reflektioner kring de etiska dilemman som uppstår i ärenden där makars behov
och/eller åsikter om stödinsatser kolliderar. Syftet kan benas upp i följande övergripande
frågeställningar:
- Hur reflekterar handläggare kring självbestämmande för en hjälpbehövande äldre
person och kring stöd till maken/makan?
- Hur reflekterar handläggare kring möjliga ageranden då den äldre personen och
dennes makes/makas åsikter går isär?
- Hur uppfattar biståndshandläggare handlingsutrymmet för att kunna stödja båda den
äldre och dennes make/maka?

Hur hjälper jag mitt barn?

Tytti Solantaus, Antonia Ringbom (2007)

Boken vänder sig till psykiskt sjuka föräldrar och försöker förklara de känslor och reaktioner barnet kan ha inför föräldrarnas svårigheter. Man tar upp skuldkänslor och skam samt uppmuntrar till att söka hjälp från någon annan vuxen eller t ex barnavårdscentralen.

Hur kan kommuner planera för äldres boende nu och i framtiden? : Resultat och erfarenheter från projektet Inte(GR)erad bostadsplanering med fokus på äldre

Nordenhielm, S (2012)

Idag finns inte tillräckligt med goda och tillgängliga bostäder som kan möta behoven hos en åldrande befolkning. Kommunerna äger frågan om bostadsplaneringen för äldre, men vilken kunskap och information behöver kommunerna för att kunna planera för goda och attraktiva bostäder för äldre? Och hur kan den kunskapen hämtas in? I projektet Inte(GR)erad bostadsplanering med fokus på äldre har FoU i Väst/GR, GR Planering och GR-kommunerna Ale, Härryda, Kungälv, Mölndal och Tjörn samverkat kring dessa frågor. I denna skrift sammanfattas arbetssätt, resultat och erfarenheter från projektet.

Hur många barn växer upp med föräldrar som har alkoholproblem? – Resultat från en systematisk litteraturöversikt

Ramstedt Mats (red) (2019)

Sammanfattning
Mot bakgrund av osäkerheten om hur många barn i Sverige som växer upp med föräldrar som
har alkoholproblem genomfördes en litteraturöversikt inom området av den internationella
vetenskapliga litteraturen och av den nordiska "grå litteraturen", dvs. studier som inte publicerats i vetenskapliga tidskrifter. Tanken var att resultaten i dessa översikter skulle ligga till
grund för att ta fram skattningar av hur stor denna grupp av utsatta barn är i Sverige idag.
Översikten identifierade endast 23 vetenskapliga studier som skattat hur många barn som växer
upp med föräldrar som har alkoholproblem. Dessa studier var begränsade till USA, Norden och
Storbritannien. Genomgången av nordisk grå litteratur identifierade ytterligare 9 studier.

Hur påverkas vuxna barn av att ha en åldrande förälder?

Norén, Anna (2020)

Sammanfattning
Denna rapport undersöker hur vuxna barns arbetsutbud och hälsa påverkas av att ha en åldrande förälder i behov av omvårdnad. I uppsatsen undersöks det ökade omvårdnadsbehovet dels under föräldrars sista år i livet och dels som följd av en stroke. Effekten av att ha en åldrande förälder med förhöjt omvårdnadsbehov studeras genom att jämföra söners och döttrars sysselsättning, inkomst och hälsa före och efter det att föräldern dör respektive får en stroke. Studien visar att sysselsättning och inkomst sjunker något under förälderns sista år i livet, men att effekten är störst under det år, och året efter, förälderns död. Det finns också tecken på att döttrars sjukskrivning ökar det år föräldern avlider. Däremot påverkas inte sysselsättning och inkomst bland vuxna barn till föräldrar som drabbas av stroke. Det finns heller inga tydliga könsskillnader i effekterna. Sammantaget tyder resultaten på förälderns omsorgsbehov har en begränsad påverkan på vuxna söners och döttrars arbetsutbud.

Hypnosis treatment of sleeping problems in children experiencing loss

Hawkins, P. & Polemikos, N. (2002)

There is considerable research and clinical evidence that children who experience loss become traumatized. The results of traumatization include sleeping problems, for example difficulties in initiating sleep and sleep terrors. Psychological intervention programmes, including hypnotherapy, have been shown to have some success in helping children to overcome their sleeping problems. In the present study, a new paradigm qualitative methodology was used in which a small group of children were taught self-hypnosis to manage their sleep difficulties. Within the group, the children's experiences of utilizing self-hypnosis at home were discussed, and a consensus reached concerning its effects. Complementary data were collected through interviews with caregivers and by completion of the Southampton Sleep Management Schedule (Bartlet and Beaumont, 1998). From the study it was concluded that young children can be taught self-hypnosis in order to manage their sleeping problems effectively. Furthermore, the present study demonstrated that children can be involved in a collaborative research group.

Hälsa och välbefinnande för barn och ungdomar med funktionsnedsättning - En vägledning genom WHO:s hälsoklassifikation ICF-CY

Adolfsson Margareta (2015)

Ett barns hälsa och välbefinnande bestäms av så mycket mera än att vara fri från sjukdom. Världshälsoorganisationen (WHO) beskriver hälsa som fysiskt, psykiskt och socialt välbefinnande. Detta visar att ett barn med funktionsnedsättning kan må bra om det ges förutsättningar att fungera i de miljöer där barnet vistas regelbundet. Ett barns vardagsfungerande kan bedömas och beskrivas på ett allsidigt sätt med stöd av WHO:s hälsoklassifikation Internationell klassifikation av funktionstillstånd, funktionshinder och hälsa, barn- och ungdomsversionen, ICF-CY. Den bidrar med en modell som fokuserar på funktionella beskrivningar av barnets vardagssituationer som ett nödvändigt komplement till en diagnos. Eftersom en diagnos aldrig kan ge information om ett individuellt barns fungerande, behövs det funktionella perspektivet vid planering av åtgärder som kagöra ett barn mera delaktigt i olika aktiviteter. Socialstyrelsen förordar en ökad användning av klassifikationen, vilket har gjort att många verksamheter, som arbetar med barn och ungdomar, utvecklar arbetsmodeller som bygger på ICF-CY. Därför behöver föräldrar, liksom alla andra som finns runt ett barn med funktionsnedsättning, kunskap om den värdegrund som bildar bas för hälsoklassifikationen.
Kunskapsöversikten vägleder läsaren genom ICF-CY och lyfter fram exempel på hur den kan bidra till en överblick över ett barns hälsa och välbefinnande. Vägledningen vill underlätta samverkan genom att belysa hur ICF-CY kan bli en gemensam struktur och ett gemensamt språk för formulering av ett barns problem och behov ur olika synvinklar. Även om de exempel som beskrivs fokuserar på barn, är värdegrunden och innehållet i klassifikationen lika användbart för vuxna. Vägledningen är inte tänkt att läsas i ett streck från början till slut. Innehållet är ordnat i flera delar så att läsaren först ska få en bakgrund med en övergripande information om ICF-CY för att sedan lotsas allt djupare in i såväl modellen som klassifikationen. I slutet presenteras hur klassifikationen kan användas för att definiera ett barns problematik. Förhoppningen är att läsaren ska kunna ta fram skriften och hitta de avsnitt som kan ge ett stöd för att beskriva ett barns aktuella situation och behov inför en habiliteringsplanering, upprättandet av åtgärdsprogram, en vårdbidragsansökan eller vid övergången från en skola till en annan. Den kan på det viset ses som ett uppslagsverk i ämnet barn och ungdomars hälsa och välbefinnande, eller kanske lika gärna, i barn och ungdomars vardagsfungerande.

Hälsans mysterium

Antonovsky, A. (1987)

Den mänskliga tillvaron är full av påfrestningar – motgångar, krav, konflikter och olika slags problem som måste lösas. Vad är det som gör att en del av oss klarar av svåra påfrestningar med hälsan i behåll – och till och med kanske växer och vidareutvecklas av det? Detta är den fråga Antonovsky ställer. Hans svar är att motståndskraften beror på vår känsla av sammanhang, KASAM (på engelska SOC, Sense of Coherence), dvs den utsträckning i vilken vi upplever tillvaron som meningsfull, begriplig och hanterbar. Han diskuterar hur denna känsla byggs upp hos barn och vuxna och på vilket sätt den inverkar på vår hälsa. Han presenterar ett testinstrument för att mäta den och han redogör för olika forskningsresultat som stöder hans tes om dess stora betydelse. Boken gavs ut 1991 i Sverige och har sålt i 40.000 exemplar sedan dess. Den har betytt mycket för vändningen inom medicinsk forskning, från en total koncentration på sjukdomsförloppet och patogenesen till ett studium av friskfaktorerna och salutogenesen.

Hälsans mysterium

Antonovsky A. (2005)

Vad är det som gör att en del av oss klarar av även mycket svåra påfrestningar med hälsan i behåll – och kanske till och med växer och vidareutvecklas av dem? Författarens tes är att motståndskraften beror på vår känsla av sammanhang, d v s den utsträckning i vilken vi upplever tillvaron som meningsfull, begriplig och hanterbar.
PinterestTwitter

Hälsoekonomisk studie av barn och vuxna med fetalt alkoholsyndrom

Ericson Lisa, Hovstadius Bo, Magnusson Lennart (2015)

Denna hälsoekonomiska studie är en beräkning av samhällets årliga kostnader för fetalt alkoholsyndrom (FAS) i Sverige. Att dricka alkohol under graviditeten kan skada fostrets utveckling, framför allt utvecklingen av dess hjärna, och kan leda till allvarliga och livslånga funktionsnedsättningar och funktionshinder. FAS ör en medicinsk diagnos som beskriver de skador som kan uppstå då fostret exponeras för alkohol. Den årliga totala samhällskostnaden för FAS år 2014 beräknades till närmare 14,4 miljarder.

Landstingens och kommunernas möjlighet att samverka kring vård och omsorg

Direktiv (1999:42). (1999)

En särskild utredare tillkallas med uppgift att beskriva och analysera de problem som finns i dag vid samverkan mellan landstingens hälso- och sjukvård och kommunernas vård och omsorg på områden där det finns behov och intresse av att samverka. Utredaren skall vidare lämna förslag till lösningar som förbättrar möjligheterna till samverkan mellan kommuner och landsting på dessa områden.

Language development and language disorders

Bloom, L., & Lahey, M. (1978)

This book provides a synthesis of research findings in normal language development as well as a practical approach to the evaluation and treatment of children with language disorders. Its 21 chapters are divided into six topical sections: language description, normal language development, deviant language development, goals of language learning based on normal development, correlates of language disorders, and facilitating language learning. Each chapter concludes with a summary and a list of suggested readings. The book includes appendixes that set forth conventions for transcription of child language recordings and video recorded data, present definitions of language content categories, and list instruments for assessing language and language-related behaviors. An extensive bibliography of related resources and author and subject indexes are also provided. (GW)

Language within our grasp

Rizzolatti, G. and M. A. Arbib (1998)

In monkeys, the rostral part of ventral premotor cortex (area F5) contains neurons that discharge, both when the monkey grasps or manipulates objects and when it observes the experimenter making similar actions. These neurons (mirror neurons) appear to represent a system that matches observed events to similar, internally generated actions, and in this way forms a link between the observer and the actor. Transcranial magnetic stimulation and positron emission tomography (PET) experiments suggest that a mirror system for gesture recognition also exists in humans and includes Broca's area. We propose here that such an observation/execution matching system provides a necessary bridge from'doing' to'communicating',as the link between actor and observer becomes a link between the sender and the receiver of each message.

Neglected victims of murder: children’s witness to parental homicide

Burman, S., & Allen-Meares, P. (1994)

Abstract
Children who witness parental homicides are emotionally traumatized, stigmatized, and deeply scarred by a terrifying event. They often exhibit debilitating symptoms comparable to those of posttraumatic stress disorder. As attention is focused on the deceased and on the perpetrator of the crime, the child witnesses inadvertently become the neglected victims. A case report of two such children who observed their mother being murdered by their father is presented. Theories of psychosocial development and social learning guided the assessment and intervention phases. Behavioral and expressive therapeutic treatment strategies that helped the children work through the resultant anxiety and underlying grief are delineated, and family intervention practices that served to improve interaction and communication patterns are described. Further discussion focuses on the potential intergenerational cycle of violence and on a sociocultural perspective of family violence within an ecological framework.

Neglected victims of murder: children’s witness to parental homicide

Burman, S. & Allen-Meares, P. (1994)

Children who witness parental homicides are emotionally traumatized, stigmatized, and deeply scarred by a terrifying event. They often exhibit debilitating symptoms comparable to those of posttraumatic stress disorder. As attention is focused on the deceased and on the perpetrator of the crime, the child witnesses inadvertently become the neglected victims. A case report of two such children who observed their mother being murdered by their father is presented. Theories of psychosocial development and social learning guided the assessment and intervention phases. Behavioral and expressive therapeutic treatment strategies that helped the children work through the resultant anxiety and underlying grief are delineated, and family intervention practices that served to improve interaction and communication patterns are described. Further discussion focuses on the potential intergenerational cycle of violence and on a sociocultural perspective of family violence within an ecological framework.

Negotiating lay and professional roles in the care of children with complex health care needs

Kirk, Susan (2001)

eywords:
parental involvement;children with complex health care needs;role negotiation;nursing roles;community-based care
Negotiating lay and professional roles in the care of children with complex health care needs

Background. Children with complex health care needs are now being cared for at home as a result of medical advances and government policies emphasizing community-based care. The parents of these children are involved in providing care of a highly technical and intensive nature that in the past would have been the domain of professionals (particularly nurses).

Aims of the paper. To assess how the transfer of responsibility from professionals to parents was negotiated, the tensions and contradictions that can ensue, and the implications for professional nursing roles and relationships with parents.

Design. Using a Grounded Theory methodology, in-depth interviews were conducted with 23 mothers, 10 fathers and 44 professionals to gain insight into the experience of caring for children and supporting families in the community.

Findings. From the parents' perspective, their initial assumption of responsibility for the care of their child was not subject to negotiation with professionals. Prior to discharge, parents' feelings of obligations, their strong desire for their child to come home, and the absence of alternatives to parental care in the community, were the key motivating factors in their acceptance of responsibility for care-giving from professionals. The professionals participating in the study had concerns over whether this group of parents was given a choice in accepting responsibility and the degree of choice they could exercise in the face of professional power. However, it was following the initial discharge, as parents gained experience in caring for their child and in interacting with professionals, that role negotiation appeared to occur.

Conclusion. This study supports other research that has found that professionals' expectations of parental involvement in the care of sick children role can act as a barrier to negotiation of roles. In this study, parental choice was also constrained initially by parents' feelings of obligation and by the lack of community services. Nurses are ideally placed to play the central role not only in ensuring that role negotiation and discussion actually occurs in practice, but also by asserting the need for appropriate community support services for families. Being on home territory, and in possession of expertise in care-giving and in managing encounters with professionals, provided parents with a sense of control with which to enter negotiations with professionals. It is important that changes in the balance of power does not lead to the development of parent–professional relationships that are characterized by conflict rather than partnership.

Negotiating needs : processing older persons as home care recipients in gerontological social work practices

Olaison, A. (2009)

The study concerns the needs assessment processes that older persons undergo to gain access to home care. The participation of older persons, their relatives and municipal care managers was studied from a communicative perspective. The assessment meetings functions as formal problem-solving events. The older persons´ accounts are negotiated discursively in interaction. Various storylines are used by the older persons and their relatives whether they view home care as an intrusion, as a complement or as a right. In case of divergent opinions the older person has the final say as prescribed by the Swedish social service act. One conclusion is that the role of relatives is not defined and a family perspective is not present. In the study the institutional structure of the assessment process was also analyzed. Older persons are processed into clients; their needs are fitted within the framework of documentation and institutional categories. In the transfer of talk to text all the particulars are not reflected and two types of documentation was identified; a fact-oriented objective language or an event-oriented personal language. Care management models and a managerialist thinking has influenced the assessment process by bureaucratisation of older people trough people processing, which is in contradiction to the individual-centric perspective prescribed by the law. The introduction of care management models in gerontological social work has lead to an embedded contradiction and constitutes a welfare political dilemma. Improved communicative methods are needed in order to achieve a holistic assessment situation.

Negotiating needs : processing older persons as home care recipients in gerontological social work practices

Olaison, A. (2009)

The study concerns the needs assessment processes that older persons undergo to gain access to home care. The participation of older persons, their relatives and municipal care managers was studied from a communicative perspective. The assessment meetings functions as formal problem-solving events. The older persons´ accounts are negotiated discursively in interaction. Various storylines are used by the older persons and their relatives whether they view home care as an intrusion, as a complement or as a right. In case of divergent opinions the older person has the final say as prescribed by the Swedish social service act. One conclusion is that the role of relatives is not defined and a family perspective is not present. In the study the institutional structure of the assessment process was also analyzed. Older persons are processed into clients; their needs are fitted within the framework of documentation and institutional categories. In the transfer of talk to text all the particulars are not reflected and two types of documentation was identified; a fact-oriented objective language or an event-oriented personal language. Care management models and a managerialist thinking has influenced the assessment process by bureaucratisation of older people trough people processing, which is in contradiction to the individual-centric perspective prescribed by the law. The introduction of care management models in gerontological social work has lead to an embedded contradiction and constitutes a welfare political dilemma. Improved communicative methods are needed in order to achieve a holistic assessment situation.

Negotiating needs. Processing Older Persons as Home Care Recipients in Gerontological Social Work Practices

Olaison, A. (2009)

The study concerns the needs assessment processes that older persons undergo to gain access to home care. The participation of older persons, their relatives and municipal care managers was studied from a communicative perspective. The assessment meetings functions as formal problem-solving events. The older persons´ accounts are negotiated discursively in interaction. Various storylines are used by the older persons and their relatives whether they view home care as an intrusion, as a complement or as a right. In case of divergent opinions the older person has the final say as prescribed by the Swedish social service act. One conclusion is that the role of relatives is not defined and a family perspective is not present. In the study the institutional structure of the assessment process was also analyzed. Older persons are processed into clients; their needs are fitted within the framework of documentation and institutional categories. In the transfer of talk to text all the particulars are not reflected and two types of documentation was identified; a fact-oriented objective language or an event-oriented personal language. Care management models and a managerialist thinking has influenced the assessment process by bureaucratisation of older people trough people processing, which is in contradiction to the individual-centric perspective prescribed by the law. The introduction of care management models in gerontological social work has lead to an embedded contradiction and constitutes a welfare political dilemma. Improved communicative methods are needed in order to achieve a holistic assessment situation.

Negotiating needs. Processing Older Persons as Home Care Recipients in Gerontological Social Work Practices.

Olaison, A. (2009)

Studien tar sin utgångspunkt i de bedömningsprocesser äldre personer genomgår för att få tillgång till hjälp i hemmet. Bedömningsprocessen där äldre, deras anhö-riga och kommunala behovsbedömare deltog studerades ur ett kommunikativt perspektiv. Interaktionen vid behovsbedömningssamtalet fungerar som en pro-blemlösningsprocess. Den äldre personens redogörelse för behov förhandlas diskursivt i interaktionen och tre olika berättelselinjer identifierades, baserade på om de sökande betraktar hemtjänsten som ett intrång, som ett komplement och stöd eller som en rättighet. När olika åsikter uttrycks har de äldre sista ordet i enlighet med Socialtjänstlagens föreskrifter. En slutsats är att de anhörigas roll i behovsbedömningsprocessen inte är definierad och att ett familjeperspektiv sak-nas. I studien analyserades också bedömningsprocessens institutionella struktur. De äldre behovssökande processas till att bli klienter, deras behov anpassas till dokumentationens ramverk och kategoriseras i enlighet med institutionella kate-gorier. I transfereringen av tal till text redovisas inte samtliga element i samtalet. Två typer av utredningstext identifierades, den faktaorienterade och den händelse-orienterade. I studien diskuteras det marknadsekonomiska tänkande som kommit att påverka bedömningsprocessen genom byråkratisering vilket står i motsatsställ-ning till det individcentrerade perspektiv som lagen förespråkar. Introduktionen av marknadsmodeller i det gerontologiska sociala arbetet har medfört en inbyggd motsättning och utgör ett välfärdspolitiskt dilemma. Förbättrade kommunikativa metoder behövs för att uppnå en holistisk bedömningsprocess.

Nere för räkning, eller ... : om livet med ett svårt sjukt barn

Jansson Eva (2011)

Den här boken handlar om en familj med ett svårt hjärnskadat barn och två friska småsyskon. Boken beskriver deras nioåriga resa. Vi får följa och lära oss om en liten men viktig grupp barn, känna ilska och sorg men också mycket hopp, glädje och stolthet. Vi följer familjens vardag i motgång och medgång. Kampen för en så bra vård som möjligt och ett innehållsrikt liv för den svårt hjärnskadade dottern. Vi får ta del av syskonens och föräldrarnas känslor och får en inblick i hur det är att leva med assistenter i hemmet under dygnets alla timmar. Boken berör många områden och det märks att författaren har fått möta mycket under åren.
Läs och upplev hur någonting som från början ser mycket mörkt ut blir allt ljusare. En stark och engagerande bok med fokus på möjligheter.

Neuropsychological assessment (4th ed.).

Lezak, M. D. (2004)

Known as "the bible" in its field, this classic text is an essential resource for students learning the field of clinical neuropsychology
This text provides timeless descriptions of all of the major syndromes, and updated information on assessment techniques and treatment
Suitable for use by professionals for clinical care and research, in educational settings for teaching and training, and by neuroscientists in many fields for reference information
Each of the authors has a unique clinical expertise, and all chapters are co-written
The book provides an up-to-date review of the current neuroscience research and clinical neuropsychology practice with many new references.
New to this Edition:

The new edition features structural and functional neuroimages in a color plate section
The new edition inludes newly developed testing batteries for specific issues such as frontal lobe and executive function evaluation

Newborns with impairment: Discourses of Hospital Staff

Vehkakoski, Tanja (2007)

The birth of a baby with an impairment goes against dominant cultural ideals about a happy event. Therefore, the interaction between professionals and parents is particularly important, from the hospital maternity ward to the home. In this article, the author examines both the representations of neonatal impairments constructed by professionals and the consequent subject positions for these babies with impairments. The study is based on interview data collected among 19 staff members of one Finnish county hospital. The author analyzed the data by means of qualitative discourse analysis and concludes that it would be important for health care professionals to provide many-sided elements for parents to consider in the construction of the image of their baby other than traditional tragically and negatively biased cultural interpretations.

Next of kin’s conceptions of the quality of care in psychiatric setting: A phenomenographic study

Schröder, Agneta, Wilde-Larsson, Bodil & Ahlström, Gerd (2007)

The next of kin play a decisive role in the care provided for patients. This and their unique experience of psychiatric care make it important to include them when defining quality of care. The aim of the present study was to describe how next of kin perceive the concept of quality of care in the case of psychiatric care. Twelve next of kin were included in a qualitative interview study and a phenomenographic approach was used for the analysis of the interviews. The next of kin described quality of care mainly from their own perspective but also to a large extent from the patient's perspective as well. Five descriptive categories resulted: dignity, security, participation, recovery, and health-promoting surroundings. Good relations and communication between staff, patients, and next of kin emerged as the central factors regarding the quality of psychiatric care. The next of kin asked for information about psychiatric illnesses and wanted to cooperate in the care. They avoid telling others about their family member's psychiatric illness because of a feeling of shame and guilt. Staff education regarding such feelings and stigmatization could be useful in furthering the understanding of the next of kin's distress and developing interventions to alleviate it. Clinical practice can be improved by guidelines and instruments developed on the basis of this study.

Next-of-kin's conceptions of medical technology in palliative homecare

Munck B, Sandgren A, Fridlund B, Mårtensson J. (2012)

Aims and objectives. Describe next-of-kin's conceptions of medical technology in palliative homecare. Background. Next-of-kin to palliative patients are in an exposed position with increasing responsibility. The more involved they are in the care, the greater caregiver burden they describe. Medical technology has become increasingly common in palliative homecare, and previous research suggests that the devices transform the homes to a hospital ward, thus shifting responsibility from the personnel to the next-of-kin. Design. An explorative descriptive design with a phenomenographic approach was chosen to describe qualitatively different conceptions of the phenomenon medical technology. Method. Interviews with 15 next-of-kin to patients in palliative homecare were analysed in a seven-step process where 10 conceptions emerged in five description categories. Results. Medical technology in palliative homecare required next-of-kin's responsibility in monitoring or providing practical help. It also implied uncertainty among the next-of-kin because of worries about its safety or because of an improper handling. The technology trespassed on daily life because it restricted and affected the private sphere. Medical technology enabled comfort as it implied security and was a prerequisite for the patient to be cared for at home. It also required an adjustment to comprehend and manage the medical technology. Conclusions. Medical technology resulted in an increased caregiver burden and uncertainty among the next-of-kin. Although it meant restrictions and affected their social life, they had great confidence in its possibilities. Relevance to clinical practice. It is important to limit the amount of personnel and materials in the home to avoid trespassing on the family's daily life. Medical personnel also have to be sensitive to what next-of-kin have the strength to do and not use them as informal caregivers.

Nondirective counseling. Effects of short training and individual characteristics of clients [Akademisk avhandling].

Rautalinko E. (2004)

Nondirective counseling is to listen, support, and advise, without directing a client's course of action. It has been influenced by humanistic theories in the tradition of Carl Rogers, but techniques used in nondirective counseling are common in many forms of psychological counseling and treatment today. There are, however, few conclusions as to what the results of training nondirective counseling are. The purpose of the present thesis is to examine effects of nondirective counseling training, and to analyze how such effects are moderated by the characteristics of clients. Three quasi-experimental or experimental studies (Paper I­III) are presented. In Paper I, trained and untrained insurance company employees were compared on their Reflective listening (RL; a subskill of nondirective counseling) skills before and after a training program. Training increased RL, and the skills were transferred to authentic settings. Trained employees were, however, not evaluated differently than untrained. In Paper II, psychology students were compared before and after RL training of three time lengths. All training times increased skills equally, but clients disclosed more information to those with longer training, the students remembered the information better, and external judges perceived the therapeutic relationship as better, especially if the judge was socially competent. In Paper III, two nondirective counseling techniques, RL and open-ended questions, were evaluated by judges who differed in social skills and cognitive ability. RL received positive ratings, whereas open-ended questions did not, and the judges' ratings were moderated by their social skills and cognitive ability. In the Discussion, it is proposed that even short training has effects, that trained skills generalize to authentic contexts, but that the usefulness of the examined subskills of nondirective counseling depends on client characteristics such as social skills and cognitive ability.

Nonverbal narratives: Listening to people with severe intellectual disability

Dennis, R. (2002)

This article describes an exploratory study that examined the perspectives of practitioners who spend much of their working day listening to and in some ways "interpreting" for people with severe intellectual disabilities. On the basis of focus group interviews with 23 professional disability-sector workers, including speech therapists, psychologists, and human service workers, the article reports on the importance of a practitioner's values and experience in successful interactions with individuals who rely on self-developed nonsymbolic communication repertoires. The article includes a discussion of the likelihood of including individuals with severe intellectual disabilities in narrative research.

Normaliseringsprincipen

Nirje, Bengt (2003)

ormaliseringsprincipen handlar om funktionshindrades rätt till livsvillkor och vardagsmönster som ligger så nära de normala som möjligt. Sedan principen formulerades av Bengt Nirje i slutet av 1960-talet har den haft ett stort inflytande på handikappolitiken både i Sverige och i andra länder. Nirje har under årens lopp i artiklar på engelska presenterat och utvecklat principen. I denna bok presenteras dessa artiklar i uppdaterat skick för första gången på svenska och samlade i ett verk.

Principen utgår från att alla individers jämlikhet med den därav följande etiken som grund under livets gång. Särskilt nyskapande blev Nirjes betoning av utvecklingsstördas rätt till självbestämmande.

Principen är tvärvetenskaplig och kan därför studeras av högskolestuderande inom pedagogik, psykologi, socialpsykologi, kulturantropologi, sociologi samt omsorgsvetenskap. Den kan även vara av intresse för yrkesverksamma samt föräldrar till funktionshindrade.

Normaliseringsprincipen sätts i ett inledande kapitel in i sitt historiska sammanhang av Mårten Söder, som i ett avslutande kapitel även diskuterar dess betydelse för handikappolitik och handikappforskning.

Normbrytande beteende i barndomen. Vad säger forskningen?

Andershed A-K, Andershed H. (2005)

Prognosen för barn som tidigt, före tolv års ålder, börjar med brott och annat normbrytande beteende är dyster. Jämfört med dem som debuterar först i tonåren är det normbrytande beteendet hos dessa individer ofta allvarligare och mer aggressivt. De fortsätter dessutom i högre grad med sitt normbrytande beteende som vuxna. Att hantera denna grupp medför omfattande kostnader för samhället och det finns både humana och ekonomiska vinster att göra med ökad kunskap, tidiga förebyggande insatser och behandling.

Ambitionen med denna bok är att göra internationell forskning i ämnet tillgänglig för en bredare publik. Här presenteras bland annat forskning om diagnostisering, förekomst, orsaks- och riskfaktorer, prognos för framtida problem, samt effektiv prevention och behandling av normbrytande beteende bland barn. Boken vänder sig främst till verksamma inom barn- och ungdomspsykiatri, socialtjänst och skola samt till forskare och studenter inom sociala och beteendevetenskapliga högskoleutbildningar, t.ex. socionom- och psykologprogram.

Normbrytande beteende I barndomen. Vad säger forskningen?

Andershed A-K & Andershed H. (2005)

Prognosen för barn som tidigt, före tolv års ålder, börjar med brott och annat normbrytande beteende är dyster. Jämfört med dem som debuterar först i tonåren är det normbrytande beteendet hos dessa individer ofta allvarligare och mer aggressivt. De fortsätter dessutom i högre grad med sitt normbrytande beteende som vuxna. Att hantera denna grupp medför omfattande kostnader för samhället och det finns både humana och ekonomiska vinster att göra med ökad kunskap, tidiga förebyggande insatser och behandling. Ambitionen med denna bok är att göra internationell forskning i ämnet tillgänglig för en bredare publik. Här presenteras bland annat forskning om diagnostisering, förekomst, orsaks- och riskfaktorer, prognos för framtida problem, samt effektiv prevention och behandling av normbrytande beteende bland barn. Boken vänder sig främst till verksamma inom barn- och ungdomspsykiatri, socialtjänst och skola samt till forskare och studenter inom sociala och beteendevetenskapliga högskoleutbildningar, t.ex. socionom- och psykologprogram.

Nurses' encounters with children as next of kin to parents with a cancer diagnosis on oncology wards

Holmberg, Pär, Nilsson, Johanna, Elmqvist, Carina, Lindqvist, Gunilla (2019)

It is a challenge for registered nurses (RNs) to meet children and young people who have a parent diagnosed with cancer. These children often suffer from shock, anxiety, outrage, fear and stress. Recent studies indicate that when next of kin have a professional person to talk to, their wellbeing increases. Moreover, when these children are involved in their parent's care they also begin to trust the nurse caring for their parent. However, there is little known of how nurses respond to a child's needs. Thus, aim of this study was to describe RNs' experiences of encounters with children as next of kin to a parent diagnosed with cancer. A qualitative descriptive study based on semi-structured group interviews, with a latent content analysis was carried out. One theme, 'sense of security' including three categories 'balanced meeting', 'de-dramatize healthcare' and 'learn from one another' was identified. Beyond the categories, there are six sub-categories: 'sense of insecurity', 'caring approach', 'providing information', 'participation', 'processing and follow-up' and 'increased knowledge'. The findings of this study highlight the importance of strengthening the RN's ability to create a caring relationship with children as next of kin.

Livstillfredsställelse hos äldre, särskilt med nedsatt funktionsförmåga samt informella vårdare. I relation till hälsa, självkänsla, sociala och ekonomiska resurser i ett svenskt och europeiskt perspektiv (Akad. Avh.)

Borg, C (2005)

I relation till hälsa, självkänsla, sociala och ekonomiska resurser i ett svenskt och europeiskt perspektiv. Knowledge of factors contributing to life satisfaction among older people is needed, both in the context of those with reduced self-care capacity and among healthy older people and those providing help to others. Such knowledge may be helpful in developing primary and secondary interventions. The overall aim of this thesis was to investigate life satisfaction and its relation to factors such as physical and mental health and social and financial resources among people (60?89 years old) with and without reduced self-care capacity in six European countries, and among informal caregivers (50?89 years old) in Sweden. The aim was further to investigate the extent, need and type of support provided or desired among informal caregivers. This is part of the cross-national European Study of Adults? Wellbeing (ESAW) including six European countries N=12 478 (the Netherlands, Luxemburg, Italy, Austria, UK and Sweden). The Older Americans? Resources Schedule (OARS), Life Satisfaction Index Z (LSIZ) and Rosenberg self-esteem scale were used. Study I comprised 522 people (65?89 years old) with reduced self-care capacity, study II comprised 151 informal caregivers with a high caregiving extent, 392 with a low caregiving extent and 1258 non-caregivers from the Swedish sample. In study III 2195 people with reduced self-care countries. The data were analysed by descriptive and inferential statistics using non-parametric statistics, logistic and linear regression. Low life satisfaction (LSIZ) was related to higher age, being a woman, high degree of reduced self-care capacity, living in special accommodations, feeling lonely and poor financial resources. Feeling lonely, reduced self-care capacity, feeling worried, poor health and poor financial resources in relation to needs predicted low life satisfaction (Paper I). Frequent caregivers with a high extent of caregiving had lower LSIZ than those with less frequent caregiving and noncaregivers, while no differences were found between less frequent caregivers and non-care caregivers in LSIZ. Lower LSIZ was associated with not being employed, low social resources, not refreshed after a night's sleep, poor health, and frequent caregiving (Paper II). In paper III it was found that there were differences as well as similarities in factors predicting LSIZ in that self-esteem and overall health were important in all countries among older people with reduced self-care capacity and reduced self care capacity in three of six countries, whilst in paper IV four factors were found to be common in all ESAW countries. The factors were social resources, financial resources, feeling greatly hindered by health problems and low self-esteem. Factors of importance for life satisfaction thus seem to differ depending on the personal situation and social and political system. These differences should be taken into account when outlining and providing preventive, rehabilitative and support for these groups.

När allt förändrades

Clarén, Anna (2018)

Sammanfattning
De var en lycklig familj med två barn i det vackraste landet Sverige. När det tredje barnet föddes förändrades allt. Det lilla barnet fick sin diagnos och familjen började kämpa med den nya situationen. Långsamt började familjen falla samman. Fotografen Anna Clarén har använt sin kamera som ett verktyg för dokumentation, men också som terapi och tröst. Resultatet är en djupgående och överväldigande berättelse om en familj och om autism som inte lämnar någon oberörd. Boken är en intim och djupt personlig fotografisk dokumentation av en familj i ett skede när livet plötsligt och fullständigt förändras

När andra sover : hur sömnsvårigheter hos barn med funktionshinder påverkar familjens liv

Stenhammar, Ann-Marie m.fl. (2005)

Riksförbundet för rörelsehindrade barn och ungdomar, RBU, drev projektet "Läggdags" och denna bok är ett resultat av projektet. Den beskriver resultaten av en enkätundersökning som besvarades av femhundra familjer. Många av föräldrarna är konstant trötta, men studien visar att föräldrarna kan få tillbaka sin nattsömn om barnen och de själva får bra stöd. I boken berättar föräldrarna vilket stöd de behöver.

När anhörigvårdare begår övergrepp

Erlingsson, C. (2012)

Vad är det som ligger bakom övergrepp mot en äldre familjemedlem som man vårdar? Är det helt och hållet situationsbundet till de yttre omständigheterna eller spelar subjektiva upplevelser och individuella egenskaper hos anhörigvårdaren någon roll? Det skriver Christen Erlingsson, lektor vid Linnéuniversitetet.

Att vara anhörigvårdare kan innebära stor börda, oro och stress. Dessa upplevelser anses vara konsekvenser av situationen runt omkring anhörigvårdaren, den sjuke familjemedlemmens diagnos, och tillgång till eller brist på samhällsresurser och stöd. En fråga är om denna tunga börda och stress kan leda till att övergrepp mot den sjuke begås. Det finns relativt lite forskning kring övergrepp mot äldre om man jämför med forskning inom andra former av familjevåld såsom kvinnofridsbrott och övergrepp mot barn. Vad gäller anhörigvårdandet och övergrepp har forskare endast kvalificerade gissningar att mellan 5–23 procent av anhörigvårdare begår övergrepp mot den de vårdar.

I USA genomfördes för några år sedan en forskningssammanställning med slutsatsen att det inte fanns något entydigt stöd för att konstatera ett samband mellan att vara anhörigvårdare och ökad risk för att övergrepp begås. En anledning till denna slutsats var att det är så få anmälda övergreppsfall jämfört med det stora antalet äldre som vårdas i hemmet av familj eller släktningar. Man kan spegla detta mot att många professionella vårdare, frivilliga och andra berörda personer uppfattar att anhörigvårdandet utan tvekan innebär en ökad risk för övergrepp. De menar att utifrån egna erfarenheter och sunt förnuft förstår man att de påfrestande situationer som skapas i anhörigvårdande situationer, till exempel där den sjuke lider av Alzheimers eller annan demenssjukdom, kan bli så pass provocerande att risken för övergrepp ökar. Till bilden hör att uppemot en femtedel av tillfrågade anhörigvårdare uppger att de fruktar att de en dag kommer att begå övergrepp mot den de vårdar.

En tredje infallsvinkel är att den övervägande majoriteten av anhörigvårdare aldrig begår övergrepp. Det finns anhörigvårdare som upplever positiv hälsa och tillfredsställelse med vårdandet där övergrepp inte förekommer trots påfrestande situationer. Andra anhörigvårdare däremot, som befinner sig i likartade situationer, upplever ohälsa, ökande frustration och som till slut hamnar i situationer där de begår övergrepp mot den sjuke. Man måste fråga sig; vad är det som ligger bakom övergrepp mot en äldre familjemedlem som man vårdar? Är det helt och hållet situationsbundet till de yttre omständigheterna eller spelar subjektiva upplevelser och individuella egenskaper hos anhörigvårdaren någon roll? Ett möjligt svar på dessa frågor upptäcktes överraskande nog under arbetet med en kunskapsöversikt om anhörigvårdares hälsa. Kunskapsöversikten, som togs fram av Nationellt kompetenscentrum Anhöriga, är en sammanställning av svenska forskningsrapporter med syftet att beskriva äldre anhörigvårdares hälsa i samband med att vårda en sjuk familjemedlem.

De allra viktigaste faktorerna som påverkar anhörigvårdarens hälsa, visade sig vara de egna föreställningarna om vårdandet samt upplevelsen av ömsesidighet i de personliga relationerna med den sjuke, andra familjemedlemmar och med stödpersonal. Kunskapsöversiktens resultat visade att ingångsläget för de flesta anhörigvårdare kan beskrivas som att successivt glida in i vårdandet. Under denna fas finns behov av att ständigt justera sitt eget liv. De sociala kontakterna försvinner alltmer och anhörigvårdaren lever ett krympande liv, blir mer och mer isolerad i en föränderlig situation präglad av oro och osäkerhet. Att oroa sig blir en del av vardagen. Anhörigvårdaren bär med sig grundläggande föreställningar om vårdandet, som till exempel "jag behövs", "det är min moraliska plikt att vårda och återgälda den hjälp jag tidigare fått" och "makarna är en enhet och bör stödja varandra". Resultatet visade att det verkar finnas två grupper med anhörigvårdare; en som upplever hälsa och en grupp som upplever ohälsa i form av ökande stress och utmattning.

Bland de anhörigvårdare som upplever hälsa, fanns ömsesidighet i de personliga relationerna och upplevelsen av att vara sedd i sin roll som anhörigvårdare och uppleva mening i vårdandet. Dessa anhörigvårdare bar med sig föreställningar som till exempel, "man får ta det som det kommer", "sjukdom är en del av livet och livet innebär ständig anpassning", "det finns andra än jag som också är anhörigvårdare", "det är viktigt att vara tillsammans med familjen och vänner", och "äkta vänner kommer att vara kvar och acceptera förändringarna". Vad gäller risken för att hamna i övergreppssituationer, är det den andra gruppen anhörigvårdare som är mest i blickfånget, det vill säga de som upplever ohälsa. Här saknas känslan av ömsesidighet i personliga relationer. Anhörigvårdaren kan istället uppleva personalens bemötande som respektlöst och känna sig nonchalerad och förbisedd. Dessa anhörigvårdare bär med sig en mängd föreställningar som till exempel "jag måste ständigt finnas till hands", "min sjuka anhörigas behov kommer i första hand och mina egna behov kommer i andra hand", "jag måste ordna mitt liv kring min anhöriges behov och visa ständig omtänksamhet", "om jag behöver hjälp blir det andra familjemedlemmar eller vänner som kommer att hjälpa mig", " barnen, grannar eller vänner får inte belastas", "barnen måste få leva sina egna liv", "ingen kan ersätta mig", och "ingen kan hjälpa mig i denna situation."

Sådana föreställningar binder fast anhörigvårdaren i en situation som innebär ständigt ökande oro, stress, och börda. Anhörigvårdaren kan till och med känna sig som fången i det egna hemmet men ändå välja att inte anförtro sig åt andra eller själv söka stöd eller hjälp. Anhörigvårdaren sörjer ett förlorat liv, kan känna sig ensam, isolerad, otrygg, oduglig och börja betvivla sin egen kompetens att vårda. Anhörigvårdarens situation präglas också av brist på livsglädje och känslor som skuld och maktlöshet, ökande hopplöshet och konstant ångest. Pressen att själv tillgodose alla den sjukes behov tillsammans med kraven på sig själv att ständigt vara närvarande leder till att anhörigvårdaren aldrig får tillräcklig med sömn och håller på att bli utmattad. Anhörigvårdaren upplever en övermäktig börda och obalans, och är på väg att tappa kontrollen och tippa över i utbrändhet.

Till bilden hör en ökande frustration där anhörigvårdaren har svårt att hålla tillbaka irritation. Nu finns en påtaglig risk att det går över gränsen och kan sluta i övergrepp mot den sjuke familjemedlemmen. Denna ödesdigra nedåtgående spiral kanske känns igen av många. Det är viktigt att erkänna den styrande roll som föreställningarna spelar för upplevelser och hantering av sitt anhörigvårdande. Nästa fråga vi behöver svara på gäller hur stödpersonal i samhället, och vi som står anhörigvårdaren närmast, kan nå fram till de anhörigvårdare som mest behöver hjälp och stöd. Det verkar som att de anhörigvårdare som har störst behov också är de som har minst tro på att hjälp finns. Kunskapsöversiktens resultat pekar på att en bra startpunkt vore att komma underfund med vilka föreställningar som anhörigvårdaren tar med sig in i vårdandesituationen. Oftast är vi inte ens medvetna om våra egna föreställningar eller hur dessa påverkar oss. Ett sätt är att erbjuda anhörigvårdaren och dennes familj att delta i hälsostödjande samtal. En modell för sådana samtal har utvecklats på Linnéuniversitetet i Kalmar som en del av familjefokuserad omvårdnad. Tillsammans med samtalsledare diskuterar familjer sina inneboende styrkor och resurser, föreställningar som antingen kan underlätta eller hindra att hälsan bibehålls, och om att skapa mening i den egna livssituationen.

Ännu viktigare är att samtal utgör ett stöd för att avtäcka hindrande föreställningar och på så sätt förebygga, så att vårdandet inte slutar i övergrepp. Kunskapsöversiktens resultat pekar på ett svar varför en anhörigvårdare kan begå övergrepp mot någon så nära som en familjemedlem. Men länken mellan anhörigvårdandet och övergrepp har än idag ingen fullständig förklaring och fortsatt forskning behövs. Det är extremt viktigt att vi som finns runt omkring känner igen och förstår anhörigvårdarens situation, utan att fördöma men med viljan att bryta anhörigvårdarens isolering, samt kunna erbjuda stöd. Som en mycket klok anhörigstödjare uttryckte det, "Det måste inte vara så märkvärdigt, utan man sätter sig helt enkelt ner och diskuterar tillsammans; varför blev det så här?"

Long-term effects of the Family Bereavement Program on multiple indicators of grief in parentally bereaved children and adolescents

Sandler, I.N., Ma, Y., Tein, J., Ayers, T.S., Wolchik, S., Kennedy, C. & Millsap, R. (2010)

Abstract
OBJECTIVES:
This article reports on results from a randomized experimental trial of the effects of the Family Bereavement Program (FBP) on multiple measures of grief experienced by parentally bereaved children and adolescents over a 6-year period.
METHOD:
Participants were 244 youths (ages 8-16, mean age = 11.4 years) from 156 families that had experienced the death of a parent. The sample consisted of 53% boys and 47% girls; ethnicity was 67% non-Hispanic White and 33% ethnic minority. Families were randomly assigned to the FBP (N = 135) or a literature control condition (N = 109). Two grief measures, the Texas Revised Inventory of Grief and the Intrusive Grief Thoughts Scale (IGTS) were administered at 4 times over 6 years: pretest, posttest, and 11-month and 6-year follow-ups. A 3rd measure, an adaptation of the Inventory of Traumatic Grief (ITG) was administered only at the 6-year follow-up.
RESULTS:
Compared with the control group, the FBP group showed a greater reduction in their level of problematic grief (IGTS) at posttest and 6-year follow-up and in the percentage at clinical levels of problematic grief at the posttest. The FBP also reduced scores on a dimension of the ITG, Social Detachment/Insecurity, at 6-year follow-up for 3 subgroups: those who experienced lower levels of grief at program entry, older youths, and boys.
CONCLUSION:
These are the first findings from a randomized trial with long-term follow-up of the effects of a program to reduce problematic levels of grief of parentally bereaved youths.
(c) 2010 APA, all rights reserved

Long-term effects of the intensification of the transition between inpatient neurological rehabilitation and home care of stroke patients.

Gräsel E, Schmidt R, Biehler J, Schupp W. (2006)

OBJECTIVE:
To investigate an intensified transition concept between neurological inpatient rehabilitation and home care for long-term effects on the care situation two and a half years after stroke patients' discharge.
DESIGN:
Controlled clinical trial allocating patients to intervention group (intensified transition on ward II) or control group (standard transition on ward I); patients were allocated to whichever ward had a vacancy. The last follow-up assessment was carried out on average 31 months after discharge.
INTERVENTION:
The intensified transition concept consisted of therapeutic weekend care, bedside teaching and structured information for relatives during the second phase of the rehabilitation.
SUBJECTS:
Seventy-one patients and their family carers were included, of which one case dropped out. Therefore 70 family carers--35 individuals in each group-- were available for assessment at long-term follow-up.
DATA COLLECTION:
Family carers were asked via telephone whether the patient was still alive and if so, where he or she is living--at home or in a nursing home.
STATISTICAL METHODS:
Binary logistic regression analysis with the care situation (home care versus institutionalized care or deceased) as dependent variable.
RESULTS:
Two and a half years after discharge (T3) in the intervention group significantly fewer patients were institutionalized (2 versus 5) or deceased (4 versus 11) (P = 0.010). Multivariate analysis showed that besides a higher functional life quality at discharge and lower patient's age, the participation in the intensified transition programme is the third significant predictor for home care at T3.
CONCLUSION:
Effects of an intensified transition programme can persist over a long-term period. They can sustain home care by reducing institutionalization and mortality.

Loss of a twin sibling and subsequent risk of psychiatric disorders

Song, Huan, Fang, Fang, Magnusson, Patrik, Almqvist, Catarina (2019)

Background: Given close genetic and emotional connections between a twin pair, the death of a co-twin sibling may considerably affect the mental health of the surviving twin. However, evidence from population-based cohort studies is currently lacking. Methods: Based on the Swedish health registers, we identified 4528 exposed twins whose twin sibling died between 1973 and 2013. For comparison, 22,640 matched unexposed twins (i.e., had twin sibling but didn't experience such a loss) and 4939 full siblings of these exposed twins were included. Controlling for multiple confounders, we used Cox models to estimate hazard ratios (HRs) with 95% confidence intervals (CIs) of clinical ascertained psychiatric disorders after loss of a co-twin. Results: The median age at a co-twin loss was 59 years. Compared to the unexposed twins, exposed twins were at increased risk of psychiatric disorders (HR = 1.65 [95% CI 1.48–1.83]). The association seemed stronger for loss of a monozygotic twin (HR = 2.02 [95% CI 1.56–2.61]) than loss of a dizygotic twin (HR = 1.46 [95% CI1.27–1.67]), and was evident after loss by natural causes (HR = 1.49 [95% CI 1.32–1.69]). Additionally, such risk was most pronounced during the first year after loss and when loss occurred at young age. The HR was 1.55 (95% CI 1.31–1.82) when compared exposed twins to their full siblings who also exposed to loss of a normal full sibling due to the death of the deceased twin. Conclusions: Losing a co-twin is a strong life stressor indicated by the increased subsequent risks of psychiatric disorders among the surviving twins

Loss of parent in childhood and adult psychiatric disorder: the role of lack of adequate parental care

Harris T., Brown G.W., & Bifulco A. (1986)

The inconclusiveness of the literature on the role of loss of parent in influencing psychiatric disorder in adulthood is well known. A number of reasons involving sampling, location and other methodological features, are given to account for these contradictory findings. A study specially designed to cope with these features is then described and basic results are reported. These indicate that, in a sample of women aged 18-65, loss of mother before the age of 17, either by death or by separation of one year or more, was associated with clinical depression in the year of interview. Loss of father by death was in no way associated with current depression, but separation from father showed a trend which, however, did not reach statistical significance. Control for other possible confounding factors did not change this patterning of results; these were further supported when psychiatric episodes earlier in adulthood were examined. Examination of the caregiving arrangements in childhood suggests that it is 'lack of care', defined in terms of neglect rather than simply hostile parental behaviour, which accounts for the raised rate of depression. Such 'lack of care' is more frequent after loss of mother than after loss of father.

Low level of response to alcohol as a predictor of future alcoholism

Schuckit, MA. (1994)

Abstract
OBJECTIVE:
As part of a search for measurable attributes of an individual that might be related to the risk of alcoholism, the author's group previously compared 227 sons of alcoholics and 227 matched comparison subjects at the age of about 20 years. Forty percent of the men at high risk for alcoholism and less than 10% of the comparison subjects demonstrated a low intensity of response to alcohol challenge. This article reports the results of the follow-up of the first half of this study group almost a decade later.
METHOD:
Of the men who had been tested at about age 20, 223 were about age 30 at this evaluation, which included personal and resource-person interviews, record searches, urine toxicology screens, and blood level markers of drinking.
RESULTS:
A low level of response to alcohol at age 20 was associated with a fourfold greater likelihood of future alcoholism in both the sons of alcoholics and the comparison subjects. Fifty-six percent of the sons of alcoholics with the lesser alcohol response developed alcoholism during the subsequent decade, compared to 14% of the men in this group who had highly sensitive alcohol responses. Neither family history of alcoholism nor response to alcohol predicted any other psychiatric diagnoses over the subsequent decade, and neither was a significant predictor of any other substance use disorder.
CONCLUSIONS:
In a heavy-drinking society, a lower sensitivity to modest doses of alcohol is associated with a significant increase in the risk of future alcoholism, perhaps through increasing the chances that a person will drink more heavily and more often.

LSS – Särskilt personligt stöd

SOU (2004)

Det är angeläget att särskilt personligt stöd blir en flexibel insats som kan kompletteras dels efter individuella behov, dels efter förändrade förutsättningar beroende på teknikutveckling och annan kunskaps- och kompetensutveckling. Det är därför inte rimligt att precisera en heltäckande katalog av åtgärder som skall ingå i insatsen. Utifrån dagens erfarenhet av innehållet i råd och stöd kan dock tre delar utgöra bas i särskilt personligt stöd; Kunskapsstöd, psykosocialt stöd och särskilt kompletterande stöd.

Det är viktigt att det inte utvecklas någon skarp gräns mellan dessa delar eftersom det är en styrka om den samlade kompetensen kan samverka på det sätt som bäst motsvarar individens behov. Detta gränsöverskridande arbetssätt kan även i fortsättningen medföra problem i avgränsningen av insatsen, men en efterfrågan på tydliga riktlinjer och detaljstyrning måste vägas mot de enskildas behov av individuellt anpassade åtgärder.

Förtydligandet av insatsen innebär i huvudförslaget att det inom särskilt personligt stöd skall vara möjligt att komplettera kvalitativt eller kvantitativt med åtgärder som kan betraktas ingå i habilitering och rehabilitering om dessa behov inte tillgodoses på annat sätt. Detta gäller alla de fyra delar som normalt anses ingå i habilitering och rehabilitering - medicinska, psykologiska, sociala och pedagogiska.

Lyssna på barnen

Hillevi Wahl (2014)

Alkoholfrågan är något som berör de flesta och många av oss bär på minnen och erfarenheter som vi kanske aldrig fått sätta ord på. Barns erfarenheter och upplevelser av alkohol har vi samlat i vår bok: Lyssna på barnen

Om föräldrar missbrukar, så leder detta ofta till att en väl bevarad familjehemlighet styr hela familjens liv. Genom föreläsningar och reportage berättar människor om sina egna erfarenheter.

Blå Bandet är en del av ett stort internationellt nätverk som i de flesta länder kallas Blå Korset. Våra systerorganisationer i Norge och Danmark, arbetar förutom med förebyggande arbete, också med vård och rehabilitering av missbrukare och deras familjer.

Låt stå! Barn med funktionshinder

Winnberg-Lindqvist, Pia, Holm, Sara & Edlund, Nils H. (1999)

Att kunna stå upprätt är av största betydelse för ett barns utveckling. I boken beskrivs lättbegripligt olika metoder och hjälpmedel för att ett barn med funktionshinder lättare ska kunna stå. Boken vänder sig till föräldrar, lärare, assistenter och andra som finns runt barnet i vardagen. Till boken finns en film med samma titel.

Lära genom upplevelser: ute

Eriksson, Eva, Furå, Pär & Pettersson, Ingegerd (2007)

Författarna till denna bok är specialpedagoger och har arbetat i många år med elever i olika åldrar och utvecklingsfaser. Boken är tänkt som en inspirationskälla för lärande i utomhusmiljö.

Lära tillsammans - samarbetsorienterat lärande för ökad delaktighet

Hammar L. (2013)

De positiva effekter som fysisk aktivitet har på
hälsa och självkänsla är idag allmänt kända. Att
vara delaktig i lek och fysiska aktiviteter har också
en viktig social betydelse för barns och ungdomars
utveckling.
Forskning visar att elever som är delaktiga i
fysiska aktiviteter i högre utsträckning utvecklar
sociala relationer och stärker sitt självförtroende,
vilket även påverkar självkänslan och självbilden
positivt. (Moser och Dudas, 1997)
Denna skrift är framtagen efter att vi i Specialpedagogiska
skolmyndigheten tillsammans med
forskare gjort en studie kring samarbetsorienterat
lärande och vägledande kamrater. Vi vet att många
elever med någon funktionsnedsättning upplever
att de inte alltid får förutsättningar att vara delaktiga
i olika aktiviteter eller i gemenskapen under
skoldagen. Särskilt tydligt har det visat sig i ämnet
idrott och hälsa.
Skolinspektionens ämnesrapport för idrott och
hälsa (2012) lyfter fram att det sällan finns tillgång
till specialpedagogiskt stöd i ämnet. Rapporten
pekar också på att idrottslärare ofta är bra på att
uppmuntra eleven men inte på att anpassa undervisningen
eller aktiviteterna. I rapporten framkommer
även att elever med funktionsnedsättning ofta inte
deltar fullt ut i undervisningen.
Med denna bakgrund ville vi titta närmare på
om man kan påverka delaktigheten mellan elever
med och utan funktionsnedsättning på idrottslektionerna.
Vi var även intresserade av att se om
det påverkade klassklimatet och engagemanget
i aktiviteterna.
Det kommer allt mer forskningsresultat som
visar positiva effekter av elevers kompetens att
samarbeta och hjälpa varandra. I vår och liknande
studier kan vi se att samarbetsorienterat lärande,
tillsammans med pedagogers medvetna förhållningssätt,
kan ge goda möjligheter att påverka
klassklimat och gemenskap. Vi vill därför dela med
oss av våra lärdomar från denna och liknade studier.
I denna skrift ger vi främst exempel från ämnet
idrott och hälsa, men vi ser också att dessa lärdomar
är överförbara på andra ämnen och områden
i skolans verksamhet.
Vi vill även lyfta fram begrepp och synsätt som
vi tror att många skolor kan ha nytta av i sitt arbete
kring att skapa en tillgänglig och inkluderande miljö.
Under hösten 2013 kommer studien att publiceras
som en vetenskaplig artikel i European Journal of
Special Needs Education. Artikeln heter Cooperative
oriented Learning in Inclusive Physical Education.
Författare till artikeln är Aija Klavina, Associate Professor
vid Academy of Sport Education i Lettland,
Kajsa Jerlinder, universitetslektor vid högskolan i
Gävle, Lars Kristén, universitetslektor vid högskolan
i Halmstad, Lena Hammar, rådgivare vid Specialpedagogiska
skolmyndigheten och Tine Soulie,
konsulent vid Handikappidrottens Videncenter
i Danmark.

Lönsamt arbete – familjeansvarets fördelning och konsekvenser

Szebehely, M. (2014)

Den här antologin sammanfattar kunskapsläget och bidrar med ny kunskap om arbetsfördelningen mellan kvinnor och män och de konsekvenser som denna får för deras möjligheter på arbetsmarknaden.

-------------------------------------------------

För femtio år sedan rådde huvudsakligen en mycket strikt arbetsdelning mellan makar. Den rådande normen var att mannen genom förvärvsarbete bar huvudansvaret för den ekonomiska försörjningen av familjen. Om det var ekonomiskt möjligt var hustruns huvudsakliga ansvar att ta hand om hem och barn. I början av sextiotalet var således en majoritet av de gifta kvinnorna hemarbetande och skötte i det närmaste allt hushållsarbete.

Mycket har hänt sedan dess och i dag är det mycket få kvinnor i Sverige som arbetar hemma på heltid. Den normförskjutning som skett har naturligtvis påverkat både män och kvinnor, även om omvälvningen onekligen varit störst för kvinnorna.

I dag utgör de hälften av förvärvsarbetskraften och fördelningen av omsorgs- och hushållsarbetet i familjen är väsentligt mycket jämnare än den var för femtio år sedan. Samtidigt kvarstår betydande könsskillnader exempelvis i arbetstid och lön vilka i sin tur är relaterade till kvarvarande könsskillnader i fördelningen av omsorgs- och hushållsarbete.

Major Depression and Family Life – The family´s way of living with a long-term illness.

Hedman Ahlström, B. (2009)

The overall aim was to explore the family's experiences of major depression and the meaning of the illness for family life, for the ill person, the partner and the children. This thesis has a life-world perspective and is a qualitative explorative study using narrative interviews with families with parents who were identified as having major depression MD (Paper I-IV). A case study with a single family (n=3) was performed with a focus on describing what happens and how to manage the illness in a family (I). Group interviews with 7 families (n=18) were conducted to describe the ways of living with MD in families (II). Further, parents (n=8), who were identified as suffering from major depression, representing 8 families were interviewed to elucidate the meaning of depression in family life from the viewpoint of the ill parent (III). Interviews were also conducted with children and young adults (n=8), aged from 6 to 26 years, representing 6 families to elucidate the meaning of a parent's major depression in family life from the children's perspective (IV). The interview texts were analysed using qualitative methods; thematic content analysis (I-II) and phenomenological hermeneutic analysis (III-IV). The thesis shows that family members had different views and ways of interpreting and managing the family's situation when the mother was suffering from major depression (I).The families faced demanding conditions in the presence of illness which they tried to manage together. The families' situation (fatigue, loss of energy and being burdened with guilt) seemed to bring these families into stressful life situations (II). Depressed parents' suffering and dignity were revealed as being simultaneously present and complicating family life. Dignity has to be repeatedly restored for oneself and the family, and the family's dignity has to be restored in front of other outside the family circle (III). Children's sense of responsibility and loneliness were elucidated. The children's responsibility includes their striving for reciprocity, and in their loneliness is the children's yearning for reciprocity. Children compensate with a sense of responsibility for an ill parent in family life and for their lack of health. Children's family life shifts between responsibility and loneliness as they wait for reciprocity in family life to return to normal (IV). This thesis shows how a study using qualitative methods makes it possible for family members together and individually to talk about major depression as illness that is an intruder in their family life. The thesis elucidates how the depression complicates and involves the family member's life as well as the ill person's family life. All family members have their own life-world and try to balance everyday life from an individual perspective, which overshadows that managing the illness is a concern for the whole family.

Major life areas: Play and education

Adolfsson M, Simeonsson RJ, Lee AM, Ellingsen KM (2012)

Measures for children with developmental disabilities: an ICF-CY approach. Annette Majnemer, ed. Mac Keith Press, 2012. 150.00 [pound sterling]. 552pp. ISBN: 978-1-908316-45-5 I highly recommend this book: Professor Majnemer has brought together a wide range of outcome measurement experts creating a thoughtfully crafted book, essential reading for anyone selecting outcome measures for use with children and youth with developmental disabilities. The book is framed by the components.

Mammor med ADHD – Upplevelser av föräldragupp på barnhälsovårdscentral samt av en anpassad självhjälpsgrupp

Högberg, M., & Slivo, T. (2016)

Syftet med denna kvalitativa studie var att undersöka upplevelser av gruppbaserat föräldrastöd hos mammor med Adhd som deltagit i en universell föräldragrupp på barnhälsovårdscentral (BVC) samt i en anpassad självhjälpsgrupp (Mammagruppen). Mammagruppen bestod av fem mammor med diagnosen Adhd, en hade även Asperger syndrom. Med ett bortfall deltog fyra av dem i studien. Tre av informanterna deltog även i föräldragrupp på BVC. Deras barn var 0-2 år gamla utan uttalade problem. Datainsamling skedde genom semistrukturerade intervjuer och en induktiv tematisk analys resulterade i två huvudteman; Samhörighet och Stöd. Resultatet visar att informanternas upplevelser av Mammagruppen blev övervägande positiva och upplevelser av föräldragruppen på BVC blev övervägande negativa. Några grundläggande faktorer som bidrog till detta var huruvida de har upplevt samhörighet i grupperna samt om de har fått utrymme till att samtala om sina egna behov och känslor. Detta bidrar med unik kunskap och belyser det upplevda behovet av ett anpassat stöd. Det behövs vidare forskning innan vi kan säga att det finns skillnader.

Mammor med intellektuell funktionsnedsättning och deras barn : att se, förstå och bemöta dem utifrån psykologisk teori.

Andersson Kristina (2019)

Huruvida föräldrar med intellektuell funktionsnedsättning (psykisk utvecklingsstörning) klarar av sitt föräldraskap har alltid ifrågasatts. Den här boken vill visa på vikten av relationen mellan föräldrar och barn när man ska ge hjälp och stöd till föräldrar med kognitiva brister. Forskning rörande barn och barns utveckling har länge varit ett viktigt område inom psykologin. Man är dock inte alltid överens om föräldrars betydelse för barns psykiska utveckling. Författarna visar hur psykologiska insatser kan utformas i familjer med komplex problematik inklusive föräldrar med intellektuell funktionsnedsättning. Boken kan utgöra en referensram för att underlätta samarbetet mellan personal inom pedagogisk, social, psykologisk och medicinsk verksamhet. Boken bör med fördel även kunna användas inom utbildningar för behandlingspersonal inom psykolog- och socionomutbildningar

Man måste alltid slåss på byråkraternas planhalva

Paulsson, Karin & Fasth, Åsa (1999)

Riksförbundet för rörelsehindrade barn och ungdomar (RBU) vill med den här rapporten bidra till en bättre förståelse för familjer som har rörelsehindrade barn. Syftet är dels att familjer i liknande situationer skall få en insikt om att de inte är ensamma och dels att påverka politiker, tjänstemän samt vårdpersonal

När livet inte följer manus

Dow, Sophie (2018)

Sammanfattning
Att få ett barn med funktionsnedsättning vänder upp och ned på tillvaron. När Sophie Dow får dottern Annie anar hon direkt att något inte är som det ska men det kommer att ta sexton år innan familjen till slut får ett fullödigt svar på gåtan. Under tiden lever familjen ett utmanande, utmattande men alldeles underbart liv tillsammans. Sophie Dows kamp för sin dotters rättigheter leder till grundandet av Mindroom, en organisation som framgångsrikt jobbar för barn och ungdomar med inlärningssvårigheter. När livet inte följer manus är ett inspirerande, personligt detektivdrama, där Sophie Dow med humor, glöd och oväntat stöd från såväl en Hollywoodregissör som brittiska kungahuset söker svar på frågan: Varför är inte alla hjärnor lika mycket värda?

När mammas tankar ändrade färg

Galli Sara (2015)

Max är fundersam. Det är något som blivit annorlunda med hans mamma. Hon är trött, rösten är ledsen och kojan får vara kvar i vardagsrummet i flera veckor. Pappa säger att mamma är sjuk men Max kan inte se något som är fel. Med en annorlunda mamma vill Max inte att kompisarna ska följa med hem. Vad skulle de säga om de såg att hans mamma sov mitt på dagen? Eller hörde den ledsna rösten? I samtal med skolans sjuksköterska får Max förståelse för att det är mammas tankar som blivit mörka och som gör att hon inte mår bra. När mammas tankar ändrade färg skildrar ur barnets perspektiv hur det kan vara när en förälder är deprimerad. Det är den andra boken av Sara Galli och Mats Molid i deras barnboksserie om barn i svåra livssituationer. Den första boken Får hundar korvar i himlen? tilldelades Statens Kulturråds Litteraturstöd.

När mammor dör: Kvinnor om att mista sin mor

Antologi (2020)

Tillsammans med 30 andra kvinnor, i olika åldrar, har jag skrivit om hur det är att förlora en mamma. En viktig bok som jag är stolt att vara en del av. "När mammor dör växer det sly överallt" skriver Göran Tunström. Men det behöver inte bli ensamt. Det vill vi förmedla. För mig är det även en hyllning till min mamma Kerstin

Närstående i den psykiatriska vården: en kvalitativ studie om erfarenheter av närståendes delaktighet.

Sjöblom, L-M. (2010)

The changes in family burden and participation in care of relatives to both voluntarily and compulsorily admitted patients were investigated as part of a longitudinal study of the quality of the mental health services in a Swedish county performed between 1986 and 1997. The relationship between the relative's mental health and family burden, participation in care and need of own support was also investigated. The results showed similar and high levels of burden and a non-sufficient participation in care in both periods investigated despite the ongoing changes in the delivery of psychiatric services and a change in the compulsory legislation in Sweden during the period. More relatives experienced an own need of care and support from the psychiatric services in the 1997 investigation. Relatives who experienced mental health problems of their own more often experienced other forms of burden, experienced less participation in the patient's treatment and also more often had own needs of care and support. It is concluded that interventions in families where relatives experience mental health problems will be useful, since a well-functioning network around the mentally ill person has shown to reduce relapse.

Närståendes upplevelser på ett vård- och omsorgsboende En kvalitativ intervjustudie

Johanna Eriksson, Annika Strömblad, Magdalena Andersson, Ingela Beck (2018)

Abstrakt Det blir allt fler äldre personer i samhället idag eftersom vi lever längre. Ett större antal äldre personer kan innebära att fler närstående blir involverade i den äldre personens livssituation och vård. Den personcentrerade omvårdnadsmodellen visar att närstående är en viktig resurs för den äldre och för den äldres välbefinnande. Idag ska närstående kunna vara ett naturligt inslag i vården av den äldre personen. Sedan år 2009 när nya bestämmelsen i Socialtjänstlagen kom, har vården ett ansvar att ge närstående stöd och vägledning. Detta leder till att en dialog mellan vårdpersonal och närstående är betydande för att främja den äldres hälsa, men också för att främja närståendes delaktighet och välbefinnande. Syftet med studien var att undersöka närståendes upplevelser av att ha en äldre person vid ett vård- och omsorgsboende. Studien har en kvalitativ studiedesign. Tre fokusgruppsintervjuer och två enskilda intervjuer genomfördes med sammanlagt 26 närstående till en äldre person på ett vård- och omsorgsboende. Intervjuerna analyserades med en konventionell innehållsanalys. Ett gott bemötande och en öppen kommunikation med vårdpersonalen gjorde att de närstående kände sig välkomna och sedda som en viktig del i vården. Närstående upplevde trygghet då de själva och den äldre personen kände sig hemmastadda på vård- och omsorgsboendet. Slutsats: Personalen har en betydelsefull roll för närståendes välbefinnande och delaktighet i vården på ett vård- och omsorgsboende.

Nästan alla dagar grät jag

Kristine Lorentzson (2018)

Vem blir man, när man får veta att ens barn är nära att dö i en livshotande hjärtsjukdom? Vad kan man ta in och vad flyter förbi? Hur går tankarna för den som tvingas bo länge på ett sjukhus? Vad innebär det att leva och hur nära kan Döden stå utan att ta den man älskar?
"Nästan alla dagar grät jag" är berättelsen om en familj där sonen blir akut inlagd på sjukhus för hjärtsvikt. Dag för dag följer vi familjen på sjukhuset, totalt 313 dagar. Berättelsen bygger på en verklig händelse.

Occupational hearing loss, coping and family life

Hallberg, Lillemor (1996)

Too many individuals still unnecessarily develop noise-induced hearing loss (NIHL). Interviews with men with NIHL showed their lack of awareness of noise as a threat to hearing. Also, most men were unwilling to acknowledge, or even denied, their hearing problems. Interviews with spouses of men with NIHL showed that the husband's hearing loss often caused misunderstandings and irritation within the family, which had a negative impact on the couple's intimate relationship. The purposes of our group rehabilitation programme, designed for men with NIHL and their spouses, were to give psychosocial support, adequate information and practice in effective coping strategies. A professional approach to treat men with NIHL is to take a patient-centered global perspective, which encourages the patient to identify, describe and acknowledge problems related to his impaired hearing. In the next step, the patient needs professional help to solve experienced hearing related problems. In this process of identification of and solution to problems, family involvement is important and vital.

Och den ljusnande framtid är vår. – Några ungdomars bild av sin tid vid riksgymnasium

Lang, Lena (2004)

Den tid vi i dagens samhälle betraktar som ungdomstid blir allt längre. De ungdomar som lämnar grundskolan tillhör en åldersgrupp som är större än på länge och det stora flertalet av dem är på väg in i svensk treårig gymnasieutbildning.
En övergripande specialpedagogisk idé handlar om att alla människor bereds möjlighet att ta del i ett samhälle. Samtidigt finns inte någon fullödig bild av vad en sådan idé innefattar, särskilt inte sett utifrån den enskilda människans synvinkel. Forskningsinsatser med specialpedagogisk relevans domineras av individuella perspektiv och perspektiv med intresse för samspel är begränsade. Vidare är intresset för gymnasieskolan som specialpedagogiskt forskningsområde begränsat. Befintlig kunskapsutveckling förankras i högre grad vid omvärldens syn på ungdomar, än i ungdomars syn på omvärlden.

Denna undersökning utgår från några av dem som ofta outsagt åsyftas då "en skola för alla" diskuteras. Undersökningen baseras odelat på ungdomars bild, med en särskild tonvikt lagd vid deras upplevelse av omgivningen inklusive skolan och på samspelet med och inom den.

Official incidents of domestic violence: Types, injury, and associations with nonofficial couple aggression

Capaldi, D. M., Shortt, J. W., Kim, H. K., Wilson, J., Crosby, L., & Tucci, S. (2009)

Official police reports of intimate partner violence (IPV) were examined in a community sample of young, at-risk couples to determine the degree of mutuality and the relation between IPV arrests and aggression toward a partner (self-reported, partner reported, and observed). Arrests were predominantly of the men. Men were more likely to initiate physical contact, use physical force, and inflict injuries than women, although few injuries required medical attention. In the context of nonofficial aggression toward a partner, overall, women had higher levels of physical and psychological aggression compared to men, and levels of severe physical aggression did not differ by gender. Couples with an IPV arrest were more aggressive toward each other than couples with no IPV arrests; however, nonofficial levels of aggression were not higher for men than for women among couples experiencing an IPV incident.

Offspring psychological and biological correlates of parental posttraumatic stress: review of the literature and research agenda

Leen-Feldner, E. W., Feldner, M. T., Knapp, A., Bunaciu, L., Blumenthal, H., & Amstadter, A. B. (2013)

Millions of individuals with posttraumatic stress disorder (PTSD) are parents. A burgeoning literature suggests that offspring of parents with this condition may be at increased risk for psychological problems. The current paper provides an integrative and comprehensive review of the diverse research literature examining the sequelae of parental posttraumatic stress among offspring. Over 100 studies that evaluated psychological and/or biological variables among children of parents with PTSD are reviewed. Findings suggest parental symptoms of posttraumatic stress are uniquely related to an array of offspring outcomes, including internalizing-type problems, general behavioral problems, and altered hypothalamic-pituitary-adrenal axis functioning. Although very little work has directly evaluated mechanisms of transmission, there is increasing support for genetic and epigenetic effects as well as parenting behaviors. These and other mechanisms are discussed; drawing upon findings from other literatures to consider how parental PTSD may impart psychobiological vulnerability upon offspring. We conclude with a detailed discussion of the methodological strengths and challenges of the extant research, along with a recommended agenda for future research in this important area of study.

Older family carers in rural areas: experiences from using caregiver support services based on Information and Communication Technology (ICT).

Blusi M, Asplund K, Jong M. (2013)

The aim of this intervention study was to illuminate the meaning of ICT-based caregiver support as experienced by older family carers living in vast rural areas, caring for a spouse at home. In order to access, the support service participants were provided with a computer and high speed Internet in their homes. Semi structured webcam-interviews were carried out with 31 family carers. A strategy for webcam interviewing was developed to ensure quality and create a comfortable interview situation for the family carers. Interviews were analysed using content analyses, resulting in the themes: Adopting new technology with help from others and Regaining social inclusion. The results indicate that ICT-based support can be valuable for older family carers in rural areas as it contributes to improve quality in daily life in a number of ways. In order to fully experience the benefits, family carers need to be frequent users of the provided support. Adequate training and encouragement from others were essential in motivating family carers to use the support service. Access to Internet and webcamera contributed to reducing loneliness and isolation, strengthening relationships with relatives living far away and enabled access to services no longer available in the area. Use of the ICT-service had a positive influence on the relationship between the older carer and adult grandchildren. It also contributed to carer competence and promote feelings of regaining independence and a societal role.

Older family carers in rural areas: experiences from using caregiver support services based on Information and Communication Technology (ICT).

Blusi M, Asplund K, Jong M. (2013)

The aim of this intervention study was to illuminate the meaning of ICT-based caregiver support as experienced by older family carers living in vast rural areas, caring for a spouse at home. In order to access, the support service participants were provided with a computer and high speed Internet in their homes. Semi structured webcam-interviews were carried out with 31 family carers. A strategy for webcam interviewing was developed to ensure quality and create a comfortable interview situation for the family carers. Interviews were analysed using content analyses, resulting in the themes: Adopting new technology with help from others and Regaining social inclusion. The results indicate that ICT-based support can be valuable for older family carers in rural areas as it contributes to improve quality in daily life in a number of ways. In order to fully experience the benefits, family carers need to be frequent users of the provided support. Adequate training and encouragement from others were essential in motivating family carers to use the support service. Access to Internet and webcamera contributed to reducing loneliness and isolation, strengthening relationships with relatives living far away and enabled access to services no longer available in the area. Use of the ICT-service had a positive influence on the relationship between the older carer and adult grandchildren. It also contributed to carer competence and promote feelings of regaining independence and a societal role.

Older immigrants' use of public home care and residential care

Boll Hansen, E. (2014)

The purpose of this paper is to analyse the extent to which length of residence in the country and country of origin are of importance to older immigrants' use of long-term care services compared to native older people. The analyses were conducted on a population of over 65s living in the Municipality of Copenhagen on 1st Jan 2007. Information was drawn from the administrative registers of the Municipality of Copenhagen on the population's use in 2007 of home care and of residential care in a nursing home. These data were combined by Statistics Denmark with demographic data, socio-economic data and data on the use of health services. It was found that older immigrants are less likely than ethnic Danes to use municipal long-term care services when other predisposing, enabling and need factors are controlled for. The difference is greatest between ethnic Danes and immigrants from non-western countries who have only lived in Denmark for a few years. The difference decreases the longer the immigrant has lived in the country. The findings may be explained, at least in part, by poorer language skills and poorer knowledge of the Danish welfare system among older immigrants and the fact that they are more likely to be cared for by relatives than ethnic Danes are. However, in the course of time language skills improve and knowledge of the system increases and life style with respect to care may approach that of older Danes

Older people - recipients but also providers of informal care: an analysis among community samples in the Republic of Ireland and Northern Ireland

McGee, H. (2008)

Data on both the provision and receipt of informal care among populations of older adults are limited. Patterns of both informal care provided and received by older adults in the Republic of Ireland (RoI) and Northern Ireland (NI) were evaluated. A cross-sectional community-based population survey was conducted. Randomly selected older people (aged 65+, n = 2033, mean age (standard deviation): 74.1 years (6.8), 43% men, 68% response rate) provided information on the provision and receipt of care, its location, and the person(s) who provided the care. Twelve per cent of the sample (251/2033) identified themselves as informal caregivers (8% RoI and 17% NI). Caregivers were more likely to be women, married, have less education and have less functional impairment. Forty-nine per cent (1033/2033, 49% RoI and 48% NI) reported receiving some form of care in the past year. Care recipients were more likely to be older, married, have more functional impairment, and poorer self-rated health. Receiving regular informal care (help at least once a week) from a non-resident relative was the most common form of help received [28% overall (578/2033); 27% RoI and 30% NI]. Five per cent (n = 102/2033) of the sample reported both providing and receiving informal care. Levels of informal care provided by community-dwelling older adults were notably higher than reported in single-item national census questions. The balance of formal and informal health and social care will become increasingly important as populations age. It is essential, therefore, to evaluate factors facilitating or impeding informal care delivery.

Om någon du känner har en depression. En bok för anhöriga, vänner och drabbade

Gustavson, Christina (2019)

Depression är en av våra stora folksjukdomar. Man räknar med att omkring en tredjedel av alla har en depression någon gång under sitt liv. Vem som helst kan drabbas, ung, gammal, frisk eller sjuk. Den som är utvilad efter semestern eller den som är trött och sliten av ett påfrestande arbete. Ofta finner man ingen förklarande orsak, utan depressionen bara kom. Bara en tredjedel av de som drabbas söker hjälp. Symptomen kan vara svåra att känna igen. Här i boken ges en bild av hur en depression kan se ut för andra i den deprimerades omgivning. Om det går att upptäcka symptomen lite fortare, så kan fler söka läkare för diagnos och hjälp. Boken visar också hur man som medmänniska hjälper den som drabbats, hur man kan förebygga depressioner och återfall i nya depressioner, samt hur man kan mildra förloppet. Boken vänder sig både till den som är eller har varit deprimerad och till alla vars anhörig, vän eller arbetskamrat drabbats av en depression.

Manual for the ASEBA Adult Forms and Profiles

Achenbach TM, Rescorla LA (2003)

Manual explains the development, standardization, applications, and profiles for the ASEBA adult forms. Also provides reliability and validity data, problem prevalence rates, scale scores, scoring instruments, and answers to common questions. 232 pages.

Manual for the Child Behavioral Checklist 4-18 and revised 1991 profile.

Achenbach TM (1991)

Purpose
To obtain caregiver report of children's competencies and behavior problems in a standardized format.
Conceptual Organization
The Child Behavior Checklist/4-16 (CBCL/4-16) was the first of what has become a multi-axial
empirically based set of measures for assessing children from parent, teacher, and self-reports. In 1991,
The CBCL/4-16 was re-normed to include children up to 18 years of age (becoming CBCL/4-18), and
eight cross-informant constructs were identified to facilitate direct comparison between problem
behavior scores on the CBCL, the Teacher Report Form (TRF), and the Youth Self-Report Form (YSR)
(Achenbach, 1991). All three instruments include measurement of the following eight constructs or
syndromes: Social Withdrawal, Somatic Complaints, Anxiety/Depression, Social Problems, Thought
Problems, Attention Problems, Delinquent Behavior, and Aggressive Behavior. The CBCL is the only
measure among the three instruments that contains the Sex Problems scale (Achenbach, 1991).
In addition to focusing on a child's behavior as defined by one of the eight syndrome scales, the CBCL,
TRF, and YSR also allow the examination of two broad groupings of syndromes: Internalizing Problems
and Externalizing Problems. Internalizing Problems combines the Social Withdrawal, Somatic
Complaints, and Anxiety/Depression scales, while Externalizing problems combines the Delinquent
Behavior and Aggressive Behavior scales (Achenbach, 1991).
The three corollary instruments also contain items that assess social competence. The CBCL/4-18
contains 20 competence items grouped into 3 scales (Activities, Social, and School) (Achenbach, 1991).
Item Origin/Selection Process
Items were derived from research and consultation with professionals and parents, and revisions were
based on the findings of numerous pilot studies. For a complete description of item derivation for the
CBCL, see the Manual for the Child Behavior Checklist/4-18 and 1991 Profile (hereafter referred to as
the Manual) (Achenbach, 1991).
Materials
Manual, forms, and computerized scoring programs, available from the publisher.
Time Required
Twenty-five to thirty minutes.
Administration Method
The CBCL is designed to be completed independently by the caregiver. It requires fifth grade reading
ability. The form can also be administered orally by an interviewer who records the caregiver's answers.
There are several items for which the respondent is asked to elaborate about an endorsed behavior in
order to avoid improper scoring.
Training
Requires thorough familiarity with the Manual, especially with the cautions related to commonly
misinterpreted items (Manual, p. 13, pp. 249-250). Please see the Manual for additional information on
training and educational requirements.
Scoring
Score Types
Items are coded from 0 to 2. Instructions for hand scoring the instrument are provided in Appendix A
of the Manual.
Total scores may be computed for Social Competence, Behavior Problems, Internalizing Problems,
Externalizing Problems, and Sex Problems, plus scores for each of the 8 syndrome scales (Achenbach,
1991)
Raw scores can be converted to age-standardized scores (T scores having a mean = 50 and SD = 10) that
can be compared with scores obtained from normative samples of children within the same broad age
range. Please see the Manual for more information on CBCL scores.
Score Interpretation
For the syndrome scales, T scores less than 67 are considered in the normal range, T scores ranging from
67-70 are considered to be borderline clinical, and T scores above 70 are in the clinical range
(Achenbach, 1991) Please see the Manual for additional information on specific syndrome scales
For Total Problems, Externalizing Problems, and Internalizing Problems, T scores less than 60 are
considered in the normal range, 60-63 represent borderline scores, and scores greater than 63 are in the
clinical range (Achenbach, 1991).
Norms and/or Comparative Data
The CBCL/4-18 was normed on a sample of 2,368 non-handicapped 4 to 18 year old children. See
Manual for additional information on norms and comparative data. .
Psychometric Support
Reliability
Information on test-retest reliability and Cronbach's alphas are available from the author (Achenbach,
1991).
Validity
Evidence for content, construct, and criterion-related validity is well documented. See Chapter 6 in
Manual for additional details.

Manual for the young adult self-report and young adult behavioral checklist

Achenbach, T.M. (1997)

The YABCL has 107 items that describe specific behavioral and emotional problems. Parents and others rate the young adult for how true each item is now or was within the past six months using the following scale: 0 = not true (as far as you know); 1 = somewhat or sometimes true; 2 = very true or often true. In addition, 13 socially desirable items are rated, and space is also provided for responses to two open-ended items covering physical and other problems, plus anything else the respondent wants to report about the young adult. These questionnaires are designed to provide standardized descriptions of behavior, feelings, thoughts, and competencies rather than diagnoses per se. The YABCL has 109 problem items and 11 competence items that are scored on 3-step scales. Eight syndromes are derived from the items on the YABCL, including 2 designated as Internalizing (Anxious/Depressed, Withdrawn) and 3 designated as Externalizing (Aggressive, Delinquent, and Intrusive Behavior). Reliability on the YABCL averages 0.85 across syndromes and Internalizing, Externalizing, and Total Problems scales (P .001). Validity has been demonstrated by showing significantly higher scores for subjects referred for mental health services than for matched nonreferred subjects.36-38 For the 8 syndrome scales, the 95th percentile is considered the borderline clinical cutoff and the 98th percentile the clinical cutoff on the basis of a nonreferred population. For the problem scales (Internalizing, Externalizing, and Total Problems), the 83rd percentile is considered the borderline clinical cutoff and the 90th percentile the clinical cutoff.33.

Mapping images to objects by young adults with cognitive disabilities.

Carmien, S. & Wohldman E. (2008)

How the type of representation (icons, photos of objects in context, photos of objects in isolation) displayed on a hand-held computer affected recognition performance in young adults with cognitive disabilities was examined. Participants were required to match an object displayed on the computer to one of three pictures projected onto a screen. We tested the opinion widely held by occupational therapists and special education professionals that there is an inverse relationship between cognitive ability and the required fidelity of a representation for a successful match between a representation and an external object. Despite their widespread use in most learning tools developed for persons with cognitive disabilities, our results suggest that icons are poor substitutes for realistic representations.

Marketisation in Nordic eldercare: a research report on legislation, oversight, extent and consequences

Meagher G, Szebehely M, editors (2013)

The Nordic countries share a tradition of universal, tax-financed eldercare services, centred on public provision. Yet Nordic eldercare has not escaped the influence of the global wave of marketisation in recent years. Marketinspired measures, such as competitive tendering and user choice models, have been introduced in all Nordic countries, and in some countries, there has been an increase of private, for-profit provision of care services. This report is the first effort to comprehensively document the process of marketisation in Sweden, Finland, Denmark and Norway. The report seeks to answer the following questions: What kinds of market reforms have been carried out in Nordic eldercare systems? What is the extent of privately provided services? How is the quality of marketised monitored? What has the impact of marketisation been on users of eldercare, on care workers and on eldercare systems? Are marketisation trends similar in the four countries, or are there major differences between them? The report also includes analyses of aspects of marketisation in Canada and the United States, where there is a longer history of markets in care. These contributions offer some perhaps salutary warnings for the Nordic countries about the risks of increasing competition and private provision in eldercare. The authors of this report, representing seven countries, are all members of the Nordic Research Network on Marketisation in Eldercare (Normacare). The report has been edited by Professor Gabrielle Meagher, University of Sydney and Professor Marta Szebehely, Stockholm University. Our hope is that the report will provide both a foundation and an inspiration for further research on change in Nordic eldercare.

Masculine gender roles associated with increased sexual risk and intimate partner violence perpetration among young adult men

Santana, M. C., Raj, A., Decker, M. R., Marche, A. L., & Silverman, J. G. (2006)

This study sought to assess the association between traditional masculine gender role ideologies and sexual risk and intimate partner violence (IPV) perpetration behaviors in young men's heterosexual relationships. Sexually active men age 18–35 years attending an urban community health center in Boston were invited to join a study on men's sexual risk; participants (N=307) completed a brief self-administered survey on sexual risk (unprotected sex, forced unprotected sex, multiple sex partners) and IPV perpetration (physical, sexual and injury from/need for medical services due to IPV) behaviors, as well as demographics. Current analyses included men reporting sex with a main female partner in the past 3 months (n=283). Logistic regression analyses adjusted for demographics were used to assess significant associations between male gender role ideologies and the sexual risk and IPV perpetration behaviors. Participants were predominantly Hispanic (74.9%) and Black (21.9%); 55.5% were not born in the continental U.S.; 65% had been in the relationship for more than 1 year. Men reporting more traditional ideologies were significantly more likely to report unprotected vaginal sex in the past 3 months (ORadj = 2.3, 95% CI = 1.2–4.6) and IPV perpetration in the past year (ORadj = 2.1, 95% CI = 1.2–3.6). Findings indicate that masculine gender role ideologies are linked with young men's unprotected vaginal sex and IPV perpetration in relationships, suggesting that such ideologies may be a useful point of sexual risk reduction and IPV prevention intervention with this population.

Mastering an unpredictable everyday life after stroke'- older women's experiences of caring and living with their partners

Gosman-Hedström, G. and S. Dahlin-Ivanoff (2012)

Scand J Caring Sci; 2012; 26; 587-597 'Mastering an unpredictable everyday life after stroke'- older women's experiences of caring and living with their partners Introduction: The shift from older persons living in institutions to living in the community naturally affects both the older persons and their partners. The informal care is often taken for granted, and the research that focuses on the diversity of older female carers needs is scarce. Aim: To explore and learn from the older women how they experience their life situation and formal support as carers of their partners after stroke and to suggest clinical implications. Method: The design of the study is qualitative being based on the focus group method. Sixteen carers, median age 74 years (range 67-83), participated in four focus group discussions, which each met once for not more than 2 hours. Findings: The discussions resulted in one comprehensive theme; 'Mastering an uncertain and unpredictable everyday life'. Three subthemes emerged from the material: 'Living with another man' where the carers discussed not only the marked change in their partner's personality, but also the loss of a life-companion and their mutual intellectual contact; 'Fear of it happening again', comprising the carers' experiences of fear and confinement, of always having to be ready to help and of being trapped at home; 'Ongoing negotiation', referring to the carers' struggling and negotiating not only with their partners, but also with themselves and formal care for time to themselves. Conclusion: This study helps us to understand how these older women tried to master an uncertain and unpredictable life. Their life had changed radically; now they were always on call to help their partners and felt tied to home. The results draw attention to the carers' need for time to themselves, a greater knowledge of stroke and continuous support from formal care.

Mastering an unpredictable everyday life after stroke´ - older women´s experiences of caring and living with their partners

Gosman-Hedström, G., & Dahlin-Ivanoff, S. (2012)

INTRODUCTION:
The shift from older persons living in institutions to living in the community naturally affects both the older persons and their partners. The informal care is often taken for granted, and the research that focuses on the diversity of older female carers needs is scarce.
AIM:
To explore and learn from the older women how they experience their life situation and formal support as carers of their partners after stroke and to suggest clinical implications.
METHOD:
The design of the study is qualitative being based on the focus group method. Sixteen carers, median age 74 years (range 67-83), participated in four focus group discussions, which each met once for not more than 2 hours.
FINDINGS:
The discussions resulted in one comprehensive theme; 'Mastering an uncertain and unpredictable everyday life'. Three subthemes emerged from the material: 'Living with another man' where the carers discussed not only the marked change in their partner's personality, but also the loss of a life-companion and their mutual intellectual contact; 'Fear of it happening again', comprising the carers' experiences of fear and confinement, of always having to be ready to help and of being trapped at home; 'Ongoing negotiation', referring to the carers' struggling and negotiating not only with their partners, but also with themselves and formal care for time to themselves.
CONCLUSION:
This study helps us to understand how these older women tried to master an uncertain and unpredictable life. Their life had changed radically; now they were always on call to help their partners and felt tied to home. The results draw attention to the carers' need for time to themselves, a greater knowledge of stroke and continuous support from formal care.

Maternal Depressive Symptoms when Caring for a Child with Mental Health Problems

Gerkensmeyer J, Perkins S, Day J, Austin J, Scott E, Wu J. (2011)

As primary caregivers of children with mental health problems, mothers face challenges that put them at risk for depression, which is rarely identified or addressed. The aims of this paper were to (a) identify mean differences among demographic, stressor, threat, and resource variables specified in a theoretical model and thought to be associated with maternal depressive symptoms and (b) determine how much variability in depressive symptoms is explained by these variables. High levels and prevalence of depressive symptoms were found within a quality of life study that these data were drawn from. Of 139 mothers participating in this study, 58% had a score of 16 or greater on the CES-D indicating moderate to high levels of depressive symptoms. Significant differences were found between mothers with higher versus lower levels of depressive symptoms for 11 of the 18 variables. Hierarchical regression was used to examine the variance explained in depressive symptoms based upon the conceptual model with 4 composite variables. Income (step 1), behavioral problems (step 2), threat appraisal (step 3), and resource appraisal (step 4) combined explained 42% of the variance.

Maternal parenting behaviors and adolescent depression: The mediating role of rumination

Gaté, M. A., Watkins, E. R., Simmons, J. G., Byrne, M. L., Schwartz, O. S., Whittle, S., et al. (2013)

Substantial evidence suggests that rumination is an important vulnerability factor for adolescent depression. Despite this, few studies have examined environmental risk factors that might lead to rumination and, subsequently, depression in adolescence. This study examined the hypothesis that an adverse family environment is a risk factor for rumination, such that the tendency to ruminate mediates the longitudinal association between a negative family environment and adolescent depressive symptoms. It also investigated adolescent gender as a moderator of the relationship between family environment and adolescent rumination. Participants were 163 mother–adolescent dyads. Adolescents provided self-reports of depressive symptoms and rumination across three waves of data collection (approximately at ages 12, 15, and 17 years). Family environment was measured via observational assessment of the frequency of positive and aggressive parenting behaviors during laboratory-based interactions completed by mother-adolescent dyads, collected during the first wave. A bootstrap analysis revealed a significant indirect effect of low levels of positive maternal behavior on adolescent depressive symptoms via adolescent rumination, suggesting that rumination might mediate the relationship between low levels of positive maternal behavior and depressive symptoms for girls. This study highlights the importance of positive parenting behaviors as a possible protective factor against the development of adolescent rumination and, subsequently, depressive symptoms. One effective preventive approach to improving adolescent mental health may be providing parents with psychoeducation concerning the importance of pleasant and affirming interactions with their children. (PsycINFO Database Record (c) 2013 APA, all rights reserved)(journal abstract)

Maternal report on child outcome after a community-based program following intimate partner violence

Grip, K., Almqvist, K., & Broberg, A. G. (2012)

Abstract
BACKGROUND:
This study examined the perceived effectiveness of a 15-week community-based program for 46 children exposed to intimate partner violence (IPV) and their mothers.
AIMS:
The primary aims were to describe the children who entered one of the existing community-based programs in terms of behavioral problems and to evaluate the impact of the program on children's general behavioral functioning as assessed by their mothers.
RESULTS:
Children's rated behavioral problems (SDQ) dropped following treatment; the effect size was in the medium range. The social impairment caused by the problems decreased as well. The effect regarding behavioral problems was not related to the degree of exposure to IPV or the mothers own changes in trauma symptoms following treatment. Results were analyzed as well at the individual level with the Reliable Change Index (RCI), which showed that the majority of children were unchanged following treatment.
CONCLUSIONS:
One implication from the study is the need for baseline screening and assessment. About half of the current sample had a clinical symptom picture indicating the need for specialized psychiatric/psychotherapeutic treatment. Furthermore, the reduction in behavioral problems was significant but many children still had high levels of behavioral problems after treatment, indicating a need of a more intense or a different type of intervention.

Maternal Unresolved Attachment Status Impedes the Effectiveness of Interventions With Adolescent Mothers

MORAN, G., PEDERSON, D. R. & KRUPKA, A. (2005)

Children of adolescent mothers are at risk for a variety of developmental difficulties. In the present study, the effectiveness of a brief intervention program designed to support adolescent mothers' sensitivity to their infants' attachment signals was evaluated. Participants were adolescent mothers and their infants who were observed at 6, 12, and 24 months of age. The intervention conducted by clinically trained home visitors consisted of eight home visits between 6 and 12 months in which mothers were provided feedback during the replay of videotaped play interactions. At 12 months, 57% of the mother–infant dyads in the intervention group and 38% of the comparison group dyads were classified as secure in the Strange Situation. Seventy-six percent of the mothers in the intervention group maintained sensitivity from 6 to 24 months compared with 54% of the comparison mothers. Further analyses indicated that the intervention was effective primarily for mothers who were not classified as Unresolved on the Adult Attachment Interview.

Measurement of time processing ability and daily time management in children with disabilities

Janeslätt G, Granlund M. (2009)

Background

Improvement is needed in methods for planning and evaluating interventions designed to facilitate daily time management for children with intellectual disability, Asperger syndrome, or other developmental disorders.

Objectives

The aim of this study was to empirically investigate the hypothesized relation between children's time processing ability (TPA), daily time management, and self-rated autonomy. Such a relationship between daily time management and TPA may support the idea that TPA is important for daily time management and that children with difficulties in TPA might benefit from intervention aimed at improving daily time management.

Methods

Participants were children aged 6 to 11 years with dysfunctions such as attention-deficit/hyperactivity disorder, autism, or physical or intellectual disabilities (N = 118). TPA was measured with the instrument KaTid. All data were transformed to interval measures using applications of Rasch models and then further analysed with correlation and regression analysis.

Results

The results demonstrate a moderate significant relation between the parents' ratings of daily time management and TPA of the children, and between the self-rating of autonomy and TPA. There was also a significant relation between self-ratings of autonomy and the parents' rating of the children's daily time management. Parents' ratings of their children's daily time management explain 25% of the variation in TPA, age of the children explains 22%, while the child's self-rating of autonomy can explain 9% of the variation in TPA. The three variables together explain 38% of the variation in TPA. The results indicate the viability of the instrument for assessing TPA also in children with disabilities and that the ability measured by KaTid is relevant for daily time management.

Conclusions

TPA seems to be a factor for children's daily time management that needs to be taken into consideration when planning and evaluating interventions designed to facilitate everyday functioning for children with cognitive impairments. The findings add to the increasing knowledge base about children with time processing difficulties and contribute to better methods aimed at improving these children's daily time management. Further research is needed to examine if there are differences in TPA related to specific diagnosis or other child characteristics.

Measures used to assess burden among caregivers of stroke patients: a review

Visser-Meily JM, Post MW, Riphagen, II, Lindeman E. (2004)

Objective: To describe measures used to evaluate the burden of caregiving experienced by caregivers of stroke patients and their clinimetric properties.
Design: A review of the literature was conducted to examine burden scales with regard to concept, feasibility, internal consistency, validity, reliability and responsiveness.
Results: The literature search resulted in 45 measures of caregiver outcomes, including 16 different measures of caregiver burden. About half of the scales were used only once and were not further described. Nearly all instruments measure the various dimensions of burden (competency, negative feelings, social relations, participation problems, physical and mental health and economic aspects), but not in the same proportions. Most measures showed good internal consistency, and validity was demonstrated for all measures except one. However, not much is known about the reliability and responsiveness of these measures.
Conclusions: No measure has proven superiority above others. Future research should focus on comparisons between existing instruments and on their reliability and responsiveness.

Measuring children's participation in recreation and leisure activities: construct validation of the CAPE and PAC

King G, Law M, King S, Hurley P, Hanna S, Kertoy M, et al. (2007)

There is a need for psychometrically sound measures of children's participation in recreation and leisure activities, for both clinical and research purposes. This paper provides information about the construct validity of the Children's Assessment of Participation and Enjoyment (CAPE) and its companion measure, Preferences for Activities of Children (PAC). These measures are appropriate for children and youth with and without disabilities between the ages of 6 and 21 years. They provide information about six dimensions of participation (i.e. diversity, intensity, where, with whom, enjoyment and preference) and two categories of recreation and leisure activities: (i) formal and informal activities; and (ii) five types of activities (recreational, active physical, social, skill-based and self-improvement). This paper presents information about the performance of the CAPE and PAC activity type scores using data from a study involving 427 children with physical disabilities between the ages of 6 and 15 years. Intensity, enjoyment and preference scores were significantly correlated with environmental, family and child variables, in expected ways. Predictions also were supported with respect to differences in mean scores for boys vs. girls, and children in various age groups. The information substantiates the construct validity of the measures. The clinical and research utility of the measures are discussed.

Measuring next of kin's experience of participation in the care of older people in nursing homes

Westergren, Albert, Behm, Lina, Lindhardt, Tove, Persson, Magnus, Ahlström, Gerd (2020)

Lack of conceptual clarity and measurement methods have led to underdeveloped efforts to measure experience of participation in care by next of kin to older people in nursing homes. OBJECTIVE: We sought to assess the measurement properties of items aimed at operationalizing participation in care by next of kin, applied in nursing homes. METHODS: A total of 37 items operationalizing participation were administered via a questionnaire to 364 next of kin of older people in nursing homes. Measurement properties were tested with factor analysis and Rasch model analysis. RESULTS: The response rate to the questionnaire was 81% (n = 260). Missing responses per item varied between <0.5% and 10%. The 37 items were found to be two-dimensional, and 19 were deleted based on conceptual reasoning and Rasch model analysis. One dimension measured communication and trust (nine items, reliability 0.87) while the other measured collaboration in care (nine items, reliability 0.91). Items successfully operationalized a quantitative continuum from lower to higher degrees of participation, and were found to generally fit well with the Rasch model requirements, without disordered thresholds or differential item functioning. Total scores could be calculated based on the bifactor subscale structure (reliability 0.92). Older people (≥ 65 years) reported a higher degree of communication and trust and bifactor total scores than younger people (p < 0.05 in both cases). People with a specific contact person experienced a higher degree of participation in the two subscales and the bifactor total score (p < 0.05 in all three instances). CONCLUSION: Psychometric properties revealed satisfactory support for use, in nursing home settings, of the self-reported Next of Kin Participation in Care questionnaire, with a bifactor structure. Additional research is needed to evaluate the effectiveness of the scales' abilities to identify changes after intervention.

Measuring participation of children with disabilities: Issues and challenges.

Coster WJ, Khetani AM. (2007)

PURPOSE:
The aim of this paper is to examine conceptual issues that challenge development of valid and useful measures of children's participation.
METHOD:
Ambiguities in the current definition of participation in the International Classification of Functioning, Disability and Health (ICF) are examined along with their implications for developing valid measures for children and youth.
RESULTS:
Developers of new measures must address three key issues that will affect the ultimate meaning of participation data obtained from these instruments: uncertain criteria to distinguish activity from participation; lack of consensus on whether measures should address objective or subjective aspects of participation or both; and appropriate choice of respondent when children are the focus. Variations in how the participation construct is operationalized challenge one's ability to develop a coherent body of knowledge about children's participation and the factors that influence it.
CONCLUSION:
Given current variations in how participation is being defined, both developers and users of measures of participation need to be explicit about the definition of participation that a particular measure represents and the inferences that can be drawn from the scores.

Measuring responsive style in parents who use AAC with their children: Development and evaluation of a new instrument.

Broberg, M., Ferm, U., & Thunberg, G. (2012)

The aim of this study was to develop and evaluate an instrument - the Responsive Augmentative and Alternative Communication Style (RAACS) scale Version 2 - to assess the communicative style of parents as they interact with their children using augmentative and alternative communication (AAC). This scale was used to analyze play interactions between 43 parents and 28 children with different diagnoses (including Down syndrome, autism, cerebral palsy, and intellectual disability), aged between 12 and 60 months. Parent-child interactions were observed both before and after parent participation in ComAlong, a training course on using responsive communication and AAC to support interaction with children. Based on an analysis of the results, Version 3 of the RAACS scale was developed and is recommended for future use. Analyses of Version 3 showed acceptable inter- and intra-coder reliability, and excellent internal consistency.

Measuring risk and protective factors for substance use, delinquency, and other adolescent problem behaviors: The Communities That Care Youth Survey

Arthur MW, Hawkins JD, Pollard JA, Catalano RF, Baglioni AJ, Jr. (2002)

Risk and protective factors predictive of adolescent problem behaviors such as substance abuse and delinquency are promising targets for preventive intervention. Community planners should assess and target risk and protective factors when designing prevention programs. This study describes the development, reliability, and validity of a self-report survey instrument for adolescents ages 11 to 18 that measures an array of risk and protective factors across multiple ecological domains as well as adolescent problem behaviors. The instrument can be used to assess the epidemiology of risk and protection in youth populations and to prioritize specific risk and protective factors in specific populations as targets for preventive intervention.

Measuring risk and protective factors for substance use, delinquency, and other adolescent problem behaviors: The Communities That Care Youth Survey

Arthur MW, Hawkins JD, Pollard JA, Catalano RF, Baglioni AJ, Jr. (2002)

Risk and protective factors predictive of adolescent problem behaviors such as substance abuse and delinquency are promising targets for preventive intervention. Community planners should assess and target risk and protective factors when designing prevention programs. This study describes the development, reliability, and validity of a self-report survey instrument for adolescents ages 11 to 18 that measures an array of risk and protective factors across multiple ecological domains as well as adolescent problem behaviors. The instrument can be used to assess the epidemiology of risk and protection in youth populations and to prioritize specific risk and protective factors in specific populations as targets for preventive intervention.

Med anhörigglasögon på : så gjorde vi i Göteborg

Nilsson, I. B., Hellberg, I., & Martall, C. (2010)

Med anhörigglasögon på – så gjorde vi i Göteborg sammanfattar utvärderingen av en samverkansmodell för bättre anhörigstöd.

Kunskapsstödet är en kortversion av Med anhörigglasögon på – utvärdering av en samverkansmodell. Samverkansmodellen rör ett lokalt utvecklingsarbete med och för anhöriga kopplad till teknik och hjälpmedel.

Med målet i sikte - Målinriktad och systematisk utvärdering av insatser för enskilda personer (MOS)

Socialstyrelsen (2012)

Bland professionella som är verksamma i hälso- och sjukvård och socialtjänsten finns i dag ett stort intresse för att följa upp och utvärdera den egna praktiken. Man vill veta om insatserna ger det förväntade resultatet, om klientens problem minskar eller om klientens välbefinnande ökar. Men hur går man till väga för att få relevant och tillförlitlig kunskap om klienternas förbättring och insatsens betydelse?

I denna bok presenteras MOS – målinriktad och systematisk utvärdering av insatser för enskilda personer. MOS är ett sätt att följa upp och utvärdera den egna praktiken och ett verktyg som hjälper professionella och klienter att hålla fokus på det förbättringsmål som klienten vill uppnå i varje led av processen. MOS bygger på Single system designs (SSD) en utvärderingsmetod som länge använts i USA, där den utvecklades redan under 1970-talet. I engelskspråkig litteratur används även andra namn, t.ex. Single subject designs [10] eller Single case experimental designs [1]

I Sverige har detta sätt att utvärdera prövats och använts inom bl.a. rehabilitering och habilitering [5]. Inom socialtjänsten har den endast använts i mindre omfattning. På svenska finns endast några kortare beskrivningar [5,6,11]. En handledning som visar hur metoden ska användas saknas. Därför har denna bok skrivits.

Medication compliance in older individuals with depression: gaining the views of family carers

Boyle, E., & Chambers, M. (2000)

Documented evidence indicates that medication non-compliance for the older person is a common and poorly understood problem. This paper reports on a pilot study, which used a focus group interview to explore carers' attitudes, experiences and perceptions regarding medication compliance for their older depressed relative. It aimed to understand the problems and challenges encountered by carers in respect of their relative being non-compliant, and provide material to develop a comprehensive educational and support package to promote antidepressant compliance. A convenience sample of seven carers participated in the focus group and a qualitative analysis of the interview identified a number of key issues. Carers had little knowledge of depression, they were not well informed regarding antidepressant medication and they took an active role to ensure compliance. The focus group highlighted the need for health care professionals to promote and encourage carers to be part of the older individuals treatment programme and provide concise and unambiguous educational information in relation to antidepressants and the importance of compliance.

Medicinsk omvårdnad vid svåra flerfunktionshinder : handbok

Ölund, Ann-Kristin (2012)

Att leva med stora funktionsnedsättningar innebär att vara beroende av god medicinsk omvårdnad. Den här handboken ger kunskap om varför funktionshindren uppstår, hur det påverkar kroppen och hur den praktiska omvårdnaden i vardagen kan utföras på bästa sätt

Medicinsk omvårdnad vid svåra flerfunktionshinder. Handbok.

Ölund A-K. (2012)

Det här är en handbok som beskriver den medicinska omvårdnaden om personer med svåra flerfunktionshinder. Den tar upp symtom på olika problem, vilka behandlingsalternativ som finns och hur den praktiska omvårdnaden går till.

Boken riktar sig till alla som möter personer med flerfunktionshinder - anhöriga, assistenter, vårdpersonal - men också till habiliteringens personal. Den förmedlar fakta och kunskap på ett sätt som både går på djupet och är lättillgängligt.

Boken är tydligt uppdelad på olika kapitel som sömn, smärta och epilepsi, och kan därför även användas som uppslagsbok. Längst bak finns en omfattande lista med referenser och tips på vidare läsning.

Författare är Ann-Kristin Ölund, habiliteringsläkare och barnneruolog. Hon har över 20 års erfarenhet av praktiskt arbete med barn med flerfunktionshinder vid habiliteringarna i Uppsala och i Norrbotten. Boken är skriven med värme och en önskan om att personer med flerfunktionshinder ska kunna utvecklas efter sina unika förutsättningar.

Röster från läsare
"Denna bok fungerar utmärkt som uppslagsbok då den är indelad i tydliga kapitel utifrån möjliga problemområden, t.ex. spasticitet, smärta och epilepsi. Den är skriven på ett enkelt och lättförståeligt sätt med flera förklarande bilder samt tips- och faktarutor. Detta gör att den lämpar sig väl för närstående så väl som vårdpersonal. Ann-Kristin Ölunds mångåriga erfarenhet som läkare med praktiskt arbete med habilitering av personer med flerfunktionshinder gör att bokens innehåll känns kärnfullt och relevant."

Meeting the needs of parentally bereaved children: a framework for child-centered parenting

Saldinger, A., Porterfield, K., & Cain, A.C. (2004)

Abstract
This article describes the development and deployment of a framework for measuring parenting capacities in the context of bereavement. Grounded theoretical analysis of interviews with a community sample of 41 bereaved spouses with school-aged children elicited a set of nine bereavement-specific parenting tasks. A corollary coding system (covering all nine parenting tasks) was created to transform interview materials into quantitative data, thus permitting systematic empirical investigation of the parenting capacities of bereaved spouses. Parenting behaviors were coded on a 5-point scale ranging from least child-centered to most child-centered. Sex of surviving parent and circumstances of death proved to be significant mediating variables: mothers were more child-centered than fathers, and parents surviving sudden deaths more child-centered than those surviving anticipated deaths. Lengthy illness was associated with less child-centered parenting. The more child-centered the parenting, the less symptomatic the child as measured by parent report (Child Behavior Checklist) and child self-report (Children's Depression Inventory, Revised Child Manifest Anxiety Scale). Child-centered parenting was associated with more positive and fewer negative perceptions of the surviving parent by the child as measured by the Parent Perception Inventory. Implications of findings are discussed.

Men and older persons also care, but how much? Assessing amounts of caregiving in Spain and Sweden

Sundström Gerdt, Jegermalm Magnus, Abellán Antonio, Ayala Alba (2018)

Abstract [en]

We estimate how much caregiving men and women respectively do, and how much of the caregiving is done by older (65+) and younger persons, inside their household and for other households, in Spain and in Sweden. To assess this, we use self-reported hours of caregiving from two national surveys about caregiving, performed in 2014 (Spain, N = 2003; Sweden, N = 1193). Spain and Sweden have dissimilar household structures, and different social services for older (65+) persons. Caregivers, on average, provide many more hours of care in Spain than in Sweden. Women provide about 58% of all hours of caregiving, in Spain in all age groups, in Sweden only among younger caregivers. The reason is the dominance of partner caregivers among older Swedes, with older men and women providing equal hours of care. Family caregiving inside the household is more extensive in the more complex Spanish households than in Swedish households. Family care between households prevails in Sweden, where the large majority of older persons live with a partner only, or alone. This is increasingly common in Spain, although it remains at a lower level. We estimate that older persons provide between 22% and 33% of all hours of caregiving in Spain, and between 41% and 49% in Sweden. Patterns of caregiving appear to be determined mainly by demography and household structure.

Omsorg människor emellan. En översikt av omsorgsgivande i den svenska befolkningen. (förf. Malmberg B. & Sundström G.).

Socialstyrelsen (2006)

Omsorg som ges av anhöriga och närstående är omfattande i alla åldrar och regioner i Sverige, men allra mest bland personer i gruppen 45-64 år, då denna omfattar tre av tio personer. Det finns tecken på att omsorg ökar generellt, men omfattningen beror delvis på hur frågorna ställs: från cirka 10 till väl över 20 procent av befolkningen ger omsorg, beroende på hur man definierar vård och omsorg. Omkring 7 procent ger mer omfattande och in¬tensiv omsorg, med dagliga insatser och med inslag av personlig omvårdnad.

Den exakta nivån för omsorgen är svår att fastställa, men den är i varje fall hög och väl i nivå med den informella omsorgen i andra länder. Intensiteten - tidsinsatsen - är dock möjligen mindre än i t.ex. Spanien. En viktig skillnad är också att nordisk omsorg mest sker mellan hushåll, den kontinentalsydeuropeiska mer inom hushållen.

En stor men ingalunda total del av omsorgen riktar sig till äldre personer. Intressant är att även äldre ofta är omsorgsgivare, för partner och andra. Omsorgsgivandet förefaller vara något mer jämställt i Sverige än på kontinenten, dvs. svenska män är omsorgsgivare nästan lika ofta som kvinnor, om än inte lika intensivt, och partneromsorg är ganska jämställd i Sverige. Anhörigomsorg tycks i Sverige vara klasslös, dvs. ungefär lika vanlig i alla samhällsskikt.

Arbete och omsorg låter sig ofta förenas, både för män och för kvinnor. Orsaken är troligen att omsorgsgivande är vanligast i åldrar då många av andra skäl "trappat ned" förvärvsarbetet och att omsorgen mer sällan är omfattande, daglig och "tung" - för de flesta.

Konsekvenser för arbetslivet får omsorgen ibland, men i stort sett endast när det handlar om omsorg för partner, föräldrar eller vuxna barn. Totalt är cirka var femte yrkesverksam också omsorgsgivare. Dessa tycks inte generellt ha sämre hälsa än de som inte har ett sådant åtagande. Om något gäller det motsatta, dvs. att omsorgsgivare har bättre hälsa än de som inte är omsorgsgivare. I en mindre grupp som vårdar partner eller annan nära anhörig kan dock hälsoproblem förekomma.

Anhörigomsorg i Sverige och offentlig omsorg, främst hemtjänst, överlappar ofta varandra. Detta gäller särskilt hjälp till ensamboende äldre, en stor mottagargrupp. Många anhöriga klarar på egen hand sitt åtagande, men åtskilliga uttrycker också behov av offentligt stöd. Sådant stöd måste troligen ta sig olika former å ena sidan för dem som hjälper någon de bor tillsammans med och å andra sidan för dem - majoriteten - som hjälper någon i ett annat hushåll. Där är sannolikt en utbyggd och välfungerande hemtjänst och annan öppen omsorg ofta en lämplig stödform.

Mer än en miljon svenskar är i dag omsorgsgivare för närstående. En del av den ökning man iakttagit beror troligen på ökande behov, men avspeglar nog också allmänt växande sociala nätverk: fler anhöriga betyder mer omsorgsgivande. Till en del kan ökande anhörigomsorg nog också härledas till att den offentliga omsorgen krympt i relation till hjälpbehoven i befolkningen.

Omsorg som arbete : om utbildning, arbetsmiljö och relationer i äldre- och handikappomsorgen

Ahnlund, P (2008)

Background: At the central administrative level in Sweden, care work is presented as a complex task for which personnel require special qualifications. In elderly care, questions of training and qualifications form the highly topical theme noticed by central actors. According to The National Board of Health and Welfare, the supply of manpower and the educational levels of the workers are the most important factors in ensuring high quality care for the elderly. The question of educational levels is, however, with the exception of personal assistants, not given as much attention in care for people with disabilities.Aim: The aim of this dissertation is firstly to compare elderly care and care for persons with disabilities with the focus to describe and analyse education and work environment in these sectors. Secondly, the aim is to analyse if, and if so how, questions of education interacts with personnel's view of the social work environment.Methods: The thesis is comprised of four studies and paper 1, 2 and 3 are based on the results of a qualitative interview study, which was comprised of 48 persons who worked in elderly care and the care for persons with disabilities. Of the 48 persons who took part in the study, 11 of them worked as middle managers and 37 worked as care workers in the every day care. Paper 4 consists of a research summary on how education for care workers is being studied in a Swedish and an international context.The personnel who participated in the interview study work in different care settings; in elderly care the personnel work in both sheltered housing and public home care services. In the care for disabled persons, the personnel work in residential housing with special services, in public daily activities for people with intellectual disabilities and as personal assistants.Result: Both managers and personnel find it important for care workers to have a degree of educational background as a basis for the learning process at the work place. The results also show that educational levels and the work environment are themes that are discussed differently by different actors. In previous research on education for care workers in both elderly care and the care for People with disabilities, academic education or education at a ground level has been seen as problematic due to the distance it is said to create between the worker and the care recipient. My results show that the discussion about education for care workers has become rather biased, and that highly educated personnel tend to be more aware of the power they possesses and that the relation to the care receiver is important. In elderly care the issue of education seems to be more a question of a general educational level. In the care for people with disabilities, the question of education for personnel is on a more individual basis, where the care workers learn together with the care recipient. Educational levels, the work environment and relations with colleagues and care recipients are connected and support from the managers is important for understanding the work and the relational perspective.

Omsorgens pris i åtstramningstid A nhörigomsorg för äldre ur ett könsperspektiv

Petra Ulmanen (2015)

Avhandling

För många är det en självklarhet att ge anhörigomsorg, det vill säga hjälpa en anhörig som har en funktionsnedsättning eller långvarig sjukdom och inte kan klara sig på egen hand. Det kan upplevas som meningsfullt, utvecklande och tillfredsställande, samtidigt som det innebär extraarbete och oro för den som behöver omsorgen. Denna avhandling handlar om anhörigomsorg för äldre personer i Sverige, främst de medelålders döttrarnas och sönernas hjälp till sina gamla föräldrar. Vad betyder det för äldres anhöriga att äldreomsorgen har minskat ända sedan 1980 och att var fjärde plats i äldreboende har försvunnit under 2000-talets första decennium? Har anhörigomsorgen ökat och hur påverkas omsorgsgivarnas liv, framförallt deras arbetsliv?

Omsorgens pris i åtstramningstid. Anhörigomsorg för äldre ur ett könsperspektiv. Rapport i socialt arbete nr. 150

Ulmanen, P. (2015)

För många är det en självklarhet att ge anhörigomsorg, det vill säga hjälpa en anhörig som har en funktionsnedsättning eller långvarig sjukdom och inte kan klara sig på egen hand. Det kan upplevas som meningsfullt, utvecklande och tillfredsställande, samtidigt som det innebär extraarbete och oro för den som behöver omsorgen. Denna avhandling handlar om anhörigomsorg för äldre personer i Sverige, främst de medelålders döttrarnas och sönernas hjälp till sina gamla föräldrar. Vad betyder det för äldres anhöriga att äldreomsorgen har minskat ända sedan 1980 och att var fjärde plats i äldreboende har försvunnit under 2000-talets första decennium? Har anhörigomsorgen ökat och hur påverkas omsorgsgivarnas liv, framförallt deras arbetsliv? Hur vanligt är det med psykiska påfrestningar, svårigheter att fokusera på arbetet eller att gå ner i arbetstid till följd av omsorgsgivandet? Hur har äldreomsorgspolitiken sett på anhöriga till äldre personer och deras roll i omsorgen om äldre från 1950-talet fram till idag? Har äldreomsorg setts som ett sätt att tillgodose inte enbart äldres omsorgsbehov, utan även anhörigas behov av att förvärvsarbeta?

Petra Ulmanen söker svar på dessa frågor genom analyser av såväl surveyundersökningar som regeringens propositioner om äldreomsorg.

Ulmanen, P. (2015). Omsorgens pris i åstramningstid. Anhörigomsorg för äldre ur ett könsperspektiv. Diss. Stockholm: Stockhoms universitet, institutionen för socialt arbete. (Rapport i socialt arbete nr. 150)

Omsorgstjänster för äldre och funktionshindrade: skilda villkor, skilda trender?

Szebehely M, Trydegård GB. (2007)

Välfärdsstatens insatser för personer med funktionshinder och för äldre människor särskiljs sällan i statistik och forskning. När, som i denna artikel, verksamheterna separeras, blir det tydligt att de båda välfärdstjänsterna under senare år har utvecklats åt skilda håll. Ekonomiska resurser, tjänsternas omfattning och personalens arbetsvillkor skiljer sig påtagligt mellan äldre- och handikappomsorgen, och gränsen mellan statens, familjens och marknadens roller har förskjutits på olika sätt.

Omvårdnad i barnsjukvården

Tveiten, S. (2000)

Vilka specifika faktorer har betydelse i omvårdnad av barn? Vilka utvecklingspsykologiska faktorer behöver sjuksköterskan ha kunskap om? Hur reagerar barn vid inläggning på sjukhus? Hur ska sjuksköterskan samarbeta med det sjuka barnets föräldrar och syskon? God omvårdnad av barn kräver speciell kompetens.

On Chronic Illness and Quality of Life: A Conceptual Framework

Nordenfelt, Lennart (1995)

In this paper I focus on the topic of chronic illness in the context of quality of life. I offer a conceptual explanation of these notions and then try to systematise the various species of suffering connected with chronic illness. Suffering in illness rarely attracts systematic analysis. Part of the reason for this is that the topic is in a way an aspect of common sense. It has an air of self-evidence and seems not to require analysis. However, it is my contention that the nature of human suffering is not at all self-evident. In many ways we know very little about the content and extent of suffering. And, although it may not be sensible to borrow traditional scientific techniques for the study of suffering, we need as much intellectual penetration and rigorous analysis in order to clarify the nature of suffering as for any other scientific investigation. Moreover, there are good reasons for saying that we ought to direct much more of our attention to this humanistic aspect of medicine. We ought to remember that the existence of suffering is one of the main motives, if indeed not the most important motive, for undertaking the medical enterprise.

On health, ability and activity: Comments on some basic notions in the ICF

Nordenfelt L. (2006)

Purpose. The purpose of this article is to highlight and at the same time criticize the holistic view of health expressed in the "International Classification of Functioning, Disability and Health (ICF)". Particular attention will be paid to the idea suggested in the ICF that not only the ability to perform a specified action but also its actual performance is included in the person's health. My argument intends to show that this is an untenable position.
Method. The theoretical platform of this paper is philosophical action theory. My argument makes particular use of the distinctions between ability, opportunity, activity and will. My analysis also uses some insights from the contemporary philosophical discussion of health concepts.
Conclusions. Ability (or capacity) and its opposite disability (or incapacity) are essential ingredients in the implicit philosophy of health of the ICF. However, the ICF also puts an emphasis on the actual performance of actions. This is entailed by the performance qualifier that is included in the ICF. I give some arguments for questioning the relevance of this qualifier if it is intended to have a place in the concept of health or have a general function for decisions in health care or rehabilitation. Instead I suggest the introduction of an opportunity qualifier, which could fulfill some of the purposes intended for the performance qualifier.

On loving and hating my mentally retarded mother

Ronai, Carol Rambo (1997)

This article explores why I love and hate my mother. It is a
retrospective and ongoing participant observation of the phenomenon
of being the daughter of a mother with mental retardation. In it,
I make use of a layered account, an experimental, postmodern,
ethnographic reporting format which enables the researcher to use
as many resources as possible including social theory, lived
experience, and emotions. By using my own experience, I explore,
through first person narrative, the complex issues and emotions
involved. My conclusion is that the situation is fraught with
ambivalence because my present interactions with my mother are cast
in the light of a past where my mother simultaneously neglected and
protected me.

Online counselling: The motives and experiences of young people who choose the Internet instead of face to face or telephone counselling

King, R., Bambling, M., Lloyd, C., Gomurra, R., Smith, S., Reid, W., & Wegner, K. (2006)

This study used a Consensual Qualitative Research methodology to explore the motivations and experiences of young people who utilize the Internet for counselling over other counselling media. Semi-structured online group interviews (focus groups) were conducted with 39 participants from the Kids Help Line, a 24-hour national telephone and counselling service located in Australia. Analysis revealed five domains relevant to the adolescents' motives and experiences and the frequency of categories within and across cases were analyzed to generate and understand themes and patterns. Specific motivators and barriers are identified and discussed, as are implications for practice and continued research.

Online self-help tools for the relatives of persons with depression - a feasibility study

Stjernswärd S, Östman M, Löwgren J. (2012)

Background: The Internet's potential as health care tool should be explored. Aim: One objective was to determine the feasibility of constructing a digitally based tool through an iterative design process in cooperation with potential users. The tool's purpose is to alleviate hardships in daily life of relatives of persons with depression. An additional aim was to explore motivation and hindrances to using the tool as a basis for design decisions. Method: An iterative design approach, including data collection through focus groups and with paper and web-based prototypes, was used. Results: Cooperation with potential users, using an iterative design process, was valuable in developing the digitally based tool. Motivations (i.e. to create understanding and rehabilitate oneself) and hindrances (i.e. lack of time or energy) to using the tool were illuminated. Design decisions were based on consideration towards participants' privacy concerns, needs of support and the depression's influence on the relatives' daily life. Conclusion: Prototypes and cooperation with potential users were essential and valuable for the iterative development of the website.

Online self-help tools for the relatives of persons with depression - a feasibility study

Stjernswärd S, Östman M, Löwgren J. (2012)

Background: The Internet's potential as health care tool should be explored. Aim: One objective was to determine the feasibility of constructing a digitally based tool through an iterative design process in cooperation with potential users. The tool's purpose is to alleviate hardships in daily life of relatives of persons with depression. An additional aim was to explore motivation and hindrances to using the tool as a basis for design decisions. Method: An iterative design approach, including data collection through focus groups and with paper and web-based prototypes, was used. Results: Cooperation with potential users, using an iterative design process, was valuable in developing the digitally based tool. Motivations (i.e. to create understanding and rehabilitate oneself) and hindrances (i.e. lack of time or energy) to using the tool were illuminated. Design decisions were based on consideration towards participants' privacy concerns, needs of support and the depression's influence on the relatives' daily life. Conclusion: Prototypes and cooperation with potential users were essential and valuable for the iterative development of the website.

Operation slutstirrat

Anna Pella (2018)

Funkisfamiljen är en ny barnboksserie för barn 6-9 år om hur det är att växa upp med ett syskon som har en funktionsnedsättning. Den handlar om huvudpersonen Vide, 8 år, samt syskonen Tintin, 5 år, och Mio, 10 år. Mio har en medfödd hjärnskada och kan inte gå eller tala.

Seriens första bok, Operation slutstirrat, handlar om bemötande och hur det känns när ett barn på skolgården undrar om Mio är en riktig människa. Hur ska Vide göra med alla som frågar, undrar eller stirrar på Mio? Samtidigt som det är pinsamt blir Vide väldigt arg när det händer och det händer ofta. Tillsammans med sin nya klasskompis och sina syskon försöker Vide komma på sätt att handskas med situationer som uppstår.

Boken är skriven av journalisten Anna Pella som har sin egen familj som förlaga till böckerna. Anna Pellas första bok När du ler stannar tiden är en dagbok till hennes dotter Agnes som föddes med en svår hjärnskada. Den har uppmärksammats i flera stora medier, bland annat i Svt:s program "När livet vänder".

Anna Forsmark som illustrerat boken använder humor, värme och mycket detaljer i sina illustrationer. Hon har tidigare illustrerat boken Lilla nej-boken och Lek istället för bråk: 64 lekar för att förenkla vardagen med barn.

Optimism, social support, and well-being in mothers of children with autism spectrum disorder

Ekas, N. V., D. M. Lickenbrock, et al. (2010)

This study used structural equation modeling to examine the relationship between multiple sources of social support (e.g., partner, family, and friends), optimism, and well-being among mothers of children with ASD. Social support was examined as a mediator and moderator of the optimism-maternal well-being relationship. Moreover, the role of optimism as a mediator of the social support-maternal well-being relationship was also evaluated. Results revealed that family support was associated with increased optimism that, in turn, predicted higher levels of positive maternal outcomes and lower levels of negative maternal outcomes. In addition, partner and friend support were directly associated with maternal outcomes. Implications for the development of interventions directed at increasing the quality of social support networks are discussed. (PsycINFO Database Record (c) 2012 APA, all rights reserved)(journal abstract)

Ordinary families, special children

Seligman, Milton & Darling, Rosalyn Benjamin (2007)

This popular clinical reference and text provides a multisystems perspective on childhood disability and its effects on family life. The volume examines how child, family, ecological, and sociocultural variables intertwine to shape the ways families respond to disability, and how professionals can promote coping, adaptation, and empowerment. Accessible and engaging, the book integrates theory and research with vignettes and firsthand reflections from family members.

Organiserande av stöd och service till barn med funktionshinder. Om projektnät, språkliga förpackningar och institutionella paradoxer

Larsson, M. (2001)

Avhandlingen är en studie av hur stöd och service organiseras kring fyra barn med funktionshinder och deras familjer. I denna service är normalt flera olika formella organisationer involverade, som barnhabilitering, förskola/skola/särskola, hjälpmedelscentral, assistentorganisationer, sjukvård m fl. Dessutom kan barnets och familjens situation vara komplicerad på många sätt. Själva funktionshindret kan vara komplext och förändras över tid. Familjens situation är också beroende av en mängd andra faktorer än själva funktionshindret.

Att organisera servicen innebär att konstruera insatser, att få dem att fungera, och att samordna med allt annat som sker. Både i litteraturen och i familjers berättelser beskrivs ofta svårigheter och brister i detta organiserande. Studien syftar därför till att undersöka hur organiserandet i praktiken går till, och vilka dess förutsättningar är.

Avhandlingen bygger på en undersökning av service och stöd kring fyra familjer med funktionshindrade barn. Barnens ålder varierade mellan 2 och 9 år, och de hade både fysiska och psykiska funktionshinder. Sammanlagt gjordes 83 intervjuer med involverad personal och föräldrar. Dessutom observerades 15 möten mellan personal och föräldrar, som i huvudsak fungerar som bakgrundsmaterial.

Själva organiserandet uppfattas i studien som ett begriplighetsskapande. Verkligheten ses som mångtydig, och genom att en gemensam förståelse skapas, ordnas och organiseras också handlingar. Servicen blir begriplig "som" just service på ett sätt som gör att den blir praktiskt möjlig att genomföra. Övriga involverade förstår vad som ska ske och hur de behöver bidra till det. Begriplighetsskapandet har vidare studerats som ett språkligt fenomen. Det är i språket som handlingar ges innebörder, och kan beskrivas på ett sätt så att man vet vad man kan förvänta sig framöver. Vidare är det genom språket som olika aktörer tar på sig ansvar för att utföra saker, och beskriva vad det är de tänker göra. Med hjälp av begreppet "språkliga förpackningar" undersöks hur ett gemensamt organiserande språk används. En språklig förpackning är en beskrivning av det man gör (eller tänker göra) som gör det begripligt för andra. Handlingen "förpackas" på ett sätt som gör den begriplig och rimlig.

Genom att undersöka hur de olika intervjupersonerna beskriver det de är engagerade i kring det enskilda barnet blir "projekt" synliga, som det sätt som insatser är ordnade. Inom ett projekt hänger insatser och handlingar samman, medan de mellan projekten är mer oberoende. Den övergripande strukturen på servicen är ett löst sammanhållet knippe av sådana projekt.

Organiserandet av verksamheten handlar också om hur praktiken begripliggörs som just insatser och service, och som något som bildar projekt. I en närgången analys av beskrivningarna i intervjuer och på möten har fyra aspekter av organiserandet kunnat särskiljas. För det första betecknas aktörernas aktiviteter på specifika sätt, och för det andra kontextualiseras beteckningarna på ett sätt som ger dem mening och innebörd. För det tredje konstrueras bilder av det funktionshindrade barnet, genom att vissa sidor av barnet fokuseras och lyfts fram. Bilderna av barnet är vävs samman med själva beskrivningen av insatserna, och fungerar som redskap för att förklara vad det är man gör, och motivera att man är engagerad i det. För det fjärde intar aktörerna egna positioner, genom de sätt de beskriver sin praktik och med hjälp av bilderna av barnet. Vanliga positioner är t ex för personalens del "professionell" och "kompetent", eller för föräldrarnas del "kompetent förälder".

De fyra aspekterna vävs samman i organiserandet och begripliggörandet av servicen. Det är genom en rimlig kombination av dem som en begriplig och trovärdig service kan etableras och upprätthållas.

I en vidare analys av organiserandets förutsättningar identifierades sex "institutionaliserade element", som fungerar som taget-för-givna utgångspunkter för servicen: familjecentrering, barnfokusering, utvecklingsorientering, expertrationalitet, användande av professionella diskurser, samt standardiserade former som "träning en gång i veckan". Dessa element är den grund på vilken servicen konstrueras och upprätthålls. Samtidigt finns det i den ordning som elementen utgör både motsättningar och paradoxer, tillsammans med vissa språkliga verktyg och strategier som de hanteras och "de-paradoxifieras" med. I studien diskuteras fyra paradoxer: fragmentering genom professionella diskurser, barnfokuseringens motsägelsefulla praktik, motsättning mellan expertrationalitet och familjecentrering, samt spänningen mellan institutionella projekt och lokal verklighet. Mot bakgrund av hur denna institutionalitet formar vilka projekt som är möjliga, och vilka positioner som aktörerna därmed erbjuds, beskrivs servicen slutligen som "projektnät".

I avhandlingen diskuteras resultaten både i relation till annan litteratur och till praktiken. En huvudpunkt är att organiserandet av servicen är något som ständigt pågår, som en aspekt av den konkreta servicen, snarare än något utöver denna. Alla aktörer är därmed konstant involverade i organiserandet, och frågan handlar mer om hur det görs, än om huruvida det behöver göras. En annan huvudpunkt är beskrivningen av två olika former av handlingslogik. Ofta beskrivs handling som något som syftar till ett visst mål, och den som handlar som någon som försöker göra detta så effektivt och bra som möjligt. I kontrast mot denna rationalitetslogik kan en lämplighetslogik beskrivas, där aktörer strävar efter att göra det som är lämpligt i en viss situation, givet hur man förstår situationen och sin egen position och roll i den. Denna lämplighetslogik stämmer väl med hur servicen beskrivits i studien. Med hjälp av denna logik kan svårigheten att genomföra vissa förändringar, t ex införande av individuella planer, förstås från ett nytt perspektiv. Det handlar då mindre om individuella attityder eller individuell kompetens, än om hur servicen i grunden är organiserad, och hur dessa förutsättningar kan hanteras i praktiken.

För det praktiska organiserandet diskuteras möjligheten att ta tillvara de resurser som finns i punkter där olika aspekter av servicen knyts samman. Det handlar om möten mellan personal och föräldrar, assistenter som är involverade i huvuddelen av servicen, samt kring vissa tekniska hjälpmedel. Möjligheterna att utveckla ett flexibelt organiserande är vidare beroende av aktörernas förmåga att aktivt reflektera och pröva alternativa perspektiv. Att utveckla det praktiska organiserande innebär då att odla denna reflektionsförmåga, bland annat för att finna nya sätt att ta tillvara de resurser som finns där servicen knyts samman. (Less)

Organiserande av stöd och service till barn med funktionshinder. Om projektnät, språkliga förpackningar och institutionella paradoxer.

Larsson, M. (2001)

Avhandlingen är en studie av hur stöd och service organiseras kring fyra barn med funktionshinder och deras familjer. I denna service är normalt flera olika formella organisationer involverade, som barnhabilitering, förskola/skola/särskola, hjälpmedelscentral, assistentorganisationer, sjukvård m fl. Dessutom kan barnets och familjens situation vara komplicerad på många sätt. Själva funktionshindret kan vara komplext och förändras över tid. Familjens situation är också beroende av en mängd andra faktorer än själva funktionshindret.

Att organisera servicen innebär att konstruera insatser, att få dem att fungera, och att samordna med allt annat som sker. Både i litteraturen och i familjers berättelser beskrivs ofta svårigheter och brister i detta organiserande. Studien syftar därför till att undersöka hur organiserandet i praktiken går till, och vilka dess förutsättningar är.

Avhandlingen bygger på en undersökning av service och stöd kring fyra familjer med funktionshindrade barn. Barnens ålder varierade mellan 2 och 9 år, och de hade både fysiska och psykiska funktionshinder. Sammanlagt gjordes 83 intervjuer med involverad personal och föräldrar. Dessutom observerades 15 möten mellan personal och föräldrar, som i huvudsak fungerar som bakgrundsmaterial.

Själva organiserandet uppfattas i studien som ett begriplighetsskapande. Verkligheten ses som mångtydig, och genom att en gemensam förståelse skapas, ordnas och organiseras också handlingar. Servicen blir begriplig "som" just service på ett sätt som gör att den blir praktiskt möjlig att genomföra. Övriga involverade förstår vad som ska ske och hur de behöver bidra till det. Begriplighetsskapandet har vidare studerats som ett språkligt fenomen. Det är i språket som handlingar ges innebörder, och kan beskrivas på ett sätt så att man vet vad man kan förvänta sig framöver. Vidare är det genom språket som olika aktörer tar på sig ansvar för att utföra saker, och beskriva vad det är de tänker göra. Med hjälp av begreppet "språkliga förpackningar" undersöks hur ett gemensamt organiserande språk används. En språklig förpackning är en beskrivning av det man gör (eller tänker göra) som gör det begripligt för andra. Handlingen "förpackas" på ett sätt som gör den begriplig och rimlig.

Genom att undersöka hur de olika intervjupersonerna beskriver det de är engagerade i kring det enskilda barnet blir "projekt" synliga, som det sätt som insatser är ordnade. Inom ett projekt hänger insatser och handlingar samman, medan de mellan projekten är mer oberoende. Den övergripande strukturen på servicen är ett löst sammanhållet knippe av sådana projekt.

Organiserandet av verksamheten handlar också om hur praktiken begripliggörs som just insatser och service, och som något som bildar projekt. I en närgången analys av beskrivningarna i intervjuer och på möten har fyra aspekter av organiserandet kunnat särskiljas. För det första betecknas aktörernas aktiviteter på specifika sätt, och för det andra kontextualiseras beteckningarna på ett sätt som ger dem mening och innebörd. För det tredje konstrueras bilder av det funktionshindrade barnet, genom att vissa sidor av barnet fokuseras och lyfts fram. Bilderna av barnet är vävs samman med själva beskrivningen av insatserna, och fungerar som redskap för att förklara vad det är man gör, och motivera att man är engagerad i det. För det fjärde intar aktörerna egna positioner, genom de sätt de beskriver sin praktik och med hjälp av bilderna av barnet. Vanliga positioner är t ex för personalens del "professionell" och "kompetent", eller för föräldrarnas del "kompetent förälder".

De fyra aspekterna vävs samman i organiserandet och begripliggörandet av servicen. Det är genom en rimlig kombination av dem som en begriplig och trovärdig service kan etableras och upprätthållas.

I en vidare analys av organiserandets förutsättningar identifierades sex "institutionaliserade element", som fungerar som taget-för-givna utgångspunkter för servicen: familjecentrering, barnfokusering, utvecklingsorientering, expertrationalitet, användande av professionella diskurser, samt standardiserade former som "träning en gång i veckan". Dessa element är den grund på vilken servicen konstrueras och upprätthålls. Samtidigt finns det i den ordning som elementen utgör både motsättningar och paradoxer, tillsammans med vissa språkliga verktyg och strategier som de hanteras och "de-paradoxifieras" med. I studien diskuteras fyra paradoxer: fragmentering genom professionella diskurser, barnfokuseringens motsägelsefulla praktik, motsättning mellan expertrationalitet och familjecentrering, samt spänningen mellan institutionella projekt och lokal verklighet. Mot bakgrund av hur denna institutionalitet formar vilka projekt som är möjliga, och vilka positioner som aktörerna därmed erbjuds, beskrivs servicen slutligen som "projektnät".

I avhandlingen diskuteras resultaten både i relation till annan litteratur och till praktiken. En huvudpunkt är att organiserandet av servicen är något som ständigt pågår, som en aspekt av den konkreta servicen, snarare än något utöver denna. Alla aktörer är därmed konstant involverade i organiserandet, och frågan handlar mer om hur det görs, än om huruvida det behöver göras. En annan huvudpunkt är beskrivningen av två olika former av handlingslogik. Ofta beskrivs handling som något som syftar till ett visst mål, och den som handlar som någon som försöker göra detta så effektivt och bra som möjligt. I kontrast mot denna rationalitetslogik kan en lämplighetslogik beskrivas, där aktörer strävar efter att göra det som är lämpligt i en viss situation, givet hur man förstår situationen och sin egen position och roll i den. Denna lämplighetslogik stämmer väl med hur servicen beskrivits i studien. Med hjälp av denna logik kan svårigheten att genomföra vissa förändringar, t ex införande av individuella planer, förstås från ett nytt perspektiv. Det handlar då mindre om individuella attityder eller individuell kompetens, än om hur servicen i grunden är organiserad, och hur dessa förutsättningar kan hanteras i praktiken.

För det praktiska organiserandet diskuteras möjligheten att ta tillvara de resurser som finns i punkter där olika aspekter av servicen knyts samman. Det handlar om möten mellan personal och föräldrar, assistenter som är involverade i huvuddelen av servicen, samt kring vissa tekniska hjälpmedel. Möjligheterna att utveckla ett flexibelt organiserande är vidare beroende av aktörernas förmåga att aktivt reflektera och pröva alternativa perspektiv. Att utveckla det praktiska organiserande innebär då att odla denna reflektionsförmåga, bland annat för att finna nya sätt att ta tillvara de resurser som finns där servicen knyts samman.

Oskars pappa har en CP-skada

Eva-Lena Söderlund (2016)

illustrationer: Eva Akne

Barn/ungdom

Här får vi en beskrivning av hur det kan vara att ha en förälder med CP-skada.

Outcome studies of family therapy in child and adolescent depression

Cottrell D. (2003)

There is surprisingly little good-quality evidence for the effectiveness of family systemic interventions with child and adolescent depression given the prevalence of depression and the demonstrated association with a range of family factors. What studies there are suggest the possibility of family therapy being an effective intervention but more research is needed before firm conclusions may be drawn. Family interventions may be more effective in children than in adolescents and where other family members are depressed. It is possible that family interventions continue to bring about improvement in symptoms after cessation of treatment. What research there is evaluates older structural models of therapy: there is a real need for more evaluation of newer models of practice.

Outcomes of an educational intervention for the family of a person with bipolar disorder: a 2-year follow-up study

Jönsson, P., Wijk, H., Danielsson, E., & Skärsäter, I. (2011)

This study aimed to analyse the outcomes of an educational intervention for family members living with a person with bipolar disorder. A longitudinal study was conducted comprising a 10-session educational intervention designed for families with members in outpatient mental health care. Thirty-four family members agreed to participate. Data were collected on five occasions, at baseline and during a 2-year follow-up through self-assessment instruments: the Carers of Older People in Europe Index, the Jalowiec Coping Scale-40, the Sense of Coherence questionnaire and the Social Adaptation Self-evaluation Scale. The results showed that the condition had a considerable negative impact on the family members as carers, but the educational intervention increased their understanding, which facilitated the management of their lives. A significant improvement in stress management was seen over time and social functioning was retained. The study showed that families living with one member with bipolar disorder benefited from the educational intervention in terms of increasing understanding of the condition and reducing stress. Mental health care needs to develop educational interventions further and offer the families support to strengthen their ability to manage with the situation.

Out-of-school time activity participation profiles of children with physical disabilities: a cluster analysis

King G, Petrenchik T, DeWit D, McDougall J, Hurley P, Law M. (2010)

OBJECTIVE:
To determine out-of-school activity participation profiles of school-aged children with physical disabilities.
METHODS:
Activity participation profiles were determined by cluster analysing 427 children's responses on multiple dimensions of participation (intensity, location, companionship, enjoyment, preference) in five activity types (recreational, active physical, social, skill-based, self-improvement). Socio-demographic, child, parent, family and environmental predictors of group membership were determined, along with child functioning, socio-demographic, self-concept and social support variables significantly associated with group membership.
RESULTS:
The cluster analysis revealed four groups, labelled Social Participators (a highly social and neighbourhood-focused group), Broad Participators (a group of high participators who enjoy participation), Low Participators (a group with low enjoyment and weak preferences) and Recreational Participators (a group of younger children who participate in recreational activities with family members). The groups showed meaningful differences across a range of socio-demographic, child, parent, family and environmental variables.
CONCLUSIONS:
The findings support an affective and contextual view of participation, indicating the importance of motivational theory and a person-environment approach in understanding the complexity of children's out-of-school activity participation.

Overstretched: European families up against the demands of work and care

Kröger T, Sipilä J, (eds). (2005)

Overstretched provides fresh perspectives on the reality of European family life where care and paid work need to be woven together on a daily basis, offering an opportunity to discuss and evaluate care policies in a new light.
A collection of essays providing new perspectives on the reality of European family life where care and paid work need to be woven together on a daily basis.
Focuses on families who live under strained conditions, such as lone parent families, immigrant families, and families who care simultaneously for both their children and an elderly family member.
Based on interviews with families from Finland, France, Italy, Portugal and the UK.
Develops methods for doing comparative qualitative analysis in practice.
Offers new insights into the problems of gender balance in caring, and the significance of cultural notions and working hours.
Offers an opportunity to discuss and evaluate care policies in a new light.

Overview of fetal alcohol spectrum disorders for mental health professionals

Clarke ME, Gibbard WB. (2003)

Fetal Alcohol Spectrum Disorders (FASD), including Fetal Alcohol Syndrome (FAS) and related disorders such as Alcohol Related Neurodevelopmental Disorder (ARND) are the most common form of developmental disability and birth defects in the western world. Early recognition and accurate diagnosis by mental health professionals remains a key issue. This article reviews history, mechanisms of alcohol exposure, epidemiology, diagnosis and management of FASD.

Paired Reading. Ett försök i sju kommuner med lästräning för familjehemsplacerade barn

Tideman, E., Sallnäs, M., Vinnerljung, B., & Forsman, H. (2013)

Sju kommuner genomförde ett försök med Paired
Reading (parläsning) med syfte att förbättra läsförmågan
hos familjehemsplacerade barn. I försöket
utbildades familjehemsföräldrar i en enkel metod
som bygger på läsning med barnen 20 minuter/dag,
tre gånger i veckan under en 16-veckorsperiod. Försöket
utvärderades genom jämförelser av barnens
testade läsfärdigheter före (T1) och efter lästräningen
(T2). I jämförelserna minskades testvärdena vid
T2 med ett estimat av tidseffekten (den förbättring
som förväntas även om barnen inte hade deltagit i
försöket). Dessutom samlade vi in information om
hur läsningen fungerade i familjehemmen. Rapporten
baseras på analyser av 81 barn, huvudsakligen
placerade i långvarig familjehemsvård, som gick i
årskurserna 2-6 (8-12 år).
Två frågor ställdes i utvärderingen:
1. Är det möjligt att genomföra ett program där
familjehemsföräldrar regelbundet och under en längre
sammanhängande tid läser med de placerade barnen?
Ja, det är möjligt. Bortfallet var mycket lågt
(2.4% bland de som påbörjade försöket) och enligt
familjehemmens rapportering läste den stora
majoriteten (90%) minst mellan två och tre gånger/
vecka, det vill säga de hade enligt vår bedömning
genomfört programmet på ett godtagbart sätt.
2. Förbättrar Paired Reading barnens läsförmåga?
Oavsett ålder/årskurs fick barnen vid T2 bättre
resultat på testerna där läsåldern graderades (LäSt
NonOrd och LäSt Ord). Förbättringen motsvarade
i genomsnitt 11 månader. Om man räknar bort
tidseffekten förbättrade barnen sin läsålder med
cirka sju månader ("nettoförbättring"). Barnen
förbättrade också sitt ordförråd markant, mätt med
ett deltest i WISC-IV.
Ytterligare två tester administrerades till de
yngre barnen i åk 2-3; Bokstavskedjor och Ordkedjor.
Även dessa testresultat visade på signifikanta
förbättringar över tid. Det innebär att de yngre barnen
förbättrade sin läsförmåga enligt samtliga fem
tester (WISC-IV Ordförråd, Läst NonOrd, LäSt
Ord, Bokstavskedjor och Ordkedjor).
För de äldre barnen i åk 4-6 användes ytterligare
fem tester utöver LäSt Non Ord/LäSt Ord och
Ordförråd i WISC-IV. Av dessa fem tester visade
ett på en statistisk signifikant förbättring (Teckenkedjor)
och ett visade en tendens till förbättring
(Ordkedjor). Tre visade bara på svaga tendenser till
förbättring (Meningskedjor och läsförståelsetesterna
Draken och Isbjörnen). De äldre barnen hade med
andra ord klara förbättringar på fyra av åtta tester
(WISC- IV Ordförråd, LäSt NonOrd och LäSt
Ord samt Teckenkedjor), en tendens till förbättring
på ett test (Ordkedjor) men bara svaga tendenser
till förbättring på tre tester (Meningskedjor, Draken
och Isbjörnen).
Sammanfattande slutsats
Paired Reading är ett genomförbart lässtödsprogram
för familjehemsplacerade barn. Det har i
denna före-efterstudie visat sig förbättra läsförmå-
gan hos barn i årskurs 2-6.

Palliativ vård vid demens

Sundelöf Johan, Tegman Petra (2019)

Demens är ett obotligt, fortskridande sjukdomstillstånd som förr eller senare leder till döden. Genom ökad kunskap och rätt verktyg hos personalen kan både den som är sjuk och närstående få uppleva bästa möjliga livskvalitet och en värdig tid i livets slutskede. Ytterst handlar det om att teamet samarbetar strukturerat för att skapa förutsättningar för god palliativ vård.

Den här boken utgår från förhållningssättet i palliativ vård vid demens som kan sammanfattas med tre ord. Hjärna för den kunskap som behöver finnas, hjärta för omsorgen och händer för den livsnödvändiga närhet som skapar trygghet, livskvalitet och ro inombords. Boken är förankrad i forskningen och baseras på nationella och europeiska riktlinjer. Varje temakapitel innehåller fallbeskrivningar och frågor för reflektion enskilt eller i grupp.

Målgruppen är sjuksköterskor, läkare och personal som arbetar med personer med demens. Boken kan också användas inom grund- och fördjupningsutbildningar.

Palliative and Supportive Care

Olsson, A., Markhede, I., Strang, S., & Persson, L. I. (2010)

Supportive and palliative care services are integral to the provision of comprehensive cancer care (and no cancer service should call itself 'comprehensive' without a comprehensive supportive and palliative care team). All people diagnosed with cancer should have access to supportive care and the one in two people who will have their lives shortened as a result of cancer need to be able to access palliative care. The skill base, competencies and clinical evidence base for these disciplines is shared. Properly resourced and integrated supportive and palliative care services have been shown to deliver improved health outcomes without compromising life expectancy to:
. people with cancer
. their caregivers (while in the role and subsequently), and
. health services that are prepared to adequately invest in these services, with more efficient use of resources.

In order to achieve these improved health outcomes, early identification of people who have more complex needs becomes a responsibility of each member of the clinical cancer care team. Systematic assessment of current and likely future needs is imperative to improve the patient-defined outcomes that are necessary to live well with cancer or to ensure that life goals are met if premature death will occur because of cancer.

Pappa, vad är schizofreni?

Roger Zetterström (2013)
Den här boken vänder sig till barn och unga som vill lära sig om de vanligaste psykiska sjukdomarna. Boken berättar enkelt och översiktligt hur 12 psykiska sjukdomar yttrar sig och hur de behandlas.
Roger Zetterström, bokens författare, är skötare i psykiatri och socionom, han arbetar som personligt ombud för vuxna med långvarig psykisk ohälsa.

Men do care! A gender-aware and masculinity-informed contribution to caregiving scholarship.

Wallroth, V. (2016)

In caregiving literature, it is often the female gender that has been the focus of attention,
and in particular women's unpaid labor. Studies also tend to make comparisons
between men's and women's caregiving, using men's caregiving experiences to show
not only that women face greater burdens, but also that men's needs can be disregarded.
This means that while gender analyses are not uncommon in the caregiving literature,
gender tends to be equated with womanhood. The research problem that this dissertation
addresses is therefore the gender bias that characterizes caregiving scholarship
at present and the fact that this bias is impeding us from moving the debates on
care and caregiving forward. The aim of the dissertation is twofold. Firstly, it attempts
to contribute to the rectification of the gender bias in question by focusing on men's
caregiving and answering the following research questions: What motivates men to
provide care for their elderly parents? How do adult sons experience caregiving? What
do adult sons think that care and caregiving are, i.e. what are their perspectives on
care? Secondly, this dissertation also aims to explore whether a gender-aware and
masculinity-informed perspective can be used to enhance our understanding of caregiving.
Thus, through a phenomenological analysis of interviews with 19 caregiving
adult sons and sons-in-law, this dissertation discusses how motives, experiences and
perspectives, which have so far been interpreted as unique to women, are also matters
that men talk about and consider important in caregiving. The dissertation argues
therefore that much could be gained if we were to rectify the gender bias that characterizes
the literature on family caregiving and explore caregiving men in the genderaware
and masculinity-informed way that is lacking in this literature at present. Inspired
by the debate within studies of masculinity, the dissertation argues that within
the debate on care there is a hegemony of care which has so far tended to exclude
men's perspectives on caregiving because literature on family caregiving has regarded
women as the ideal caregivers. This dissertation shows that a gender-aware and masculinity-informed
perspective on care can increase our understanding of family caregiving
and contribute to the rectification of the gender bias that care research suffers
from. Against this backdrop, it is proposed that caregiving men should not solely be
regarded as empirically interesting. This is because they are an unexploited and theoretically
profuse source of information about caregiving.
Keywords: care, family caregiving, gender, men, masculinity, motive, experience, perspective

Men’s violence against women: a challenge in antenatal care

Stenson, K. (2004)

Men's violence against women is a universal issue affecting health, human rights and gender-equality. In pregnancy, violence is a risk for both the mother and her unborn child.The overall aims were: to determine the prevalence of such violence in a Swedish pregnant population, to investigate pregnant women's attitudes to questioning about exposure to violence, and to evaluate experience gained by antenatal care midwives having routinely questioned pregnant women regarding violence.All women registered for antenatal care in Uppsala, Sweden, during 6 months were assessed regarding acts of violence. The Abuse Assessment Screen (AAS) was used twice during pregnancy and again after delivery when the women were asked an open-ended written question regarding attitudes to questioning about violence. Midwives' experiences regarding routine assessment were evaluated in focus group discussions.The AAS questions were answered by 93% (1,038) of those eligible. Physical abuse by a partner or relative during or shortly after pregnancy was reported by 1.3%, and by 2.8% when the year preceding pregnancy was included. Lifetime sexual abuse was reported by 8.1%. Repeated questioning increased the abuse detection rate. Abused women reported more previous ill-health, and women physically abused during pregnancy more pregnancy terminations than did non-abused women. Abuse assessment was found entirely acceptable by 80%, both acceptable and unacceptable/disagreeable by 5% and solely unacceptable/ disagreeable by 3%, while 12% were neural. Abused and non-abused women did not differ regarding disinclination to answer the abuse questions. According to the midwives the delicacy of the subject and the male partners' presence were the most prominent remaining obstacles to routine determination of violence. Routines are required to make questioning about violence an integral part of antenatal care. This would necessitate a private appointment for the woman, knowledge among care providers about the nature of men's violence, and awareness of referral options.

Me-ness and we-ness in a modified everyday life close to death at home [Elektronisk resurs].

Carlander, I. (2011)

The overarching aim of this thesis was to describe how family members experienced everyday life with life-threatening illness close to death, with focus on self-image and identity. The thesis comprises four papers, each with a specific aim to illuminate various aspects of the phenomenon under study. The study population consisted of 29 participants; ten family caregivers and five families, including five patients with life threatening illness and their family members. Data were based on retrospective single interviews (paper I), prospective individual, couple and group interviews with the families over six to eighteen month (papers II-III). Interpretive description approach (papers I, II, IV), narrative method (paper III) and secondary analysis (paper IV) were used to analyze data. The findings show how living close to death influences everyday life at home, at several levels (papers I-IV). From the perspective of the dying person, narrations of daily situations was described by four themes related to identity and everyday life; inside and outside of me, searching for togetherness, my place in space and my death and my time. The changing body, pain, fatigue, decreased physical capacity and changed appearance, appeared to influence the dying person's need for altered knowledge and community, and as a result the patterns of interaction within the families changed. The strive for knowledge and community took place at home, an arena for identity work and the conscious search for meaning, knowledge and community; it was limited by time and inevitable death (paper III). For the family member, life close to death can mean sharing life with a changing person in a changing relationship (paper II). It may mean that everyday life needs to be modified in order for it to work (papers I-IV). New patterns of dependence and an asymmetrical relationship affect all involved (papers III-IV). Daily life close to death is about finding the space to promote the individual self-image, me-ness, at the same time as finding new ways of being a family; we-ness (paper II). Regardless of being the ill person or not, the family members we interviewed had to face impending death, which challenged earlier ways of living together (papers I-IV). From the perspective of the relatives, the everyday life of caring for the dying family member was characterized by challenged ideals, stretched limits and interdependency (paper I). Situations that challenged the caregivers' self-image were connected to intimacy, decreasing personal space and experiences such as "forbidden thoughts". The findings suggest that the bodily changes were of importance for the self-image, and that the former approach to the own body was important in the process of experiencing the body. The person living close to death was in transition to something new; being dead in the near future. One way of handling the struggles of everyday life was to seek togetherness, strive to find other persons with similar experiences while sharing thoughts and feelings. Togetherness was sought within the family, in the health care system and on the internet; a sense of togetherness was also sought with those who had already died. The other family members were also in transition as the future meant living on without the ill family member and changing their status to for example being a widow or being motherless. Identity work close to death denotes creating an access ramp into something new; a transition into the unknown. From a clinical perspective, this study emphasizes the significance of creating a climate that allows caregivers to express thoughts and feelings.

Mental disorders and cause-specific mortality

Joukamaa, M., Heliovaara, M., Knekt, P., Aromaa, A., Raitasalo, R., & Lehtinen, V. (2001)

Background The impact of clinically diagnosed mental disorders on mortality in the general population has not been established.

Aims To examine mental disorders for their prediction of cause-specific mortality.

Method Mental disorders were determined using the 36-item version of the General Health Questionnaire and the Present State Examination in a nationally representative sample of 8000 adult Finns.

Results During the 17-year follow-up period 1597 deaths occurred. The presence of a mental disorder detected at baseline was associated with an elevated mortality rate. The relative risk in men was 1.6(95% confidence interval 1.3-1.8) and in women, 1.4 (95% Cl 1.2-1.6). In men and women with schizophrenia the relative risks of death during the follow-up period were 3.3 (95% Cl 2.3-4.9) and 2.3 (95% Cl 1.3-3.8) respectively, compared with the rest of the sample. In both men and women with schizophrenia the risk of dying of respiratory disease was increased, but the risk of dying of cardiovascular disease was increased only in men with neurotic depression.

Conclusions Schizophrenia and depression are associated with an elevated risk of natural and unnatural deaths.

Mental health and creating safety: the participation of relatives in psychiatric treatment and its significance

Piippo, J. and J. Aaltonen (2008)

Aims and objectives. We aimed to discover the significance of the participation of relatives in the treatment process using the principles of the Need-Adapted Approach. The study is based on joint interviews with 10 psychiatric patients, their relatives and a multiprofessional treatment team. Background. The Need-Adapted Approach was developed in Finland for difficult psychiatric problems in public sector psychiatry. The central feature of the approach is the active participation of patients and their relatives in planning the treatment and in the treatment process. It emphasises horizontal expertise and open discussions between the patient, relatives and professionals. Design. A qualitative method based on the grounded theory approach was used. Method. The main focus in the analysis was on how the informants experienced the significance of the participation of their relatives in the treatment process. Results. Seven categories and one core category were identified. Primary categories which increased safety were: (1) shared understanding, (2) a new kind of relationship opens up and (3) being able to cope with life. Secondary categories were: (4) exclusion and (5) need for a one-to-one relationship. Ambivalent categories were: (6) whom or what one can believe and (7) keeping the illness secret. One core category, safety, was identified among the categories. A theoretical model was created for clinical purposes. Conclusions. When practiced correctly, the Need-Adapted Approach makes it possible to create circumstances in psychiatric treatment where the patient and his/her relatives can experience increased safety in spite of the anxiety connected to the psychiatric difficulties. Relevance to clinical practice. Clinical workers and nursing personnel can use our findings in their practical work with psychiatric patients and their relatives. Our findings support further theoretical considerations concerning safety and can be used as guidelines for nursing personnel in their work

Mental health and reactions to caregiving among next of kin of older people (65+) with multi-morbidity discharged home after hospitalization

Behm L., Björkman E., Ahlström G. (2018)

Abstract
BACKGROUND: Older people with multi-morbidity are major users of healthcare and are often discharged from hospital with ongoing care needs. This care is frequently provided by informal caregivers and the time immediately after discharge is challenging for caregivers with new and/or additional tasks, resulting in anxiety and stress. AIM: This study aimed to describe mental health, with particular reference to anxiety and depression and reactions to caregiving, and to investigate any associations between the two, in next of kin of older people with multi-morbidity after hospitalisation. It also aimed to explore the association between the demographic characteristics of the study group and mental health and reactions to caregiving. METHODS:
This was a cross-sectional questionnaire study using the Hospital Anxiety and Depression Scale and the Caregiver Reaction Assessment. The study group consisted of 345 next of kin of older people (65+) with multi-morbidity discharged home from 13 medical wards in Sweden. Data were analysed using descriptive and analytical statistics. To identify whether reactions to caregiving and next of kincharacteristics were associated with anxiety and depression, a univariate logistic regression analysis was performed. RESULTS: More than one quarter of respondents showed severe anxiety and nearly one in 10 had severe depressive symptoms. The frequencies of anxiety and depression increased significantly with increased negative reactions to caregiving and decreased significantly with positive reactions to caregiving. Regarding caregiving reactions, the scores were highest for the positive domain Caregiver esteem, followed by the negative domain Impact on health. Women scored significantly higher than men on Impact on health and spouses scored highest for Impact on schedule and Caregiver esteem. CONCLUSIONS: Nurses and other healthcare professionals may need to provide additional support to informal caregivers before and after discharging older people with significant care needs from hospital. This might include person-centred information, education and training.

Mental health professional support in families with a member suffering from severe mental illness: a grounded theory model

Gavois, Helena, Paulsson, Gun, & Fridlund, Bengt (2006)

The aim of this study was to develop a model of mental health professional (MHP) support based on the needs of families with a member suffering from severe mental illness (SMI). Twelve family members were interviewed with the focus on their needs of support by MHP, then the interviews were analyzed according to the grounded theory method. The generated model of MHP support had two core categories: the family members' process from crisis to recovery and their interaction with the MHP about mental health/illness and daily living of the person with SMI. Interaction based on ongoing contact between MHP and family members influenced the family members' process from crisis towards recovery. Four MHP strategies--being present, listening, sharing and empowering--met the family members' needs of support in the different stages of the crisis. Being present includes early contact, early information and protection by MHP at onset of illness or relapse. Listening includes assessing burden, maintaining contact and confirmation in daily living for the person with SMI. Sharing between MHP and family members includes co-ordination, open communication and security in daily living for the person with SMI. Finally, the MHP strategy empowering includes creating a context, counselling and encouraging development for the family members. The present model has a holistic approach and can be used as an overall guide for MHP support in clinical care of families of persons with SMI. For future studies, it is important to study the interaction of the family with SMI and the connection between hope, coping and empowerment.

Mervärde för alla föräldrar genom samlokalisering?

Abrahamsson, Agneta & Bing, Vibeke (2011)

Barnens hälsa påverkas redan tidigt i livet av föräldrarnas livsvillkor. Låg social status, brist på vänner och stress tidigt i livet leder till hälsoskillnader. Familjecentraler med en öppen förskola och förebyggande socialt arbete är en tidig insats och en lågriskstrategi som riktar sig till alla. Den har goda förutsättningar för att stärka föräldrarnas tillit och gemenskap med andra och kan bidra till att minska hälsoskillnader genom att främja barnens hälsoutveckling. Syftena med utvärderingen av de 16 familjecentralerna var att undersöka i vilken mån besökarna är representativa för befolkningen i upptagningsområdet och av vilka anledningar föräldrarna besöker öppna förskolan på familjecentralen. Jämförelse mellan befintlig befolkningsdata i upptagningsområdena och föräldrabesökares bakgrundsdata visar att familjecentralen i huvudsak når en representativ del av befolkningen. Föräldrar använder sig av familjecentralen för att få råd, utbyte av erfarenheter, barnens skull och att umgås med andra. I synnerhet för invandrare har familjecentralen stor betydelse för att komma in i det svenska samhället.

Meta-analysis of the effectiveness of individual intervention in the controlled multisensory environment (Snoezelen®) for individuals with intellectual disability

Lotan, M., & Gold, C. (2009)

BACKGROUND:
The Snoezelen is a multisensory intervention approach that has been implemented with various populations. Due to an almost complete absence of rigorous research in this field, the confirmation of this approach as an effective therapeutic intervention is warranted.
METHOD:
To evaluate the therapeutic influence of the Snoezelen approach. Twenty-eight relevant articles relating to individual (one-to-one) Snoezelen intervention with individuals with intellectual and developmental disabilities (IDD) were reviewed. A meta-analysis regarding the significance of the reduction of maladaptive behaviour and the enhancement of adaptive behaviour was implemented. An analysis of standardised mean differences was used through the use of fixed effect models.
RESULTS:
The primary finding was that the Snoezelen approach, when applied as an individual intervention for individuals with IDD, enabled significant and large effect size in adaptive behaviours, with generalisation to the participants' daily life.
CONCLUSIONS:
Weaknesses in the examined research methodologies, the heterogeneity between research designs, the small number of available research projects, and the small number of participants in each research project, prevent a confirmation of this method as a valid therapeutic intervention at this time.

Methodological issues in assessing psychological adjustment in child witnesses of intimate partner violence

Clements, C. M., Oxtoby, C., & Ogle, R. L. (2008)

This review summarizes a growing number of methodological concerns emerging from research on child witnesses of intimate partner violence (IPV). A brief summary of various psychological, biological, and cognitive impairments associated with witnessing IPV is presented. Directions for future research in this area are explored with particular attention paid to experimental design. Advantages and disadvantages of retrospective, cross-sectional, and longitudinal designs are evaluated. Suggested improvements include the use of multiple informants, behavioral observations, and prospective, longitudinal assessment.

Migration och Folkhälsa. Kapitel 9 i ”Folkhälsorapport”.

Hjern A. (2009)

I en alltmer globaliserad värld får
fler möjlighet att bosätta sig i ett annat land
än det de föddes i. Som ett resultat av detta ökar andelen utlandsfödda i de flesta höginkomstländer, så även i Sverige. Den 31 december år 2006 hade 17
procent av den svenska befolkningen utländsk bakgrund, dvs. var antingen
född i något annat land än Sverige (13 procent) eller hade två utlandsfödda
föräldrar (4 procent). Av dessa var 52 000 utlandsadopterade. Därtill kommer
asylsökande och andra migranter som saknar uppehållstillstånd, som inte finns med i befolkningsstatistiken.
Många utlandsfödda har
flyttat från länder där risken att smittas av vissa
svåra och långvariga infektioner är betydligt större än i Sverige. De viktigaste
av dessa smittämnen är hepatit B och C, tuberkulos och hiv.
Migranterna tar med sig sin livsstil till det nya landet, t ex kost- , tobaksoch
alkoholvanor. Mötet med det nya landets kultur leder till att livsstilen
förändras, men lång tid efter invandringen kan in
flytande av ursprungslandets
livsstil ofta spåras i invandrares sjukdomsmönster. Så har t.ex. män med
ursprung i Medelhavsområdet en högre risk att drabbas av tobaksrelaterad
sjuklighet, som lungcancer jämfört med genomsnittsbefolkningen i Sverige,
men samtidigt har de en lägre risk att drabbas av alkoholrelaterad sjuklighet,
som levercirrhos.
Många betydande folkhälsoproblem orsakas av miljöfaktorer i samspel med
en medfödd sårbarhet, t.ex. allergiska sjukdomar och diabetes. Förekomsten
av de genetiska faktorer som orsakar denna sårbarhet skiljer sig mellan olika
befolkningar i världen och fortsätter att påverka risken för dessa sjukdomar
hos migranter även i det nya landet .
Flyktingen har ett annat utgångsläge än den som
flyttar till ett annat land
för att arbeta eller för att bilda familj. Personer som
flyr från sitt hemland har
nästan alltid levt en tid under stor stress innan de
flyr. Själva
flykten är ofta
omgärdad av umbäranden och hot, och många familjer splittras under långa
perioder. Efter ankomsten till det nya landet väntar en tid av ovisshet under
asylprocessen innan det nya livet kan ta sin början. Detta leder sammantaget
till att psykisk ohälsa är ett större problem hos nyanlända
flyktingar än hos
andra grupper av migranter,

Min mamma rullstolshjälten

Ida Berner (2018)

"Jag vill ha en annan mamma, en som kan springa ..."

Kerstins fotbollslag ska spela match mot föräldrarna. Kerstins pappa, som brukar vara bäst på plan, kan inte vara med så mamma ska med i stället. Men mamma sitter ju i rullstol, hon kan ju inte spela.

Mamma kommer till matchen och rycker dessutom in som värsta hjälten.

Det här är en berättelse om att ha en förälder som inte är som alla andra, men som kan vara världsbäst ändå!

Min mor slangen og mig

M. LaVilla Labial (2013)

Denna danska bilderbok bygger på vikten av att prata med barn när deras förälder eller annan vuxen som barnet bor tillsammans med drabbas av psykisk ohälsa.I slutet av boken diskuterar författaren effekterna för barnen och familjen i sin helhet då någon vuxen drabbas av ångest och/eller depression och vad det gör med familjen. Vilka situationer och frågeställningar som kan uppkomma och som behöver förklaras och besvaras för att barnen ska förstå vad som sker. Boken riktar sig till barn mellan 3-10 år.
Boken går att laddda ner på www.issuu.com

Min stroke

Taylor Bolte, Jill (2009)

På morgonen den 10 december 1996 förändrades Jill Bolte Taylors liv totalt. Den 37-åriga hjärnforskaren drabbades av en kraftig stroke då ett blodkärl brast i vänstra halvan av hjärnan. Inom loppet av några timmar försvann förmågan att tala, läsa, skriva, gå och hennes minne var i det närmaste helt utraderat.

Tiden som följde blev en berg- och dalbana mellan två verkligheter: den euforiska känslan från höger hjärnhalva som styr känslor och kreativitet, och de logiska rationella tankarna från vänstra halvan som talade om för Jill att hon var sjuk och fick henne att söka hjälp i tid.

Det tog åtta år för Jill Bolte Taylor att tillfriskna helt och hållet. Tack vare en otrolig envishet, sin kunskap om hur den mänskliga hjärnan fungerar och inte minst med stor hjälp av sin fantastiska mamma lyckades hon få tillbaka det liv hon en gång hade. Idag anser Jill att stroken var det bästa som kunde hända henne. Genom att tvingas använda sin högra hjärnhalva insåg hon att vi människor kan tillgodogöra oss de känslor av frid och välbehag som den vänstra halvan gör sitt bästa för att trycka ner.

Min stroke tar läsaren med på en fascinerande resa in i den mänskliga hjärnan. Det är både en värdefull hjälp för alla som drabbats av någon form av hjärnskada och ett känslosamt vittnesmål om att djup inre frid är möjligt att uppnå för alla människor, vid alla tillfällen. Boken har i flera veckor legat på topp 10 på New York Times bästsäljarlista för faktaböcker.

Min tur att berätta. Barns röster om att leva med våld

BRIS, Stadsmissioner (2020)

Flera tusen barn befinner sig varje år
på ett skyddat boende med sin mamma,
på flykt undan det livsfarliga våldet
hemma. Hur påverkas barnets liv av
våldet och av att tvingas bryta upp från
sin vardag? I den här rapporten lyfts
barns egna röster och erfarenheter,
tillsammans med aktuell kunskap.
Rapporten visar hur barns behov och
rättigheter många gånger blir sekundära
när barnet i praktiken blir medföljande
till sin mamma. Det blir tydligt att
rättssäkerheten måste stärkas för barn
som utsätts för våld i hemmet.

Minding the money: A growing responsibility for informal carers.

Tilse C, Setterlund D, Wilson J, Rosenman L. (2005)

Managing the assets of older people is a common and potentially complex task of informal care with legal, financial, cultural, political and family dimensions. Older people are increasingly recognised -as having significant assets, but the family, the state, service providers and the market have competing interests in their use. Increased policy interest in self-provision and user-charges for services underline the importance of asset management in protecting the current and future health, care and accommodation choices of older people. Although 'minding the money' has generally been included as an informal care-giving task, there is limited recognition of either its growing importance and complexity or of care-givers' involvement. The focus of both policy and practice have been primarily on substitute decision-making and abuse. This paper reports an Australian national survey and semi-structured interviews that have explored the prevalence of non-professional involvement in asset management. The findings reveal the nature and extent of involvement, the tasks that informal carers take on, the management processes that they use, and that 'minding the money' is a common informal care task and mostly undertaken in the private sphere using some risky practices. Assisting informal care-givers with asset management and protecting older people from financial risks and abuse require various strategic policy and practice responses that extend beyond substitute decision-making legislation. Policies and programmes are required: to increase the awareness of the tasks, tensions and practices surrounding asset management; to improve the financial literacy of older people, their informal care-givers and service providers; to ensure access to information, advice and support services; and to develop better accountability practices.

Minor children of palliative patients: a systematic review of psychosocial family interventions

Kühne, F., Krattenmacher, T., Beierlein, V., Grimm, J.C., Bergelt, C., Romer, G. & Möller, B. (2012)

Although the whole family is affected by a parent's palliative disease, palliative care research does not yet routinely consider patients' minor children. Children's and adolescents' psychosocial functioning may be impaired during prolonged parental disease with poor prognosis. Therefore, more and more health care providers are establishing clinical initiatives for families of palliative patients with minor children. However, the number of these family interventions, as well as their theoretical and empirical backgrounds and evidence base, has yet to be determined. The purpose of this study was to systematically review structured and published interventions for this target group, as well as empirical studies on these interventions. The evidence base and impact of interventions on families were considered. Literature published between 1980 and present focusing on psychosocial family-, child- or parent-centered interventions during palliative care was retrieved from PsycINFO®, Embase, MEDLINE®, CINAHL®, and PSYNDEX databases. Five interventions met the inclusion criteria. Programs focused on different populations, had diverse empirical and theoretical backgrounds and features, and were evaluated by studies of varying methodological quality. This systematic review illustrates the lack of well designed and elaborated intervention concepts and evaluation studies in this field, highlighting the necessity of conceptual and methodological rigor to inform clinical practice on a sustainable basis in the future.

Missbrukande föräldrar, utsatta barn och socialt arbete

Andersson, G., Bangura Arvidsson, M., Rasmusson, B., & Trulsson, K. (2006)

Starting university is associated with major academic, personal and social opportunities. For many people, university entrance is also associated with increased stress and alcohol consumption. At the start of the autumn term 2002, all students entering educational programmes at two comparable middle-sized Swedish universities were invited to participate in a comparative intervention study. This included both primary and secondary interventions targeting hazardous drinking and stress. The overall aim was to improve alcohol habits and stress patterns in university freshmen at an intervention university in comparison with a control university.

A total of 2,032 (72%) freshmen responded to the baseline assessment. Half of them scored above traditional AUDIT cut-off levels for hazardous alcohol use. Factors associated with hazardous use were age below 26, male gender, family history of alcohol problems, and not being in a serious relationship. The Arnetz and Hasson Stress Questionnaire was evaluated and used to study a selection of freshmen at high riskof stress. It was easy to use and offered sufficient internal consistency and construct validity. In the freshman year, 517 students (25%) dropped out from university education. A multivariate analysis established that high stress and university setting was associated with dropout from university studies, while symptoms of depression and anxiety as well as hazardous drinking were not.

Outcome was analysed in students remaining at university at one-year follow-up. The primary interventions offered to freshmen at the intervention university reduced alcohol expectancies and mental symptoms compared with freshmen at the control university. Secondary stress interventions were effective in reducing mental symptoms and alcohol expectancies. Secondary alcohol interventions were effective in reducing AUDIT scores, alcohol expectancies, estimated blood alcohol concentrations, as well as stress and mental symptoms.

In conclusion, both primary and secondary alcohol and stress interventions have one-year effects in university freshmen and could be used in university settings.

Mitt annorlunda barn : när livet som förälder inte blir som man tänkt sig

Gomér, Ann (2018)

Ann Gomér berättar sin historia om hur livet förändrades för henne och hennes familj när andra dottern Frida föddes. Frida föddes med omfattande funktionsnedsättningar och läkarna kunde inte riktigt ge henne en diagnos. Många tankar och många svårigheter, men också glädjeämnen mitt i det svåra. Hur livet blir för andra dottern Fanny beskriver Ann, men Fanny själv berättar mer i ett efterord

Mod och mandat - Ny lagstiftning stärker barn som anhöriga. Har vi modet att möta dem?

Mårten Jansson, Anne-Marie Larsson, Cecilia Modig (2011)

Den 1 januari 2010 infördes en ny bestämmelse i hälso- och sjukvårdslagen som ger hälso- och sjukvårdens verksamheter och dess personal skyldighet att särskilt beakta barnets behov av information, råd och stöd när en förälder har en psykisk sjukdom, är allvarligt somatiskt sjuk eller missbrukar. Detsamma gäller när en förälder oväntat avlider. Den nya lagstiftningen stärker barns rätt och ställer krav på att ett familjeorienterat synsätt utvecklas inom verksamheter som möter vuxna patienter inom de ovan nämnda grupperna.

Stiftelsen Allmänna Barnhuset och Socialstyrelsen har 2008 -2010 drivit ett gemensamt projekt i syfte att skaffa kunskap om vilka åtgärder som behöver vidtas för att lagen ska få avsedd effekt. Denna bok är en rapport från det arbete och vi hoppas att den kan inspirera, stimulera och visa på möjliga vägar för lokalt och regionalt utvecklingsarbete i syfte att bättre uppmärksamma barn som anhöriga.

I boken framkommer också vilka svårigheter som finns och vikten av ett gemensamt ansvarstagande av de huvudmän som möter barn i dessa situationer.

Models for understanding adolescent coping with bereavement

Balk, D.E. (1996)

Several issues impinge on scholars and practitioners interested in adolescent bereavement. First and foremost, adolescent bereavement over the death of a family member or a friend is more prevalent than many persons recognize. Second, scholars and practitioners need models that link adolescent development with adolescent coping during bereavement. Third, models are needed (a) to assist in rethinking what "recovery from bereavement" denotes and (b) to afford criteria for assessing recovery from bereavement. The author reviews findings on bereavement during adolescent development and gives particular attention to three models that enhance our understanding of coping with the life crises bereavement presents to adolescents. One model links grief during adolescence to developmental tasks; another model presents adaptive tasks and coping skills; and the third model identifies sentiments essential for human wholeness. Findings from a variety of studies with bereaved adolescents provide data to test the usefulness of the models. The closing discussion centers on implications for working with bereaved adolescents.

Moderate versus severe early life stress: Associations with stress reactivity and regulation in 10-12-year-old children

Gunnar, M. R., Frenn, K., Wewerka, S. S., & Van Ryzin, M. J. (2009)

Early life stress (ELS) is expected to increase reactivity of the hypothalamic-pituitary-adrenocortical (HPA) axis; however, several recent studies have shown diminished cortisol reactivity among adults and children with ELS exposure. The goal of this study was to examine cortisol activity in 10-12-year-old internationally adopted children to determine if moderate and severe ELS have different impacts on the HPA axis. Salivary cortisol and two measures of autonomic activity were collected in response to the Trier Social Stress Test for Children (TSST-C). Three groups reflecting moderate, severe, and little ELS were studied: early adopted children who came predominantly from foster care overseas (early adopted/foster care (EA/FC), n=44), later adopted children cared for predominantly in orphanages overseas (late adopted/post-institutionalized (LA/PI), n=42) and non-adopted (NA) children reared continuously by their middle- to upper-income parents in the United States (n=38). Diminished cortisol activity was noted for the EA/FC group (moderate ELS), while the LA/PI group (severe ELS) did not differ from the NA group. Overall, few children showed cortisol elevations to the TSST-C in any group. The presence/absence of severe growth delay at adoption proved to be a critical predictive factor in cortisol activity. Regardless of growth delay, however, LA/PI children exhibited higher sympathetic tone than did NA children. These results suggest that moderate ELS is associated with diminished cortisol activity; however, marked individual differences in cortisol activity among the LA/PI children suggest that child factors modify the impact of severe ELS. Lack of effects of severe ELS even for growth delayed children may reflect the restorative effects of adoption or the generally low responsiveness of this age group to the TSST-C.

Morbidity and mortality among foreign-born Swedes

Albin, B. (2006)

Det svenska samhället har under senare delen av 1900-talet påverkats och förändrats på grund av en ökad internationell migration. År 1950 var 2,8 % av den svenska befolkningen utrikesfödd; idag utgör de utrikesfödda 12,0 % av totalbefolkningen. Om även andragenerationens migranter (de som har en eller båda föräldrar utrikesfödda) räknas med utgör första och andragenerationens migranter tillsammans 20 % av Sveriges befolkning. Tidigare studier har visat att migration kan påverka hälsa och hälsoutveckling på både positiva och negativa sätt. Ett accepterat sätt att mäta hälsa och hälsoutveckling är att studera morbiditet och mortalitet i en befolkning. Ett fåtal studier har återfunnits som har undersökt morbiditet och mortalitet bland migranter. Ingen av dessa har haft en longitudinell design och undersökt en total population av migranter i ett land. Det övergripande syftet var att beskriva och jämföra hälsa och hälsoutveckling över tid mellan svenskfödda och utrikesfödda och genom detta att studera migrationens påverkan på hälsa. De fyra i avhandlingen ingående delarbetena bygger på analys av data från Statistiska Centralbyrån och Socialstyrelsens Centrum för Epidemiologi. I databasen har ingått samtliga utrikesfödda, 16 eller äldre som fanns i Sverige 1970. Till varje utrikesfödd person finns en svensk kontroll matchad vad gäller kön, ålder, sysselsättning, yrke och bosättningslän. För 20 518 utrikesfödda personer kunde inte en kontroll skapas på grund av matchningskriterierna; dessutom exkluderades de personer som under den studerade tiden (1970?1999) hade emigrerat från Sverige. Totalt kom databasen som användes för analys att omfatta 723 948 personer, 50 % utrikesfödda och 50 % svenska kontroller. Den första delstudiens syfte var att beskriva och jämföra mortalitet mellan utrikesfödda och svenskfödda under perioden 1970?1999. Resultaten visade en generellt högre dödlighet bland utrikesfödda (OR 1,08) och en lägre medelålder vid tidpunkten för dödsfallet. Speciellt hög mortalitetsrisk återfanns bland män från Finland (OR 1,21), Danmark (OR 1,11) och Norge/Island (OR 1,07). Två ålderskohorter jämfördes, personer födda 1901?1920 respektive personer födda 1921?1944, och analysen visade en högre mortalitet för personer i den äldsta ålderskohorten. Personer som hade invandrat ?sent? till Sverige visade större skillnader i medelålder vid död än de som hade invandrat ?tidigt?; personer som kommit till Sverige under perioden 1941?1970 hade en 2,5 år lägre medelålder vid tiden för dödsfallet. Syftet för den andra delstudien var beskriva, jämföra och analysera dödsorsaksmönster bland utrikesfödda och svenskfödda under perioden 1970?1999. Studiens resultat visade ett större antal avlidna i sex olika ICD-huvuddiagnosgrupper och en lägre medelålder vid tiden för dödsfallet bland utrikesfödda. Födelselandet hade betydelse för dödsorsaksmönstret. Vid jämförelse med de svenska kontrollerna återfanns bland migranter från Danmark ett större antal avlidna i diagnosgruppen ?Neoplasm?, bland migranter från Finland och Polen var skillnaden stor i gruppen ?Diseases of the circulatory system? och personer från tidigare Jugoslavien särskilde sig mot kontrollerna framför allt med ett större antal avlidna i gruppen ?Symptoms, signs and ill-defined conditions?. Över tid fanns en tendens till en utjämning av skillnaderna i diagnosmönstret mellan utrikesfödda och svenskfödda. Då de två tidigare studierna hade visat på skillnader i mortalitet och morbiditet mellan utrikesfödda och svenskfödda kom den tredje studien att som syfte ha att beskriva, jämföra och analysera konsumtion av hälso- och sjukvård i fyra olika ICD-diagnosgrupper. Som mått på sjukvårdskonsumtion användes antal inläggningar på sjukhus, totalt antal vårddagar och vårddagar under de två sista inläggningstillfällena på sjukhus bland avlidna utrikesfödda och svenskfödda 1987?1999. Resultatet visade en tendens till mindre sjukvårdskonsumtion bland utrikesfödda, särskild vad gäller utrikesfödda män. Mindre sjukvårdskonsumtion för utrikesfödda återfanns i två av de fyra använda diagnosgrupperna (?Symptoms, signs and ill-defined conditions? och ?Injury and poisoning ?). Att vara utrikesfödd, justerat för ålder, var en oberoende bestämmande faktor för inläggning på sjukhus. Den nollhypotes som formulerats vid studiens start, att skillnader mellan utrikesfödda och svenskfödda beträffande sjukvårdkonsumtion inte fanns, kunde tillbakavisas. Det sista delarbetets syfte var att beskriva och jämföra skillnader i mortalitet i olika landsting mellan utrikesfödda och svenskfödda med en formulerad nollhypotes att inga mortalitetsskillnader fanns mellan olika landsting. Studiens resultat kunde tillbakavisa nollhypotesen, det fanns skillnader i mortalitet mellan utrikesfödda och svenskfödda framför allt i de län som kunde karaktäriseras som mera ?landsbygds?-dominerade. Landsbygdsdominerade län hade också gemensamt att deras populationer av migranter var förhållandevis små. Medelåldern vid tiden för avlidande var för män mellan 1,0?4,3 år lägre för utrikesfödda personer. Resultaten av de i avhandlingen ingående fyra olika studierna visar högre dödlighet, annorlunda sjukdomsmönster och tendens till lägre konsumtion av vård bland utrikesfödda än bland svenskfödda personer under perioden 1970?1999. Flera faktorer, såsom ekonomisk situation, arbete, arbetsmiljö, arbetslöshet, sociala nätverk och situationen före migrationen kan ha påverkat de utrikesföddas sämre hälsoläge. Den fysiska och sociala miljön och eventuella ojämlikheter i sjukvårdsresurser och tillgång till vård spelar också en viktig roll. Migrationen har haft en negativ inverkan på de utrikesföddas hälsa och är en viktig faktor att ta hänsyn till vid studier av hälsa och hälsoutveckling bland befolkningen i ett land

More Caregiving, Less Working: Caregiving Roles and Gender Difference

Lee, Y. and F. Tang (2013)

This study examined the relationship of caregiving roles to labor force participation using the nationally representative data from the Health and Retirement Study. The sample was composed of men and women aged 50 to 61 years (N = 5,119). Caregiving roles included caregiving for spouse, parents, and grandchildren; a summary of three caregiving roles was used to indicate multiple caregiving roles. Bivariate analysis using chi-square and t tests and binary logistic regression models were applied. Results show that women caregivers for parents and/or grandchildren were less likely to be in the labor force than non-caregivers and that caregiving responsibility was not related to labor force participation for the sample of men. Findings have implication for supporting family caregivers, especially women, to balance work and caregiving commitments.

Mortality after parental death in childhood: a nationwide cohort study from three nordic countries

Li, J., Vestergaard, M., Cnattingius, S., Gissler, M., Bech, B., Obel, C., & Olsen, J. (2014)

Abstract

Background

Bereavement by spousal death and child death in adulthood has been shown to lead to an increased risk of mortality. Maternal death in infancy or parental death in early childhood may have an impact on mortality but evidence has been limited to short-term or selected causes of death. Little is known about long-term or cause-specific mortality after parental death in childhood.

Methods and Findings

This cohort study included all persons born in Denmark from 1968 to 2008 (n = 2,789,807) and in Sweden from 1973 to 2006 (n = 3,380,301), and a random sample of 89.3% of all born in Finland from 1987 to 2007 (n = 1,131,905). A total of 189,094 persons were included in the exposed cohort when they lost a parent before 18 years old. Log-linear Poisson regression was used to estimate mortality rate ratio (MRR). Parental death was associated with a 50% increased all-cause mortality (MRR = 1.50, 95% CI 1.43–1.58). The risks were increased for most specific cause groups and the highest MRRs were observed when the cause of child death and the cause of parental death were in the same category. Parental unnatural death was associated with a higher mortality risk (MRR = 1.84, 95% CI 1.71–2.00) than parental natural death (MRR = 1.33, 95% CI 1.24–1.41). The magnitude of the associations varied according to type of death and age at bereavement over different follow-up periods. The main limitation of the study is the lack of data on post-bereavement information on the quality of the parent-child relationship, lifestyles, and common physical environment.

Conclusions

Parental death in childhood or adolescence is associated with increased all-cause mortality into early adulthood. Since an increased mortality reflects both genetic susceptibility and long-term impacts of parental death on health and social well-being, our findings have implications in clinical responses and public health strategies.

Mortality after the death of a parent in adulthood: a register-based comparison of two ethno-linguistic groups

Saarela, Jan; Rostila, Mikael (2019)

Abstract:
Background Most research on parental bereavement and health have analysed health consequences of parental loss in childhood, while collateral health in adulthood has been less studied. Methods Using register-based population data from Finland, we analyse adult offspring aged 18–50 years with discrete-time hazard models that adjust for offspring and parental socioeconomic and demographic characteristics. In focus are adult children whose parents were alive and lived together at the beginning of the observation period. We compare two culturally distinct but otherwise similar ethno-linguistic groups, Finnish speakers and Swedish speakers. Results The results suggest that bereaved men have an approximately 30% higher death risk than non-bereaved men, while there is practically no difference in women. Associations between parental and child deaths are, as expected, stronger for concordant causes of death than for discordant causes of death. However, some associations for discordant causes of death remain, which may indicate causality. Among Swedish speakers, who have notably higher family stability than Finnish speakers, the death of one or both parents shows a stronger association with own mortality. Conclusions The estimated associations found are generally larger than in the neighbouring country Sweden, which may be due to a stronger obedience to traditional family values and patriarchal family roles in Finland. These findings suggest that the association between parental death and mortality in adult offspring may depend on the societal context as well as on cultural practices. These factors should be increasingly acknowledged in future studies on collateral health.

Mortality in parents after the death of a child in Denmark: a nationwide follow-up study

Li, J., Precht D. H., Mortensen P. B., & Olsen J. (2003)

Abstract
BACKGROUND:
Little is known about the effect of parental bereavement on physical health. We investigated whether the death of a child increased mortality in parents.
METHODS:
We undertook a follow-up study based on national registers. From 1980 to 1996, we enrolled 21062 parents in Denmark who had a child who had died (exposed cohort), and 293745 controls--ie, parents whose children were alive, and whose family structure matched that of the exposed cohort. Natural deaths were defined with ICD8 codes 0000-7969 and ICD10 codes A00-R99, and unnatural deaths with codes 8000-9999 and V01-Y98. We used Cox's proportional-hazards regression models to assess the mortality rate of parents up to 18 years after bereavement.
FINDINGS:
We observed an increased overall mortality rate in mothers whose child had died (hazards ratio 1.43, 95% CI 1.24-1.64; p<0.0001). An excess mortality from natural causes (1.44, 1.15-1.78; p<0.0001) was noted in mothers only during the 10th-18th year of follow-up. Mothers had increased mortality rates from unnatural causes throughout follow-up, with the highest rate recorded during the first 3 years (3.84, 2.48-5.88; p<0.0001). Bereaved fathers had only an early excess mortality from unnatural causes (1.57, 1.06-2.32; p=0.04). Mothers who lost a child due to an unnatural death or an unexpected death had a hazard ratio of 1.72 (1.38-2.15; p=0.0040) and 1.67 (1.37-2.03; p=0.0037), respectively.
INTERPRETATION:
The death of a child is associated with an overall increased mortality from both natural and unnatural causes in mothers, and an early increased mortality from unnatural causes in fathers.

Mortality, severe morbidity an injury in children living with single parents in Sweden: a population-based study

Ringbäck-Weitoft, G, Hjern, A, Haglund, B & Rosén, M (2003)

Abstract
BACKGROUND:
Growing up with one parent has become increasingly common, and seems to entail disadvantages in terms of socioeconomic circumstances and health. We aimed to investigate differences in mortality, severe morbidity, and injury between children living in households with one adult and those living in households with two adults.
METHODS:
In this population-based study, we assessed overall and cause-specific mortality between 1991 and 1998 and risk of admission between 1991 and 1999 for 65085 children with single parents and 921257 children with two parents. We estimated relative risks by Poisson regression, adjusted for factors that might be presumed to select people into single parenthood, and for other factors, mainly resulting from single parenthood, that might have affected the relation between type of parenting and risk.
FINDINGS:
Children with single parents showed increased risks of psychiatric disease, suicide or suicide attempt, injury, and addiction. After adjustment for confounding factors, such as socioeconomic status and parents' addiction or mental disease, children in single-parent households had increased risks compared with those in two-parent households for psychiatric disease in childhood (relative risk for girls 2.1 [95% CI 1.9-2.3] and boys 2.5 [2.3-2.8]), suicide attempt (girls 2.0 [1.9-2.2], boys 2.3 [2.1-2.6]), alcohol-related disease (girls 2.4 [2.2-2.7], boys 2.2 [2.0-2.4]), and narcotics-related disease (girls 3.2 [2.7-3.7], boys 4.0 [3.5-4.5]). Boys in single-parent families were more likely to develop psychiatric disease and narcotics-related disease than were girls, and they also had a raised risk of all-cause mortality.
CONCLUSIONS:
Growing up in a single-parent family has disadvantages to the health of the child. Lack of household resources plays a major part in increased risks. However, even when a wide range of demographic and socioeconomic circumstances are included in multivariate models, children of single parents still have increased risks of mortality, severe morbidity, and injury.

Mortality, severe morbidity, and injury in children living with single parents in Sweden: a population- based study

Ringbäck-Weitoft, G. Hjern A Haglund, B. Rosén, M (2003)

Background
Growing up with one parent has become increasingly common, and seems to entail disadvantages in terms of socioeconomic circumstances and health. We aimed to investigate differences in mortality, severe morbidity, and injury between children living in households with one adult and those living in households with two adults.

Methods
In this population-based study, we assessed overall and cause-specific mortality between 1991 and 1998 and risk of admission between 1991 and 1999 for 65 085 children with single parents and 921 257 children with two parents. We estimated relative risks by Poisson regression, adjusted for factors that might be presumed to select people into single parenthood, and for other factors, mainly resulting from single parenthood, that might have affected the relation between type of parenting and risk.

Findings
Children with single parents showed increased risks of psychiatric disease, suicide or suicide attempt, injury, and addiction. After adjustment for confounding factors, such as socioeconomic status and parents' addiction or mental disease, children in single-parent households had increased risks compared with those in two-parent households for psychiatric disease in childhood (relative risk for girls 2·1 [95% CI 1·9–2·3] and boys 2·5 [2·3–2·8]), suicide attempt (girls 2·0 [1·9–2·2], boys 2·3 [2·1–2·6]), alcohol-related disease (girls 2·4 [2·2–2·7], boys 2·2 [2·0–2·4]), and narcotics-related disease (girls 3·2 [2·7–3·7], boys 4·0 [3·5–4·5]). Boys in single-parent families were more likely to develop psychiatric disease and narcotics-related disease than were girls, and they also had a raised risk of all-cause mortality.

Conclusions
Growing up in a single-parent family has disadvantages to the health of the child. Lack of household resources plays a major part in increased risks. However, even when a wide range of demographic and socioeconomic circumstances are included in multivariate models, children of single parents still have increased risks of mortality, severe morbidity, and injury.

Mot alla odds. Barn till narkotikamissbrukare berättar om sin uppväxt

Claezon, I. (1996)

Boken handlar om tjugo unga människors uppväxtvillkor. Gemensamt för dem är att en eller båda föräldrarna varit tunga narkotikamissbrukare under deras uppväxt. Gemensamt för dem är också att de flesta upplevt ett antal separationer från föräldrar eller andra viktiga vuxna. Det är också uppenbart att de flesta av dem trots denna bakgrund har en positiv syn på livet och framtiden. Den övergripande frågan som ställs i boken är hur man kan lyckas i livet - mot alla odds.

I boken som bygger på djupintervjuer med de unga personerna, diskuteras de faktorer som kan vara avgörande för barns återhämtningsförmåga eller motståndskraft. Det här är ett till stor del outforskat område (forskningen har hittills varit inriktad på brist- eller riskfaktorer) och kan hjälpa dem som arbetar inom vård- och behandling att hitta nya metoder och förhållningssätt i arbetet med barn i missbruksfamiljer.

Mother and child interactions about the mother's breast cancer: an interview study

Shands ME, Lewis FM, Zahlis EH. (2000)

PURPOSE/OBJECTIVES: To describe mothers' reported methods of interacting with the mothers' school-age children about their breast cancer. DESIGN: Qualitative. SETTING/SAMPLE: 19 mothers newly diagnosed with breast cancer. Mothers received treatment for their illness in the Pacific Northwest. Mothers had at least one child between 7 and 12 years old at the time of diagnosis. METHODS: Case-intensive, in-home, semistructured interviews were audiotaped, transcribed, and inductively coded into four conceptual domains and 16 categories of behavioral strategies used by the mothers to interact with their children about the breast cancer. MAIN RESEARCH VARIABLES: Behavioral strategies used by mothers when interacting with the children about the breast cancer and when providing children with support. FINDINGS: Mothers used a number of methods to bring children into the mothers' breast cancer experience. The conceptual domains included talking about the breast cancer, explaining treatment and care, providing experiences, and doing things to help children cope. CONCLUSIONS: The dominant pattern in the interview data was for mothers to assume a teacher/educator role with the children about the cancer, not an interactive, emotive-expressive parenting role. Most mothers used technical biomedical language; did not give evidence of systematically checking on the children's understanding of what they were told; did not elicit the children's concerns; and exposed the children to emotionally laden or potentially frightening images, words, or experiences. IMPLICATIONS FOR NURSING PRACTICE: Programs and materials need to be developed that help mothers work from a model of parenting that includes developmentally appropriate language, facilitates the children's expression of questions and feelings, links the mothers with the children's understanding of the illness, and assists the children to better manage what is happening related to the breast cancer.

Mother´s stories of the school-age child´s experience with the mother´s breast cancer

Zahlis, E. H. and F. M. Lewis (1998)

Semistructured interviews were conducted with 26 mothers who had one or more children(N = 36) aged 8 to 12 years when they were diagnosed with early stage breast cancer. Formal methods were used to analyze the content of the data inductively. Mothers identified times during their diagnosis and treatment that were most difficult for their children, behaviors they observed indicating that the child was having a difficult time, and factors that prevented them from helping the child during those difficult times. The data provide a partial basis for developing materials, programs, and services designed to minimize the children's distress and to enhance the effectiveness of' parenting when a mother has early stage breast cancer.

Mothers with learning difficulties and their support networks

Llewellyn, Gwynnyth & McConnel, David (2002)

Mothers with learning difficulties1 are thought to be among the most socially isolated parents in the community. A great deal of attention has been directed to assessing their parenting abilities and teaching parenting skills, but less has been given to the support that mothers may (or may not) receive from family, friends and the service system. The present paper investigates mothers' views about the types of support which they receive and from whom they receive it. Data were derived from 70 mothers who participated in interviews using a support interview guide designed to accommodate the mothers' cognitive difficulties. The primary purpose of the interview was to explore the quantity and composition of the mothers' support networks, the frequency of contact and geographical proximity of support people, and the type of support provided. Key findings include: the central place that family members have in these mothers' lives; the importance of service providers as sources of information and advice; and the relative absence of friends and neighbours. Briefly, mothers living alone have service-centred networks, mothers living with a partner have family-centred networks with relatively dispersed family ties, and mothers living in a parent/parent-figure household have local, family-centred networks. The overall conclusion to be drawn from the present results is that these mothers do not live in a social vacuum, but many are socially isolated. The finding that so few mothers could identify supportive ties with friends and neighbours suggests that these mothers are isolated from their local communities and are potentially vulnerable if a breakdown occurs in the support provided by their families. The need for service providers to be more actively involved in linking mothers to their communities is discussed.

Motivational interviewing: Preparing People to Change

Miller, William & Rollnick, Stephen (2002)

Since the initial publication of this breakthrough work, Motivational Interviewing (MI) has been used by countless clinicians. Theory and methods have evolved apace, reflecting new knowledge on the process of behavior change, a growing body of outcome research, and the development of new applications within and beyond the addictions field. Extensively rewritten, this revised and expanded second edition now brings MI practitioners and trainees fully up to date. William R. Miller and Stephen Rollnick explain how to work through ambivalence to facilitate change, present detailed guidelines for using their approach, and reflect on the process of learning MI. Chapters contributed by other leading experts then address such special topics as MI and the stages-of-change model, applications in medical, public health, and criminal justice settings, and using the approach with groups, couples, and adolescents.

Parent stress management training for attention-deficit/hyperactivity disorder

Treacy L, Tripp G, Baird A. (2005)

This study assessed the effectiveness of a targeted 9-week parent stress management program (PSM) on the parenting stress, mood, family functioning, parenting style, locus of control, and perceived social support of parents of children diagnosed with DSM-IV ADHD. Sixty-three parents from 42 families were randomly assigned to 1 of 2 conditions: immediate treatment or wait-list control. Results of the randomized control trial showed that for mothers, completion of the PSM program was accompanied by significant reductions in parent-domain parenting stress together with significant improvements in parenting style (verbosity, laxness, overreactivity). For fathers, completion of the program was associated with a reduction in verbosity only. Anonymously completed consumer satisfaction questionnaires demonstrated a high degree of satisfaction with the PSM program.

Parent training plus contingency management for substance abusing families: A Complier Average Causal Effects (CACE) analysis

Stanger C, Ryan SR, Fu H, Budney AJ. (2011)

BACKGROUND:
Children of substance abusers are at risk for behavioral/emotional problems. To improve outcomes for these children, we developed and tested an intervention that integrated a novel contingency management (CM) program designed to enhance compliance with an empirically-validated parent training curriculum. CM provided incentives for daily monitoring of parenting and child behavior, completion of home practice assignments, and session attendance.
METHODS:
Forty-seven mothers with substance abuse or dependence were randomly assigned to parent training+incentives (PTI) or parent training without incentives (PT). Children were 55% male, ages 2-7 years.
RESULTS:
Homework completion and session attendance did not differ between PTI and PT mothers, but PTI mothers had higher rates of daily monitoring. PTI children had larger reductions in child externalizing problems in all models. Complier Average Causal Effects (CACE) analyses showed additional significant effects of PTI on child internalizing problems, parent problems and parenting. These effects were not significant in standard Intent-to-Treat analyses.
CONCLUSION:
Results suggest our incentive program may offer a method for boosting outcomes.

Parent training plus contingency management for substance abusing families: A Complier Average Causal Effects (CACE) analysis

Stanger C, Ryan SR, Fu H, Budney AJ. (2011)

BACKGROUND:
Children of substance abusers are at risk for behavioral/emotional problems. To improve outcomes for these children, we developed and tested an intervention that integrated a novel contingency management (CM) program designed to enhance compliance with an empirically-validated parent training curriculum. CM provided incentives for daily monitoring of parenting and child behavior, completion of home practice assignments, and session attendance.
METHODS:
Forty-seven mothers with substance abuse or dependence were randomly assigned to parent training+incentives (PTI) or parent training without incentives (PT). Children were 55% male, ages 2-7 years.
RESULTS:
Homework completion and session attendance did not differ between PTI and PT mothers, but PTI mothers had higher rates of daily monitoring. PTI children had larger reductions in child externalizing problems in all models. Complier Average Causal Effects (CACE) analyses showed additional significant effects of PTI on child internalizing problems, parent problems and parenting. These effects were not significant in standard Intent-to-Treat analyses.
CONCLUSION:
Results suggest our incentive program may offer a method for boosting outcomes.

Parent training with behavioral couples therapy for fathers' alcohol abuse: effects on substance use, parental relationship, parenting, and CPS involvement

Lam WKK, Fals-Stewart W, Kelley ML. (2009)

This pilot study examined effects of Parent Skills with Behavioral Couples Therapy (PSBCT) on substance use, parenting, and relationship conflict among fathers with alcohol use disorders. Male participants (N = 30) entering outpatient alcohol treatment, their female partners, and a custodial child (8 to 12 years) were randomly assigned to (a) PSBCT; (b) Behavioral Couples Therapy (BCT); or (c) Individual-Based Treatment (IBT). Children were not actively involved in treatment. Parents completed measures of substance use, couples' dyadic adjustment, partner violence, parenting, and Child Protection Services (CPS) involvement at pretreatment, posttreatment, 6- and 12-month follow-up. PSBCT was comparable to BCT on substance use, dyadic adjustment, and partner violence; both groups showed clinically meaningful effects over IBT. Compared to BCT, PSBCT resulted in larger effect sizes on parenting and CPS involvement throughout follow-up. PSBCT for fathers may enhance parenting couple- or individual-based treatment, and warrant examination in a larger, randomized efficacy trial.

Parent training with behavioral couples therapy for fathers' alcohol abuse: effects on substance use, parental relationship, parenting, and CPS involvement.

Lam WKK, Fals-Stewart W, Kelley ML. (2009)

This pilot study examined effects of Parent Skills with Behavioral Couples Therapy (PSBCT) on substance use, parenting, and relationship conflict among fathers with alcohol use disorders. Male participants (N = 30) entering outpatient alcohol treatment, their female partners, and a custodial child (8 to 12 years) were randomly assigned to (a) PSBCT; (b) Behavioral Couples Therapy (BCT); or (c) Individual-Based Treatment (IBT). Children were not actively involved in treatment. Parents completed measures of substance use, couples' dyadic adjustment, partner violence, parenting, and Child Protection Services (CPS) involvement at pretreatment, posttreatment, 6- and 12-month follow-up. PSBCT was comparable to BCT on substance use, dyadic adjustment, and partner violence; both groups showed clinically meaningful effects over IBT. Compared to BCT, PSBCT resulted in larger effect sizes on parenting and CPS involvement throughout follow-up. PSBCT for fathers may enhance parenting couple- or individual-based treatment, and warrant examination in a larger, randomized efficacy trial.

Parent versus child stress in diverse family types: An ecological approach

Duis SS, Summers M, Summers CR. (1997)

Differences in level of overall stress and the proportion o f child- versus
parent-related stress among several different family types were investigated.
An ecological framework was used to delineate the predictors o f
stress for the different family types. Participants were 2 9 single-parent
families, 3 5 two-parent families, 1 7 families o f children with Down syndrome,
1 6 families of children with hearing impairment, and 2 9 families
of children with developmental delay. Th e results indicate that family
stress and ecological variables predictive o f family stress varied among
these families. Intervention and therapy efforts may be improved by
understanding the locus o f stressors among these family types.

Long-term effects of a group support program and an individual support program for informal caregivers of stroke patients: which caregivers benefit the most?

van den Heuvel ET, Witte LP, Stewart RE, Schure LM, Sanderman R, Meyboom-de Jong B. (2002)

In this article, we report the long-term outcomes of an intervention for informal caregivers who are the main provider of stroke survivors' emotional and physical support. Based on the stress-coping theory of Lazarus and Folkman two intervention designs were developed: a group support program and individual home visits. Both designs aimed at an increase in caregivers' active coping and knowledge, reducing caregivers' strain and improving well-being and social support. Caregivers were interviewed before entering the program, and 1 and 6 months after completion of the program. After 6 months, 100 participants remained in the group program, 49 in the home visit program, and 38 in the control group. Multiple stepwise regression analysis was used to determine the effects of the interventions. In the long-term, the interventions (group program and home visits together) contributed to a small to medium increase in confidence in knowledge and the use of an active coping strategy. The amount of social support remained stable in the intervention groups, whereas it decreased in the control group. The same results were found when only the group program was compared with the control group. However, no significant differences between the home visit group and the participants in the group support program were found. Younger female caregivers benefit the most from the interventions. They show greater gains in confidence in knowledge about patient-care and the amount of social support received compared with other caregivers.

Loss and grief in patients with Schizophrenia: Onliving in another world

Mauritz M, Van Meijel B. (2009)

AIM:
Schizophrenia enormously impacts the lives of the patients who have this psychiatric disorder. This study addresses the lived experience of grief in schizophrenia.
METHOD:
A qualitative study based on the grounded theory was designed. Ten patients were interviewed in depth on their feelings of loss and ways of coping.
RESULTS:
All respondents experienced significant feelings of loss. Internal and external losses were distinguished. Respondents dealt with their losses by accepting their diagnosis and treatment, identifying with other patients, learning about schizophrenia, and searching for meaning.
DISCUSSION:
Respondents were able to identify their significant losses and verbalize the accompanied feelings. They went through an intensive grieving process that to a certain extent led to coming to terms. During the interviews, the presence of grief was evident, whereas clinical depression was excluded.
CLINICAL IMPLICATIONS:
Interventions may be improved by the following factors: (a) optimal assessment and treatment of symptoms; (b) adequate information about symptoms, treatment and its effects, and prognosis; (c) opportunities to identify with other patients; (d) strengthening of social support; and (e) a relationship of trust with care providers based on an accepting attitude.

Manual for the ASEBA Preschool Forms and Profiles

Achenbach TM, Rescorla LA. (2000)

The Manual for the ASEBA preschool forms & profiles explains the development, standardization, applications, & profiles for the CBCL//l½-5 and C-TRF. The Manual also provides reliability & validity data, case illustrations, problem prevalence rates, scale scores, scoring instructions, & answers to common questions. 180 pp.

Mapping images to objects by young adults with cognitive disabilities

Carmien, S. & Wohldman E. (2008)

How the type of representation (icons, photos of objects in context, photos of objects in isolation) displayed on a hand-held computer affected recognition performance in young adults with cognitive disabilities was examined. Participants were required to match an object displayed on the computer to one of three pictures projected onto a screen. We tested the opinion widely held by occupational therapists and special education professionals that there is an inverse relationship between cognitive ability and the required fidelity of a representation for a successful match between a representation and an external object. Despite their widespread use in most learning tools developed for persons with cognitive disabilities, our results suggest that icons are poor substitutes for realistic representations.

Marketisation in Nordic eldercare: a research report on legislation, oversight, extent and consequences.

Meagher G, Szebehely M, editors (2013)

The Nordic countries share a tradition of universal, tax-financed eldercare services, centred on public provision. Yet Nordic eldercare has not escaped the influence of the global wave of marketisation in recent years. Marketinspired measures, such as competitive tendering and user choice models, have been introduced in all Nordic countries, and in some countries, there has been an increase of private, for-profit provision of care services. This report is the first effort to comprehensively document the process of marketisation in Sweden, Finland, Denmark and Norway. The report seeks to answer the following questions: What kinds of market reforms have been carried out in Nordic eldercare systems? What is the extent of privately provided services? How is the quality of marketised monitored? What has the impact of marketisation been on users of eldercare, on care workers and on eldercare systems? Are marketisation trends similar in the four countries, or are there major differences between them? The report also includes analyses of aspects of marketisation in Canada and the United States, where there is a longer history of markets in care. These contributions offer some perhaps salutary warnings for the Nordic countries about the risks of increasing competition and private provision in eldercare. The authors of this report, representing seven countries, are all members of the Nordic Research Network on Marketisation in Eldercare (Normacare). The report has been edited by Professor Gabrielle Meagher, University of Sydney and Professor Marta Szebehely, Stockholm University. Our hope is that the report will provide both a foundation and an inspiration for further research on change in Nordic eldercare.

'Mastering an unpredictable everyday life after stroke'--older women's experiences of caring and living with their partners.

Gosman-Hedstrom G, Dahlin-Ivanoff S. (2012)


INTRODUCTION:
The shift from older persons living in institutions to living in the community naturally affects both the older persons and their partners. The informal care is often taken for granted, and the research that focuses on the diversity of older female carers needs is scarce.
AIM:
To explore and learn from the older women how they experience their life situation and formal support as carers of their partners after stroke and to suggest clinical implications.
METHOD:
The design of the study is qualitative being based on the focus group method. Sixteen carers, median age 74 years (range 67-83), participated in four focus group discussions, which each met once for not more than 2 hours.
FINDINGS:
The discussions resulted in one comprehensive theme; 'Mastering an uncertain and unpredictable everyday life'. Three subthemes emerged from the material: 'Living with another man' where the carers discussed not only the marked change in their partner's personality, but also the loss of a life-companion and their mutual intellectual contact; 'Fear of it happening again', comprising the carers' experiences of fear and confinement, of always having to be ready to help and of being trapped at home; 'Ongoing negotiation', referring to the carers' struggling and negotiating not only with their partners, but also with themselves and formal care for time to themselves.
CONCLUSION:
This study helps us to understand how these older women tried to master an uncertain and unpredictable life. Their life had changed radically; now they were always on call to help their partners and felt tied to home. The results draw attention to the carers' need for time to themselves, a greater knowledge of stroke and continuous support from formal care.
2012 The Authors. Scandinavian Journal of Caring Sciences © 2012 Nordic College of Caring Science.

Med rätt att bestämma själv? – ”exit”, ”voice” och personlig assistans

Hugemark, Agneta (2004)

This study focuses on the influence a user may have over his or her welfare service, personal assistance.
A county, an assistance firm and a user cooperative are compared with the thesis that the organisation
that surrounds the users shapes the possibilities the user have to influence his or her personal
assistance. There are questions that try to answer if there are outspoken social goals within each
organisation. Questions regarding influence of the user when she och he is choosing the assistans
provider and the users possibility to influence and his or her power to decide who and when anyone
works as an assistant are asked.

Mediation of the effects of the Family Bereavement Program on mental health problems of bereaved children and adolescents

Tein, J., Sandler, I.N., Ayers, T.S., & Wolchik, S.A. (2006)

This study presents an analysis of mediation of the effects of the Family Bereavement Program (FBP) to improve mental health outcomes of girls at 11 months following program participation. The FBP was designed based on a theory that program-induced change in multiple child and family level mediators would lead to reductions in children's mental health problems. Mediational models were tested using a three wave and a two wave longitudinal design. Using a three wave longitudinal design, FBP effects on three variables at T2 (increased positive parenting, decreased negative events, and decreased inhibition of emotional expression) were found to mediate the effects of the FBP on mental health problems at 11-month follow-up. Using a two-wave longitudinal design, support was found for FBP effects on three additional variables at 11-month follow-up (increased positive coping, decreased negative thoughts about stressors, and decreased unknown control beliefs) to mediate program effects to reduce mental health problems at 11-month follow-up. The discussion focuses on theoretical explanations for the mediational effects and on implications for identifying "core components" of the FBP that are responsible for its effects to reduce mental health problems of girls.

Min syster fick Alzheimer – om vård och bemötande ur ett anhörigperspektiv

Andersson, Irene (2011)

Moniqa Andersson är bara 58 år då hon får diagnosen Alzheimers sjukdom. I boken Min syster fick Alzheimer - om vård och bemötande ur ett anhörigperspektiv beskriver hennes syster, bokens författare, hur hon går bredvid genom sjukdomsförloppet och kämpar för att Moniqa ska få en trygg och fungerande vård på ett demensboende. Min syster fick Alzheimer är inte bara en engagerad och personlig skildring av hur en demenssjukdom utvecklas och hur de närstående drabbas, den ger också en värdefull inblick i hur vårdsystemet fungerar. Iréne Andersson reflekterar träffsäkert över bemötandet inom den kommunala demensvården och psykiatrin samt ger ett antal konkreta råd om vad som skulle kunna förbättras. Hon problematiserar vidare begreppen "anhörig" och "anhörigsjukdom" samt tar upp frågor om identitet, etik och ansvar. Här kommer många anhöriga och närstående att känna igen sig och få stöd. Författarens iakttagelser gör också boken särskilt intressant för personal i kommun och landsting. Iréne Andersson arbetar som lektor vid Malmö högskola med utbildningsvetenskap samt forskar om genus och fredshistoria. Hon är även flitigt anlitad av Alzheimerföreningen som föreläsare.

Motivation for Money and Care that Adult Children Provide for Parents: Evidence from “Point-Blank” Survey Questions. Working Paper 2004-17

Cox, D. and B. Soldo (2004)

When adult children provide care for their aging parents, they often do so at great expense to themselves incurring psychic, monetary, emotional, and even physical costs, in conjunction with care that is labor intensive and, at the extreme, unrelenting. While the nature of parent care and the profile of care giving children are well described in the literatures of the social sciences, we still lack insight into why adult children undertake parent care without compensation or compulsion. In this paper, we adopt a novel, direct question approach using newly available data from a special module fielded in the 2000 Health and Retirement Study that included questions on motivations for, and concerns with, the provision of familial assistance. Transfers are not always provided free of pressure from other family members, for example, and familial norms of obligations and traditions appear to matter for many respondents. These findings suggest that the standard set of economic considerations—utility interdependence, budget constraints, exchange, and the like—are insufficient for a complete understanding of private transfer behavior. Though one must always be skeptical about reading too much into what people say about why they do the things they do (or think they will do) we nonetheless conclude that "point-blank" questions offer, at the very least, a worthwhile complement to the more conventional methods for unraveling motivations for private, intergenerational transfers.

Mönster i anhörigomsorgen: En uppföljning i Mullsjö 2010

Malmberg, B. and G. Sundström (2012)

Institutet för gerontologi (IFG) genomförde 2008 en enkätundersökning bland alla Mullsjöbor som var 55 år och äldre, varav närmare 70 procent svarade eller drygt 1 600 personer. En dryg femtedel gav omsorg i någon form till närstående personer och omsorgsmönstren svarade väl med resultat i andra undersökningar. En mindre del gav "tung" omsorg, oftast till en partner. Fler gav mindre omfattande omsorg till föräldrar eller andra närstående, men det var också vanligt med "lätt" hjälp till grannar m.fl. (Socialstyrelsen 2009).

År 2010 genomfördes en uppföljningsundersökning av IFG med 911 av dessa personer: Nu var 14 procent omsorgsgivare, varav två tredjedelar var samma personer som 2008. Rörligheten var således betydande: Många hade slutat att ge omsorg – eller såg inte längre det de gjorde som omsorg - och ganska många hade börjat göra det. Även 2010 gjorde de flesta relativt "små" insatser, och ganska få av de "lätta" åtagandena 2008 hade blivit "tunga" 2010. Givare av anhörigomsorg delar fortfarande ofta omsorgsansvaret med någon annan anhörig.

I växande utsträckning delas ansvaret också med den kommunala omsorgen: 2010 hade 77 procent av mottagarna av anhörigomsorgen även någon form av kommunal omsorg (40 procent hade hemtjänst), som de anhöriga ganska ofta är nöjda med. Allt fler nås av hemtjänst, färdtjänst, trygghetslarm och/eller annan offentlig omsorg.

 

Negotiating family responsibilities

Finch, J. and J. Mason (1993)

Negotiating Family Responsibilitiesprovides a major new insight into contemporary family life, particularly kin relationships outside the nuclear family. While many people believe that the real meaning of 'family' has shrunk to the nuclear family household, there is considerable evidence to suggest that relationships with the wider kin group remain an important part of most people's lives.
Based on the findings of a major study of kinship, and including lively verbatim accounts of conversations with family members concepts of responsibility and obligation within family life are examined and the authors expand theories on the nature of assistance within families and argue that it is negotiated over time rather than given automatically.

Optimizing treatment effects for substance-abusing women with children: an evaluation of the Susan B. Anthony Center.

Sowers KM, Ellis RA, Washington TA, Currant M. (2002)

Substance abuse among women is a significant national problem. Historically, the treatment of this condition has been difficult, but it has been even more challenging when the woman in treatment has had children. This article reports the results of an evaluation of the Susan B. Anthony Center (SBAC), a residential treatment facility for recovering women and their children. Researchers studied outcomes for 41 women who were first treated in a detoxification program, then referred to either SBAC or a day treatment program. Although random assignment to groups was not possible, the groups were comparable on four major demographic variables. The SBAC groups reported better outcomes on three psychosocial variables: abstinence, arrest, and employment. They improved their total score on the Functional Assessment Rating Scale substantially more than did the comparison group. Consumer satisfaction was also high.

Optimizing treatment effects for substance-abusing women with children: an evaluation of the Susan B. Anthony Center.

Sowers KM, Ellis RA, Washington TA, Currant M. (2002)

Substance abuse among women is a significant national problem. Historically, the treatment of this condition has been difficult, but it has been even more challenging when the woman in treatment has had children. This article reports the results of an evaluation of the Susan B. Anthony Center (SBAC), a residential treatment facility for recovering women and their children. Researchers studied outcomes for 41 women who were first treated in a detoxification program, then referred to either SBAC or a day treatment program. Although random assignment to groups was not possible, the groups were comparable on four major demographic variables. The SBAC groups reported better outcomes on three psychosocial variables: abstinence, arrest, and employment. They improved their total score on the Functional Assessment Rating Scale substantially more than did the comparison group. Consumer satisfaction was also high.

Parent management of attendance and adherence in child and adolescent therapy: A conceptual and empirical review

Nock, M. K., & Ferriter, C. (2005)

There have been impressive, recent advances in the development of efficacious treatments for child and adolescent behavior problems. However, specific methods for delivering these treatments in a way that amplifies their efficacy have not been well articulated. Although many factors may be involved, attendance and adherence to treatment are arguably the most basic necessities for effective treatment delivery. We provide a conceptual and empirical review of past research on attendance and adherence to child and adolescent therapy, with a special focus on the importance of parents/guardians in managing treatment participation. Our review demonstrates that attendance and adherence are associated with a range of significant methodological, clinical, and financial outcomes. Several pretreatment predictors of attendance and adherence have been identified; however, to date only 12 controlled, clinical trials have evaluated strategies for enhancing attendance and adherence to child therapy. We conclude with an agenda for advancing research on the prediction and enhancement of attendance and adherence to child therapy as a means of improving the efficiency and effectiveness of child treatments.

Parentally bereaved children and posttraumatic growth: insights from an etnographic study of a UK childhood bereavement service

Brewer, J. & Sparkes, A. (2011)

Drawing on data generated from a two-year ethnographic study of the Rocky Centre (achildhood bereavement organisation in the UK), this article explores the positive changes and themes of posttraumatic growth experienced by parentally bereaved young people. Although the broader study generated data from participant observation, interviews and a documentary analysis, this article focuses specifically on the interviews with 13 young people to identify the themes of posttraumatic growth that emerged from the participants' narratives. Of these, four had been recently bereaved and nine had experienced the death of a parent over 10 years ago. Interviews were transcribed verbatim and analysed for themes that reflected the young people's experiences of growing through grief. Those identified were as follows: positive outlook, gratitude, appreciation of life, living life to the full, and altruism. Each theme isdiscussed in turn, and the implications of the findings for research and practice are addressed.

Women in the Middle. Their Parent-care Years

Brody, E. (2004)

Women in the Middlewas so-named because daughters, who are the main caregivers to elderly disabled parents, most often in their middle years, are caught in the middle of multiple competing demands on their time and energy. Since the first edition, women's responsibilities and the pressures they have experienced have increased and intensified. Dr. Brody revisits this phenomenon in this new, updated edition of her ground-breaking work.

Women in the Middle, 2/e, describes and discusses the caregiving women's subjective feelings, experiences, and problems, and the effects on their mental and physical well-being, life styles, family relationships, and vocational activities. These case studies and narratives present an insider's view of the harsh and sometimes joyful experience of caregiving.

Special attention is given to the changing face of social, economic, and environmental conditions, as well as the diversity of the caregiver, in which caregiving, in which caregiving takes place.

Workforce capacity to respond to children whose parents have a mental illness

Maybery, D., & Reupert , A. (2006)

Abstract
OBJECTIVE:
The first of the three objectives of this study was to identify the core barriers that impede adult mental health and other clinicians from working with patients about parenting and child-related issues. The second and third objectives were to rate the importance of these barriers and to compare barriers for adult mental health workers with other workers.
METHOD:
There were two data collection phases; the first, qualitative phase involved collecting verbatim responses from 60 mental health and welfare workers, regarding barriers about working with mentally ill patients about their parenting role as well as with their children. The second involved 32 participants, including 20 adult mental health workers and 12 other workers, responding to the scaled questionnaire items based on the qualitative barriers identified at phase one.
RESULTS:
The most important barriers highlighted by workers were patients not identifying their illness as a problem for their children and patients denying that they had a mental health problem. All workers reported that it was part of their role to get involved with issues regarding their patient's children. In comparison to other workers, adult mental health workers reported time and resource limitations, as well as skill and knowledge deficits regarding parenting and working with children.
CONCLUSIONS:
The findings are discussed in relation to adult mental health policy and ongoing professional development, particularly for adult mental health workers.

Young carers and their Families

Becker, S., Aldridge, J., & Dearden, C. (1998)

TONY WATERSTON, Consultant Paediatrician (Community Child Health)
Young Carers and their Families. By Becker S, Aldridge J, Dearden C. (Pp 144; paperback £14.99.) Blackwell Science, 1998. ISBN 0 632 04966 9 .

A day in the life of a child caring for a parent with multiple sclerosis.

Children caring for their parents or other children in the family are familiar to those who have worked in the third world but even with the UK's welfare service and safety net there are between 15 and 40 000 child carers nationwide. Oddly, just before starting to read this book I attended a meeting at a local school where we have begun a system of multiagency review of pupils not in school; the first young person discussed was caring for a parent and grandparent. We need to be more aware of this problem—hence this academic overview is welcomed.

Written by a trio of sociologists the book comes from a community and family based perspective but there is much of value to paediatricians. The authors first describe three perspectives on child carers: the impact of disability on the family, which is mainly medical; the children's rights angle; and the view of the disability rights movement. The first is viewed rather negatively as being narrow, but to me portrays the emotional and educational impact on the child of being a carer: "Every child needs to grow up in a stable environment characterised by consistent relationships. Many children are instead subjected to unending crises stemming from a parent's illness and repeated hospitalisation which provoke chronic uncertainty and unresolved grief that can be more stressful to a child than the loss of a parent through divorce or death." Thus the role of carer can restrict the child's education, can create physical burdens that their bodies are unprepared for, and confront them with a picture of suffering that has long term harm.

The children as carers literature tells why children take on care giving roles: a major factor is lone parenthood, another is reluctance of their father to take on caring activity; sadly the failure of services to recognise the needs of children and indeed sometimes to withdraw their provision is a notable factor. Inevitably, poverty is an ever present contributor. We learn of the involvement of young carers in intimate tasks; one girl cared for her father from the age of 9 following a stroke: "I did stop showering him at about 14 or 15, but recently that's started again. I didn't like showering him any more. You know, I thought 'I want my privacy, I'm sure he wants his', and I'm sure he doesn't like me having to shower him and I certainly don't like doing it. I suppose it was embarrassment. You know—it takes up so much time, it takes about an hour from start to finish, you know, get him in the shower and get him out and dressed."

Children carers have little power or status and families assume that what has begun voluntarily will become embedded in their habits, even though the young person would rather relinquish the role.

School attendance and performance is poor among young care givers; one study found that one in four were missing school. It is a poor reflection on school health services that support has not been provided to help these children back into school.

I found that the authors take a long time to make a few simple points. Having learned that caring is common and not beneficial for children, I wanted to know what I should do but there are no clear messages. The UN Convention on the Rights of the Child should underpin policy, but its impact in the UK has been limited. Only 11 of 71 local authorities defined these children as in need under the Children's Act. The Carers Act 1996 ensures that children may request to have their needs assessed but in a typical British Catch 22, the Act does not oblige departments to provide any services.

A useful type of support are the Young Carers' Projects with now over 100 in the UK. These raise awareness, develop supportive services, act on behalf of young carers to ensure that they receive appropriate benefits, and arrange leisure activities.

The authors identify the need to inform young carers on medical conditions, pointing out that this is woefully inadequate and that many children know so little about their parents' medical condition that they had invented their own version of diagnosis, prognosis, and consequences.

It saddened me that in the section on the role of professionals in identifying and assisting young carers, there is no mention of paediatricians. Is this because they are seen as purely medical, or because they have little contact with young carers? I suspect that it is the former, and that we need to be more outspoken about our wish to work across disciplines on behalf of children's health. We also need to look out for child carers in the families whom we see.

What I searched for was a child or young person's perspective, to try and understand some of the positive aspects of caring. I found little, perhaps because little has been done. Usually children have pretty good answers to difficult questions. Searching hard, I found a reference to a national survey of young people in which they thought that children of 10 should make their own bed and help with the washing up, children of 14 could take a part time job, young people at 16 could baby sit a child of 5, and 18 year olds could marry and vote. Caring for a parent was not mentioned.

So what might paediatricians take away from this book? First, an understanding that children who are carers are around and are being harmed; second, that they are often invisible to the agencies who should be helping; and third, that we have a role in highlighting this type of exploitation, as well as looking out for young carers among our patients. We would do well to network with the agencies locally who have young carers' projects. Only when I was writing this did I discover who they are in my district.

"A look at a community coming together to meet the needs of older adults: An evaluation of Neighbors Helping Neighbors program."

Trickey, R (2008)

The purpose of this study was to evaluate the effectiveness of the Neighbors Helping Neighbors program. The study included surveys of 49 community-residing older adults and 26 community volunteers. Results showed that older adults perceived their quality of life to have improved after receiving social and environmental services; volunteers felt that their contributions to the program had made a significant difference in their community. This exploratory, descriptive study is only a beginning effort, but it holds great promise for suggesting ways to address the needs of the burgeoning aging population in our society.

 

"Being in good hands": next of kin's perceptions of continuity of care in patients with heart failure

Östman, Malin, Bäck-Pettersson, Siv, Sandvik, Ann-Helén, Sundler, Annelie Johansson (2019)

Background Heart failure (HF) is a chronic condition with a variety of diverse symptoms. Patients with HF are usually elderly with multimorbidity, which are both multifaceted and challenging. Being a next of kin to patients with HF is described as a complex task consisting of managing care and treatment, monitoring illness and being an emotional support, while also being able to navigate the healthcare system especially in long-term contact. However, few studies have investigated next of kin's perceptions of continuity of care in connection with HF. The present study aimed to describe continuity of care as perceived by the next of kin who care for patients with HF. Methods This study used a qualitative descriptive design. Semi-structured interviews were conducted with the next of kin ( n = 15) of patients with HF to obtain their perceptions of continuity of care. A phenomenographic analysis method was used to capture the participants' perceptions of the phenomenon. Results The analysis reveals that the next of kin perceive that support from healthcare professionals was strongly associated with experiences of continuity of care. Four categories reveal the next of kin's perceptions of continuity of care: Want to be involved without being in charge; A desire to be in control without acting as the driving force in the care situation; A need for sustainability without being overlooked; and Focusing on making life meaningful while being preoccupied with caregiving activities. Conclusions Next of kin perceive continuity of care, when they have access to care and treatment and when caregivers collaborate, regardless of healthcare is given by primary care, municipalities or specialist clinics. A sense of "being in good hands" sums up the need for continuous support, shared decision-making and seamless transitions between caregivers. It seems important that healthcare organisations safeguard effective and collaborative models. Moreover, professionals need to plan and perform healthcare in collaboration with patients and next of kin.

"Depression Among Recipients of Informal Care: The Effects of Reciprocity, Respect, and Adequacy of Support."

Wolff, J. F. and Agree, E.M. (2004)

Abstract

OBJECTIVES:
The objective of this work was to examine the relationship of perceived quality of care to depression among recipients of informal long-term care.

METHODS:
eneralized estimating equations were used to generate population-average logistic regression models of prevalent depression, using a sample of 420 disabled community-dwelling women aged 65 or older receiving informal care obtained from the Women's Health and Aging Study Caregiving Survey.

RESULTS:
Findings confirm a substantial prevalence of depression among older women with disabilities and support the hypothesis that perceived reciprocity and respect afforded by one's primary caregiver as well as adequacy of instrumental support all were associated with a lower likelihood of being categorized as depressed, even after controlling for sociodemographic, health, and psychosocial characteristics that are known to be related to depression.

DISCUSSION:
Perceived quality of informal care arrangements has a bearing on the psychological health of care recipients. Individuals in more reciprocal relationships and in relationships where they felt respected and valued were less likely to be depressed than their counterparts.

"Easing the way" for spouse caregivers of individuals with dementia: a pilot feasibility study of a grief intervention

Ott, C. H., Kelber, S. T., & Blaylock, M. (2010)

A multicomponent intervention targeting grief symptoms in spouse caregivers of individuals with dementia was pilot tested in this feasibility study. Twenty spouse caregivers completed the study within the 5-month protocol. The five-component intervention, deduced from Meuser, Marwit, and Sanders' Dementia Caregiver Grief Model and tailored to participants' grief, mental health, and learning needs, included supportive grief counseling, emotional support, education, skill building, and referral to community resources. Significant changes were found from baseline to intervention completion for the measures of grief, depression, anxiety, positive states of mind, and self-efficacy, resulting in a moderate effect size of -0.43 for grief to a large effect size of -2.40 for anxiety. Increases in quality of life and decreases in grief persisted at the 8-month follow up for caregivers who continued to provide care in the home. The Easing the Way intervention protocol is a promising caregiver program that warrants further testing in a randomized controlled study.

"Learning to Become a Family Caregiver" Efficacy of an Intervention Program for Caregivers Following Diagnosis of Dementia in a Relative

Ducharme FC, Levesque LL, Lachance LM, Kergoat M-J, Legault AJ, Beaudet LM, et al. (2011)

Purpose: The purpose of this experimental study was to test the efficacy of a psychoeducational individual program conceived to facilitate transition to the caregiver role following diagnosis of Alzheimer disease in a relative. Design and Methods: Caregivers were recruited in memory clinics and randomized to an experimental group (n = 62) or a control group (n = 49) receiving usual care. Eligible participants-primary caregivers of a relative diagnosed with Alzheimer in the past 9 months-were assessed blindly before randomization, at the end of the program (post-test), and 3 months later (follow-up) on different outcomes associated with healthy role transition. Results: The analyses indicated that at post-test and follow-up, caregivers in the experimental group were more confident in dealing with caregiving situations, perceived themselves to be better prepared to provide care and more efficacious in their caregiver role, were better able to plan for the future care needs of their relative, had better knowledge of available services, and made more frequent use of the coping strategies of problem solving and reframing. The program had no significant effect on use of stress-management strategies, perceived informal support and family conflicts. Implications: This program underscores that a proactive intervention approach from the onset of the care trajectory is key to fostering caregiver adaptation to the new challenges they must meet. Adapted from the source document.

"Left alone with straining but inescapable responsibilities": Relatives’ experiences with mental health services

Weimand BM, Hedelin B, Hall-Lord M-L, Sällström C. (2011)

Relatives of persons with severe mental illness experience burden and straining changes in their lives that put their health at risk. Consequently, they need support from health professionals. The aim of this study was to describe experiences from encounters with mental health services as seen from the point of view of relatives of persons with severe mental illness. A qualitative, explorative study was performed, based on two open-ended questions in a cross-sectional study of relatives' health, burden, and sense of coherence (n = 216). A manifest qualitative content analysis was used to describe the relatives' experiences. The findings show that some relatives had experienced positive encounters with health personnel, but the majority of experiences reported were negative. The encounters can be summarized into one main category: "Left Alone with Straining but Inescapable Responsibilities." Two categories emerged: "Striving for Involvement for the Sake of the Mentally Ill Person," and "Wanting Inclusion for the Sake of Oneself." There is a gap between relatives' needs for support in order to handle their own situation in relation to their mentally ill next of kin, and what they actually receive from the mental health services. The findings suggest that health professionals should collaborate with and support these relatives.

"My Friends are my Family‘: an argument about the limitations of contemporary law's recognition of relationships in later life."

Westwood, S. (2013)

Current UK law and social policy privilege the conjugal couple, biological and filial relationships. Friendship remains on the margins of regulatory recognition. Yet friendship is of growing significance in contemporary social relationships. This is particularly so for older people, especially for older lesbian, gay and bisexual people. This paper explores the place of friendship in key areas of law and social policy relating to older age: pensions, benefits and inheritance; medical decision making; mental health and mental capacity legislation; and social care policy. The extent to which contemporary law is keeping up with changing relationship forms will be considered, together with its implications for equality in later life

"Non-palliative care" - a qualitative study of older cancer patients' and their family members' experiences with the health care system.

Fjose M., Eilertsen G., Kirkevold M., Grov EK. (2018)

BACKGROUND: Among all cancer patients in the palliative phase, ¾ have reached the age of 65. An aging population will increase the number of people afflicted with cancer, and create challenges for patients, family members and health services. Nevertheless, limited research has focused explicitly on the experiences and needs of older cancer patients in the palliative phase and their families. Therefore, the aim of this study is to explore what older home dwelling cancer patients in the palliative phase and their close family members, as individuals and as a family, experience as important and difficult when facing the health services.
METHODS: We used a qualitative descriptive design. Data was collected through family group interviews with 26 families. Each interview consisted of an older home dwelling cancer patient and one to four family members with different relationships to the patient (e.g. spouse, adult children and/or children-in-law). Data was analysed by qualitative content analysis.
RESULTS: The main theme is "Non-palliative care" - health care services in the palliative phase not tailored to family needs. Three themes are revealed: 1) exhausting cancer follow-up, 2) a cry for family involvement, and 3) fragmented care.
CONCLUSION: The health services seem poorly organised for meeting the demands of palliative care for older home dwelling cancer patients in the palliative phase and their family members. Close family members would like to contribute but health services lack systems for involving them in the follow-up of the patient.

"Om åtminstone blöjleveranserna kunde komma i tid!". Vårda och vårdas. Äldre och deras anhöriga, två undersökningar år 2000, utförd på uppdrag av Socialstyrelsen

Sundström, G. (2001)

Den riksrepresentativa undersökning av hemmaboende äldre 75+ som gjordes våren 2000(Socialstyrelsen 2000a) är utgångspunkten för föreliggande två studier av äldre som själva är anhörigvårdare respektive av äldre som får anhörigvård.Av äldre som själva är anhörigvårdare har i föreliggande undersökning enbart personer som vårdar någon i det egna hemmet valt att medverka; nästan alla är make/maka till den vårdade. Detta innebär en något beskuren bild av äldre som omsorgsgivare, men troligen en adekvat belysning av äldre som vårdar sin partner. Bland äldre som fick mycket hjälp-omsorg-vård intervjuades anhöriga, av dessa var drygt hälften en maka-make. Totalt omfattar intervjuerna 56 personer (20 respektive 36 i dessa två grupper). I båda kategorierna är likheterna mer slående än skillnaderna.De flesta anhörigvårdare är själva äldre. Inte så få är män, särskilt inom äktenskapets ram. När makar står för omsorgen har vården ofta pågått länge och för en del har den medfört nedsatt hälsa.Vårduppgifterna är ibland fysiskt och/eller psykiskt betungande och medför ofta inskränkningar i den anhöriges sociala liv. Få av dem har arbete och än färre har tagit ledigt för att vårda. De vårdade har vanligen mycket nedsatt funktionsförmåga och är helt beroende av vårdaren, något som är tydligt belastande. Ganska många är drabbade av demenssymptom eller andra kognitiva nedsättningar.Det mest påtagliga är att så få använder offentlig hjälp. De som har sådan, har ofta mycket få insatser. De använder ett fåtal hemhjälpstimmar eller enbart annan hemtjänst såsom larm, matlåda och/eller färdtjänst. Många har dock fått sina bostäder anpassade och några får omfattande offentlig hjälp och är uttalat nöjd med den, men många av dem som inte har offentlig hjälp är också nöjda. Minst en tredjedel av anhörigvårdarna har uttalade önskemål om offentligt stöd.Manliga anhörigvårdare använder sig oftare av offentlig hjälp (hemhjälp m.m.) än kvinnliga anhöriga. Många av vårdarna får också hjälp av andra anhöriga, när sådana finns att tillgå. Påfallande många står dock utan stöd från andra anhöriga, bland de yngre är många enda barnet eller det enda tillgängliga barnet. Totalt sett bor nästan alla vårdare tillsammans med eller mycket nära den de hjälper. De vårdade oftast färre anhöriga (partner, barn, syskon, annan släkt) än den äldre befolkningen i allmänhet.Mycket få vårdare efterlyser spontant något offentligt stöd. Endast hälften efterfrågar hjälp när de får ta ställning till konkreta listor över tänkbara stödformer. De som önskar hjälp vill endera ha "avlastning" och/eller rehabilitering respektive (mer) hjälp med hushållet. Endast en sjättedel avvisar offentligt stöd i alla former. När anhöriga formulerar önskemål är de ofta mycket blygsamma: "om åtminstone blöjleveranserna kom i tid!". De offentliga insatserna framstår ibland som fantasilösa, otydliga och inflexibla. Studien fann också flera exempel på anmärkningsvärda missförstånd. Uppenbart är att många av dessa anhörigvårdare har (fått) föga information om stödmöjligheter m.m.Anmärkningsvärt många anhöriga (ca. hälften) önskar ekonomisk ersättning för sina insatser, några har redan små belopp för det de uträttar. När anhörigvårdare begärt ersättning har det för flera avslagits utan motivering eller på tveksamma grunder.Trots allt är närmare hälften i stort sett nöjda med sin situation och med den offentliga hjälp de får. Undersökningen finner åtskilliga exempel på illa fungerande offentlig hjälp, men också flera goda exempel på välfungerande insatser med mycket nöjda vårdtagare och anhöriga. Knappt hälften av vårdarna är intresserade av kontakt med frivilligverksamhet, något som ett fåtal redan har. Dessa är i allmänhet tydligt nöjda med detta stöd.

"Parent Management Training as a Treatment for Children with Oppositional Defiant Disorder Referred to a Mental Health Clinic."

Costin J (2007)

Parent Management Training (PMT) has been shown to be an empirically supported intervention in ameliorating antisocial behaviour problems. Less evidence is available to demonstrate the effectiveness of PMT in routine public-health-oriented community-based settings where the presence of comorbid disorders complicates the picture. The current study was undertaken to investigate the effectiveness of PMT as a treatment for primary school-age children with Oppositional Defiant Disorder (ODD) and comorbid disorders offered by clinical staff as part of clinical practice. An Australian sample of 94 parents of children diagnosed with ODD by structured interview was provided with eight sessions of PMT. Measures used to assess changes in child behaviour symptoms were the Eyberg Child Behavior Inventory, the Parent Stress Index Child Domain, and the Child Behavior Checklist. Clinically relevant and statistically significant outcome results were found at posttreatment and at 5 months follow-up. There was a reduction in child symptomatology but no evidence of any effect of comorbidity on outcome. These findings are important for the clinical field as they show that PMT is a robust intervention suitable for routine clinical practice even when comorbid disorders are present in addition to ODD.

"You don't want to burden them": older adults' views on family involvement in care

Cahill, E., Lewis, L. M., Barg, F. K., & Bogner, H. R. (2009)

Burden emerged as an important concept among older adults in a study of how older adults interact with their families around care. The authors conducted 50 semistructured interviews with adults older than the age of 65 years and a spouse or adult child. The sample was stratified by ethnicity thus giving the opportunity to explore both ethnic similarities and differences. Older adults who expressed the concept of burden were more likely to be White compared with older adults who did not express burden. Older respondents discussed burden in relation to not wanting to complicate the busy lives of adult children, guilt about health problems, and concern that children were overly worried about the care of their older family member. The expression and meaning of burden differed according to ethnicity. This study has implications for practice and policies to meet the needs of families and promote the independence of older persons.

“Generalised anxiety disorder in elderly patients: epidemiology, diagnosis and treatment options”

Flint, A. J. (2005)

Generalised anxiety disorder (GAD) is characterised by at least 6 months of excessive uncontrollable worry accompanied by symptoms of motor tension and vigilance and scanning. As with other anxiety disorders, GAD is less prevalent in older adults than younger adults. GAD has a high level of comorbidity with other psychiatric disorders and this has a bearing on estimates of its prevalence. GAD that is comorbid with another psychiatric disorder has a period prevalence of approximately 4% in community-dwelling older people. On the other hand, 'pure' GAD is less common, with a period prevalence of approximately 1%. Pure GAD in late life is a fairly even mix of chronic cases that began earlier in life and cases starting for the first time in later life. The most frequent and consistent finding regarding late-life generalised anxiety is its high level of comorbidity with major depression. There are few longitudinal data pertaining to the temporal association of generalised anxiety and major depression in late life, but the data that do exist suggest that the anxiety is frequently symptomatic of the depression. If generalised anxiety occurs exclusively during episodes of major depression, a separate diagnosis of GAD is not warranted. Cognitive behaviour therapy (CBT) is the most frequently studied psychological treatment for GAD. Although CBT is more effective than a wait-list control condition, it is not more effective than nondirective therapies in late-life GAD. Furthermore, a standard course of CBT appears to be less efficacious for GAD in older adults than younger adults. Further research is needed to develop more efficacious and specific forms of psychotherapy for late-life GAD. The three classes of medications that are most commonly used for GAD are: (i) antidepressants; (ii) benzodiazepines; and (iii) buspirone. Antidepressant medication is the pharmacological treatment of choice for most older adults with generalised anxiety. When generalised anxiety is secondary to an episode of major depression, the selection of an antidepressant is guided by the same principles that apply to treatment of nonanxious depression. Antidepressant medication is also effective for GAD in the absence of an episode of major depression. In this situation, citalopram and venlafaxine have been found to be efficacious in older people. Data from studies of mixed-aged patients suggest that escitalopram, paroxetine and trazodone may also be beneficial in late-life GAD. Despite their widespread use in older persons with anxiety, benzodiazepines have a limited role in the treatment of GAD in the elderly. If a benzodiazepine is initiated, pharmacokinetic considerations favour the use of either lorazepam or oxazepam. Buspirone also has a more limited role than antidepressants in the treatment of late-life GAD.

“It makes me feel like good inside because I helped him do stuff” – Perceptions of psychological well-being in adolescents providing dementia care

Perion, Jennifer Steiner, Victoria Ames, April (2021)

According to a 2018 report by the Alzheimer's Association, an estimated 250,000 children help support a family member with dementia, but few studies exist that describe their experience as family carers. This qualitative descriptive study sought to understand the perceived psychological well-being of adolescents who assist with providing care to family members with dementia. Eleven adolescents ages 12 to 17 caring for older non-parental family members with dementia in northwest Ohio participated in one of three focus group discussions. An adult family member was surveyed about family background and level of assistance provided. The data from the two questionnaires were analyzed using descriptive statistics. Focus group transcripts were analyzed using thematic content analysis. Thematic analysis revealed six themes related to psychological well-being: 1) Feeling compassion for the family member; 2) Finding connection through fun, humor, and mutual affection; 3) Helping even though it is not always pleasant; 4) Feeling good inside about helping family "do stuff"; 5) Believing no one can do it like family; and 6) Reflecting that it is just something that they do. The findings of this study provide new insight into adolescents' experiences of dementia family care and how it affects their psychological well-being. An examination of the themes suggests that secondary caring roles were mostly positive in nature and may help adolescents forge closer family relationships, find opportunities for personal growth and development, and overcome challenges to grow more confident. These findings may also suggest ways to include adolescents in family care as a means of positive growth opportunities. •Dementia caregiving was mostly a positive experience for adolescents.•Family obligations elicited feelings of connectedness.•Adolescents found ways to overcome feelings of aversion when providing care.•Emergent themes were consistent with Ryff's dimensions of physiological well-bring.•Results may be used to develop supportive and enriching programs for families.

“Role of depressive symptoms and comorbid chronic disease on health-related quality of life among community-dwelling older adults”.

Gallegos-Carrillo, K., Garcia-Pena, C., Mudgal, J., Romero, X., Durán-Arenas, L., & Salmeròn, J. (2009)

OBJECTIVE:
This study examined the influence of depressive symptoms on health-related quality of life (HRQOL) among community-dwelling older adults suffering from various categories of chronic comorbidity.
METHODS:
A population-based survey in adults aged 60 years or more was conducted within a random sample of 1085 beneficiaries of the Mexican Institute of Social Security in Mexico City. Depressive symptoms were evaluated with the 15-item Geriatric Depression Scale, and chronic comorbidity was determined with self-reports concerning prior medical diagnoses and the HRQOL Short Form-36 health survey. We carried out a stratified analysis by comorbidity category, evaluating the impact of depressive symptoms on HRQOL through an analysis of variance and modeling the independent association of depression symptoms with HRQOL using multiple linear regression analyses adjusted for comorbidity and other covariables.
RESULTS:
HRQOL scores were low in the presence of depressive symptoms, while their impact increased when chronic diseases were also present. The group with the poorest HRQOL was older adults suffering from both depressive symptoms and two or more chronic diseases (P<.05). The stratified analysis by comorbidity and multivariate analysis, adjusted for covariables, indicated that depressive symptoms and comorbidity had cumulative negative effects on HRQOL.
CONCLUSION:
The HRQOL of older adults deteriorated when depressive symptoms were present and decreased even further with the simultaneous occurrence of chronic illnesses. Identifying depression symptoms-either alone or along with chronic conditions-is crucial for implementation of measures aimed at improving elderly people's HRQOL.

“Speech After Long Silence”: The Use of Narrative Therapy in a Preventive Intervention for Children of Parents with Affective Disorder

Focht-Birkerts, L., & Beardslee, W.R. (1996)

This article is an attempt to explain why the stories of those who suffer from affective disorder have gone unspoken, and to describe how the Preventive Intervention Project (PIP) helps to elaborate a narrative process within families. The PIP is a short-term, psychoeducational intervention focused on enhancing family understanding of affective disorder, and on building resiliency in children. Detailed descriptions of interventions with two families are used to demonstrate how the PIP works with parents and children: to move the narrative process from private to shared meaning. We discuss how cultural "canons" regarding affective illness reinforce a tendency to keep that experience private. We then show how the PIP provides an alternative, "schematic base" of understanding that facilitates a family's ability to begin a dialogue about their illness. We hope to demonstrate how this modernist, psychoeducational framework can be integrated with a more open-ended, postmodern construction of meaning.

”Alla behöver ju bra habilitering …” småbarnsföräldrars uppfattningar av stöd från habiliteringen

Carlhed, Carina (1998)

Denna studie ingår som en del i ett större forskningsprojekt som bedrivs vid institutionen för Samhälls- och Beteendevetenskap vid Mälardalens högskola. Projektet syftar till att öka kunskapen om familjers samarbete med habiliteringsverksamhet. Projektledare är docent Eva Björck-Åkesson. I denna studie har fokus riktats mot föräldrar till barn med funktionshinder. Syftet har varit att belysa uppfattningarna ur deras eget perspektiv, men ambitionen har också omfattat ett vidare perspektiv, att beskriva föräld-rarnas önskemål om hur de vill bli bemötta och hur de vill att stödet ska utformas. Syftet kan kortfattat beskrivas i följande fråga: Hur uppfattar föräldrar som har små barn med funktionshinder det stöd de får från habiliteringen och hur vill de att stödet ska utformas i framtiden?Studien har en explorativ, hermeneutisk ansats och har sin utgångspunkt i ett föräldraperspektiv. De teoretiska utgångspunkterna är utifrån ett utvecklingsekologiskt synsätt och i empowermentteori. Resultaten har speglats mot tidigare studier inom området avseende familje-/närmiljöorienterat arbetssätt inom habilitering/intervention och inom området "Early Intervention". Vid genomförandet av studien prövades också möjligheten att kombinera en hermeneutisk ansats med fenomenografisk metod. Denna kombination har visat sig ge en användbar praktisk vägledning i tolknings- och analysarbetet.Studiens resultat visar att det finns en skillnad i hur föräldrarna uppfattar det stöd de får i dag och hur de önskar att stödet skulle ges. Uppfattningar av stöd från habiliteringen beskrivs i kategorier som omfattar organisatoriska faktorer, habiliteringsteamets arbetssätt och möten med enskilda professionella. Resultatet redovisas bl.a. i en tabell som beskriver en önskad och uppfattad situation, även föräldrarnas uppfattningar avseende andra formella/informella system beskrivs. Resultaten visar att intentionerna i bl.a. LSS (Lagen om särskilt stöd och service, SFS 1993:387) inte implementerats, brister i information och samordning av insatser tycks vara två av de bidragande orsakerna. Det finns således en skillnad i lagtext och verklighet. Rättigheter skall följas åt av resurser, vilket inte är fallet för de medverkande föräldrarna. Arbetssättet hos habiliteringen är inte familje/närmiljöorienterat och följaktligen riktas insatser mot barnet i första hand. Insatserna har inte baserats på behov i familjernas vardag i någon större utsträckning, utan föräldrarna har snarare blivit hänvisade till "det som finns", både när det gäller tillgänglig specialistkompetens och ett fast utbud av aktiviteter. Någon större grad av "em-powerment" har inte dessa föräldrar fått vara med om och de ser sig inte själva som samarbetspartners i habiliteringsprocessen.I mötet ställs speciella krav enligt föräldrarna, man behöver t.ex. tätare kontakter och en mer aktiv hjälp och önskar mötas av en större lyhördhet och flexibilitet. Brister i kommunikation hos både föräldrar och personal samt ett lågt visat intresse och initiativtagande hos personalen verkat ha varit ett hinder för detta. Resultaten pekar på ett behov av utbildning / fortbildning för både personal och föräldrar i gemensam problem-lösning. Det finns viktiga faktorer hos både personal och föräldrar som bidrar till ett gott samarbete, t.ex. en vilja att arbeta familjeorienterat, attityder, kommunikationsförmåga etc. Betydelsen av goda relationer, ett respektfullt bemötande och noggrann uppföljning är också viktigt för samarbetet. Habiliteringens mål bör vara klart formulerat och filosofin/värderingarna i verksamheten bör överensstämma med verkligheten. Det finns enligt dessa resultat en diskrepans mellan upplevt behov och tillgänglig service.Slutligen presenteras en modell som beskriver graden av empowerment som ett resultat av en ömsesidig påverkansprocess i mötet mellan föräldrar och habiliteringspersonal

”Are there any clinical characteristics of depression in elderly people that could be useful for case finding in general practice?”

Fröjdh, K., Håkansson, A., & Jansson, S. (2003)

OBJECTIVES:
The aim of this study was to identify clinical characteristics of depression in elderly people that could be useful for case finding in general practice.
DESIGN:
A cross-sectional study of clinical characteristics through review of medical records.
SETTING:
Herrhagen health centre, Karlstad, Sweden.
SUBJECTS:
Seventy-one persons with a high depressive score in a screening of depressive symptoms and an age-matched and sex-matched control group of 138 persons with a low depressive score.
RESULTS:
The high depressive score group had an increased relative risk for "mental health problems" (RR 3.4; CI 95% 1.7-7.2), "many contacts with the health care centre" (> or = 14/3 years) (RR 2.9; CI 95% 1.4-6.1), and prescriptions of benzodiazepines (RR 1.7; CI 95% 1.0-2.9). Two-thirds of those in the high depressive score group had at least one of these characteristics. However, three-quarters of those with any of these characteristics had a low depressive score. In our population of elderly people with an estimated prevalence of 10.2% the positive predictive value would be 21% and the negative predictive value 95%.
CONCLUSION:
General practitioners should suspect a possible depressive disorder in elderly patients with mental health problems, with frequent contacts with the health centre or with prescriptions of benzodiazepines. Despite the high occurrences of these prominent clinical characteristics in the high-score group, they did not unfortunately have sufficient discriminatory power to be useful for case finding.

”Because we know our limits”: Elderly parents´ view on intergenerational proximity and intimacy

Hjälm, A. (2012)

From an intergenerational family perspective, geographical distance and proximity have been shown to affect interaction and the extent of help and support between generations. Geographical separation and nearness hence do not only influence the family per se, but might also concern the welfare state, not least in times of population ageing. This study concerns exchange and assistance between elderly parents living very close to an adult child, and is based on interviews with 14 elderly parents. The interviews revealed that help and support flowed in both directions between the close-living generations, but that from the perspective of the elderly some types of help were more acceptable than others to give and receive. Further, the interviews suggested that living close, albeit discussed as allowing extensive interaction and support, should not be understood as a sign of wanting or even accepting more extensive help from the close-living adult child.

”No, you don’t know how we feel”: Groupwork with children facing parental loss

Chowns, G. (2008)

Groupwork with bereaved children has become increasingly common. However, working with children anticipating potential bereavement has received much less attention. Similarly, research within this area in palliative care has been notable for two things - its paucity and its failure to address the perspective of the children themselves. The author, a palliative care social worker, turned to the action research paradigm for an approach that would more effectively engage with and illuminate these children's experiences, and undertook a collaborative inquiry - where the research is conducted with rather than for, on, or about the participants - with nine children aged from seven to fifteen. Collaborative inquiry raises - and challenges - many key issues in both research and groupwork, such as voice, power and identity, ethics and competence. This article addresses a number of these issues, with a particular focus on identity.

”Over the rainbow” a prevention group for bereaved children and families in a rural area

Miller, J.S. (2010)

Akademisk Avhandling

The death of a loved one is a difficult experience for a child. However, prior research has found several characteristics that put some children at a greater risk than others. This study examined the unique needs that rural communities face trying to provide services to bereaved children and their families. The primary purpose of this study was to evaluate the effectiveness of a one-day bereavement camp for children and families in a rural area who have lost someone close to them. Participants completed quantitative and qualitative measures designed to evaluate the group. The camp was offered on four occasions, but despite intensive recruitment only seven participants attended. Although the group was well-liked and beneficial to those who attended, the recruitment and attendance difficulties suggest this may be an inefficient use of time and money for the provision of bereavement services to the community. A follow-up study was created to investigate the barriers and possible solutions to aid future programs. Fourteen key informants in the community were interviewed to address this topic and grounded theory was utilized to examine the results. Findings were consistent with the difficulties for other rural mental health programming in regards to accessibility and acceptability. Rural core providers must be aware of these unique variables in rural culture that lead to barriers to treatment and determine which strategies fit best to meet the needs of individuals in these communities.

”Småbarnstiden tar ju aldrig slut.” Hur parrelationen påverkas av att vara förälder till ett barn med funktionsnedsättning inom autismspektrat

Högberg, Anette (2009)

Denna rapport redovisar en undersökning av hur män och kvinnor upplever att parrelationen har påverkats av att de fått ett barn med funktionsnedsättning inom autismspektrum. Studien tar fasta på vad detta kan innebära för familjen i stort, för parrelationen och för självbilden. Rollfördelning och beroende behandlas liksom relationer till släkt, vänner och nätverk. Även hur kompetens och stolthet kan växa fram. Området är outforskat, undersökningen har därför fått en explorativ inriktning. Metoden är halvstrukturerade intervjuer.

”So that´s how I found out I was a young carer and that I actually had been a carer most of my life”: Identifying and supporting hidden young carers

Smyth C, Blaxland M, Cass B. (2011)

A common theme in the literature on care-giving is the issue of 'hidden' carers, that is, people who undertake caring roles and responsibilities, yet do not identify themselves as carers. One reason people do not recognise themselves as carers relates to the nature of the caring relationship. When providing care for a family member, intra-familial bonds of love and reciprocity do not encourage parties to view the relationship as anything other than a 'normal' familial relationship. The lack of self-identification amongst young carers is complicated further by societal norms surrounding care-giving. Whereas adults are expected to provide care to other adults and children, young people are not expected to be care-givers but rather care recipients. As a result, many young carers remain 'hidden' and beyond the reach of services and supports designed to help them in their caring role. This paper draws on qualitative research with young carers and service providers to explore the issue of self-identification amongst young carers. The paper concludes with recommendations for identifying and supporting hidden young carers.

A brief measure of social support: practical and theoretical implications

Sarason IG, Sarason BR, Shearin N, Pierce GR. (1987)

Two studies leading to the development of a short form of the Social Support Questionnaire (SSQ) are reported. In Study 1 three items selected for high correlations with the total score (SSQ3) were administered to 182 university students together with several personality measures. SSQ3 had acceptable test-retest reliability and correlations with personality variables similar to those of the SSQ. Internal reliability was marginal although acceptable for an instrument with so few items. Study 2 employed three sets of data in developing a six-item instrument (SSQ6). The SSQ6 had high internal reliability and correlated highly with the SSQ and similarly to it with personality variables. The research findings accompanying the development of the short form social support measure suggest that perceived social support in adults may be a reflection of early attachment experience.

A clinical trial of an individualised intervention programme for family caregivers of older stroke victims in Taiwan

Shyu YI, Kuo LM, Chen MC, Chen ST. (2010)

Aim and objective.  To explore the long-term effects of a discharge-preparation programme targeting Taiwanese family caregivers of older patients with stroke.

Background.  Little is known about the effects of interventions for caregivers of patients with stroke in Asian and Chinese families.

Design.  A randomised experimental design was used.

Method.  Participants included 158 older patients with stroke (72 in the experimental group and 86 in the control group) and their family caregivers. A caregiver-oriented intervention programme was designed to increase caregiver preparedness, to enhance caregiver perception of balance between competing needs and to satisfy specific needs during the transition between hospitalisation and discharge. Long-term outcomes were measured by caregiver's health-related quality of life, quality of care, stroke patient's self-care ability, patient's health-related quality of life and service utilisation. Longitudinal data were analysed by the generalised estimating equation approach.

Results.  During the 12 months following discharge of older patients with stroke, caregivers in the experimental group provided significantly better quality of care (β = 0·45; p = 0·03) than the control group. Between the sixth–twelfth months following discharge, patients in the control group were more likely to be institutionalised than those in the experimental group (χ2 = 5·11; p = 0·03).

Conclusion.  Using a sample from Taiwan, this intervention programme succeeded in improving quality of care provided by family caregivers to older patients with stroke and in decreasing the likelihood of their institutionalisation.

Relevance to clinical practice.  Older Chinese patients with stroke and their family caregivers can benefit from an individualised programme that prepares caregivers for patient discharge. Similar programmes may be applicable to other countries with Chinese populations.

A cluster analysis of patients with schizophrenia in community care

Lora A, Cosentino U, Rossini MS, Lanzara D. (2001)

In 203 patients (aged 15–64 yrs) with schizophrenia, the authors identified different clusters of Ss on the basis of the severity of psychopathology, disability, and family burden. Patient measures included the Disability Assessment Schedule and the Brief Psychiatric Rating Scale. Family burden, including relatives' satisfaction with services provided, was evaluated with the Questionnaire for Family Problems. In the 1st cluster, patients' severity of illness was mild and their use of services low. In the 2nd, patients' disability was more severe; psychiatric symptoms were low in severity, family burden was moderate, and use of community services was more intensive. In the 3rd cluster, patients had serious disability and severe positive symptoms; their families suffered distressing burdens, and their use of hospital and community services was intensive. In the 4th cluster, patients' disability was very severe, negative symptoms were prominent, and relatives' burden was moderate; use of hospital services was frequent, and use of community services was less so. Findings suggest that improving responsiveness to the needs of the most seriously ill patients and their families is a central issue that requires further study and practical implementation. (PsycINFO Database Record (c) 2012 APA, all rights reserved)

A metaanalysis of behavioral treatments for attention-deficit/hyperactivity disorder

Fabiano, G. A., Pelham, W. E., Coles, E. K., Gnagy, E. M., Chronis-Tuscano, A., & O’Connor, B. C. (2009)

There is currently controversy regarding the need for and the effectiveness of behavior modification for children with attention-deficit hyperactivity disorder (ADHD) despite years of study and multiple investigations reporting beneficial effects of the intervention. A meta-analysis was conducted by identifying relevant behavioral treatment studies in the literature. One-hundred seventy-four studies of behavioral treatment were identified from 114 individual papers that were appropriate for the meta-analysis. Effect sizes varied by study design but not generally by other study characteristics, such as the demographic variables of the participants in the studies. Overall unweighted effect sizes in between group studies (.83), pre-post studies (.70), within group studies (2.64), and single subject studies (3.78) indicated that behavioral treatments are highly effective. Based on these results, there is strong and consistent evidence that behavioral treatments are effective for treating ADHD.

A meta-analysis of interventions for bereaved children and adolescents

Rosner, R., Kruse, J., & Hagl, M. (2010)

The main objective of this review was to provide a quantitative and methodologically sound evaluation of existing treatments for bereavement and grief reactions in children and adolescents. Two meta-analyses were conducted: 1 on controlled studies and 1 on uncontrolled studies. The 2 meta-analyses were based on a total of 27 treatment studies published before June 2006. Hedges's g and Cohen's d were used as measures of effect size and a random-effects model was applied. Results yielded small to moderate effect sizes. Interventions for symptomatic or impaired participants tended to show larger effect sizes than interventions for bereaved children and adolescents without symptoms. Promising treatment models were music therapy and trauma/grief-focused school based brief psychotherapy.

A meta-analytic review of components associated with parent training program effectiveness

Kaminski, J. W., Valle, L. A., Filene, J. H., & Boyle, C. L. (2008)

This component analysis used meta-analytic techniques to synthesize the results of 77 published evaluations of parent training programs (i.e., programs that included the active acquisition of parenting skills) to enhance behavior and adjustment in children aged 0-7. Characteristics of program content and delivery method were used to predict effect sizes on measures of parenting behaviors and children's externalizing behavior. After controlling for differences attributable to research design, program components consistently associated with larger effects included increasing positive parent-child interactions and emotional communication skills, teaching parents to use time out and the importance of parenting consistency, and requiring parents to practice new skills with their children during parent training sessions. Program components consistently associated with smaller effects included teaching parents problem solving; teaching parents to promote children's cognitive, academic, or social skills; and providing other, additional services. The results have implications for selection and strengthening of existing parent training programs.

A mismatch of paradigms disrupts the introduction of psycho-educative interventions for families of persons with smi: An interview study with staff from community services

Persson, Karin; Östman, Margareta; Ingvarsdotter, Karin; Hjärthag, Fredrik (2018)

Abstract:
Treatment and support of people diagnosed with severe mental illness in Sweden takes place in out-patient psychiatric services or municipality services. Most of the responsibility for support in daily life are provided by the close family. One crucial matter is how to support these families. This research project aimed to investigate the Swedish construction with shared responsibility between county psychiatric care and municipality social care for consumers with severe mental illness affects actions in municipalities in relation to family support. Ten representatives from five municipality settings were interviewed. Five semi-structured interviews were analysed using a thematic analysis. The following themes emerged; One overarching theme, "a mismatch of paradigms", and sub-themes: (a) "accentuating differences", (b) "doubts about including the entire family in the same session" and (c) "lack of a uniform family support policy". We conclude that a shared mandate needs a dialogue between psychiatric and municipality services concerning this mismatch.

A model Community Education Program on Depression and Suicide in Later Life.

Pratt, C. C., Schmall, V. L., Wilson, W., & Benthin, A. (1991)

This paper describes the development and evaluation of a 3-hour multimedia community education program on depression and suicide in later life. Designed for families, older adults, and service providers, the program provides information and teaches skills needed to recognize and respond to depression and suicidal behavior in the elderly. Compared with a control group, program participants had significant gains in knowledge and in their intent to take appropriate action in support of a depressed person.

A Model for Parental ADHD: Help-Seeking and Readiness to Change

Waite, R., & Ramsay, J. R. (2010)

Attention deficit/hyperactivity disorder (ADHD) is a lifespan developmental syndrome that is associated with significant impairments. Although there is strong evidence that ADHD persists into adulthood for a majority of individuals, adults with ADHD are identified and treated at much lower rates than are children with ADHD. Considering the heritability of ADHD, there is an increased likelihood that at least one parent of a child with ADHD will also have ADHD, or exhibit prominent features of the disorder. Parental ADHD also affects help-seeking behavior regarding treatment, as well as follow through on treatment recommendations. There is a paucity of data on parental ADHD and help-seeking among underserved populations. The goal of this paper is to review parental ADHD among underserved groups in terms of factors affecting help-seeking behavior and readiness to engage in care. A model for conceptualizing and addressing issues of readiness for change for parents with ADHD is also proposed.

A model of consequences of dementia caregivers' stress process: influence on behavioral symptoms of dementia and caregivers' behavior-related reactions

Campbell, J. (2009)

Abstract
The purpose of this article is to extend the Schultz and Martire Caregiver Stress-Health Model by explaining consequences of the stress process beyond those related to health in dementia caregivers, including consequences for caregivers and the dyadic unit, and to highlight the dynamic that exists between caregivers' stress, behavioral symptoms of dementia, and behavior-related reactions of caregivers. The relevant literature is reviewed, establishing the pervasive effects of caregivers' stress within a care dyad. Primary informal caregivers play a predominant role in managing environmental stimuli and providing for needs, in particular adjusting their own approaches and demeanor to enhance the care environment. Thus, behavioral symptoms of dementia and the behavior-related reactions of caregivers are conceptualized as a dyadic consequence of the caregivers' stress process. This model presents an extended view of the consequences of caregivers' stress and provides a more holistic, dyadic approach to the issues these vulnerable dyads face. Behavioral symptoms of dementia and behavior-related reactions are seen as amenable to caregiver- or dyad-directed interventions that target stress reduction. This conceptualization may provide support for research, clinical, or policy initiatives that include caregiver-directed or dyadic interventions for these important behavior-related outcomes

A multidisciplinary group programme in rural settings for community-dwelling chronic stroke survivors and their carers: a pilot randomized controlled trial.

Marsden D, Quinn R, Pond N, Golledge R, Neilson C, White J, et al. (2010)

OBJECTIVES:
To explore whether a group programme for community-dwelling chronic stroke survivors and their carers is feasible in rural settings; to measure the impact of the programme on health-related quality of life and functional performance; and to determine if any benefits gained are maintained.
DESIGN:
Randomized, assessor blind, cross-over, controlled trial.
SETTING:
Rural outpatient.
SUBJECTS:
Twenty-five community-dwelling, chronic stroke survivors and 17 carers of participant stroke survivors.
INTERVENTION:
The intervention group undertook a once-a-week, seven-week group programme combining physical activity, education, self-management principles and a 'healthy options' morning tea. At completion, the control group crossed over to receive the intervention.
MAIN MEASURES:
Stroke Impact Scale (stroke survivors), Health Impact Scale (carers), Six Minute Walk Test, Timed Up and Go, Caregiver Strain Index.
RESULTS:
There were insufficient participants for results to reach statistical significance. However between-group trends favoured the intervention group in the majority of outcome measures for stroke survivors and carers. The majority of measures remained above baseline at 12 weeks post programme for stroke survivor participants. The programme was well attended. Of the seven sessions all participants attended four or more and 88% attended six or seven sessions.
CONCLUSIONS:
This novel programme incorporating physical activity, education and social interaction proved feasible to undertake by a stroke-specific multidisciplinary team in three rural Australian settings. This programme may improve and maintain health-related quality of life and physical functioning for chronic stroke survivors and their carers and warrants further investigation.

A multilevel approach to family-centered prevention in schools: process and outcome

Dishion TJ, Kavanagh K. (2000)

The Adolescent Transitions Program (ATP) is a multilevel approach to family-based interventions within a middle-school setting. The intervention strategy is based on an ecological framework for studying social and emotional development in children and adolescents, emphasizing a network of contextual factors within which parenting is both directly and indirectly influential on the development of problem behavior. The ATP model includes a universal, selected, and indicated strategy for serving families with young adolescents. The model is designed to address the needs of families of young adolescents that present with a range of problem behavior and diverse developmental histories. The three interventions levels are described, and outcome data are presented, that support the effectiveness of the ATP model. This approach and the associated data are consistent with a broad literature supporting the effectiveness of family interventions, especially for high-risk youth. The effective implementation of family interventions within a school context suggests that these interventions can make a significant contribution to reducing problem behavior and substance use from a public health perspective.

A multilevel approach to family-centered prevention in schools: process and outcome

Dishion TJ, Kavanagh K. (2000)

The Adolescent Transitions Program (ATP) is a multilevel approach to family-based interventions within a middle-school setting. The intervention strategy is based on an ecological framework for studying social and emotional development in children and adolescents, emphasizing a network of contextual factors within which parenting is both directly and indirectly influential on the development of problem behavior. The ATP model includes a universal, selected, and indicated strategy for serving families with young adolescents. The model is designed to address the needs of families of young adolescents that present with a range of problem behavior and diverse developmental histories. The three interventions levels are described, and outcome data are presented, that support the effectiveness of the ATP model. This approach and the associated data are consistent with a broad literature supporting the effectiveness of family interventions, especially for high-risk youth. The effective implementation of family interventions within a school context suggests that these interventions can make a significant contribution to reducing problem behavior and substance use from a public health perspective.

A multiple-case study of a family-oriented intervention practice in the early rehabilitation phase of persons with aphasia

Blom Johansson M, Carlsson M, Östberg P, Sonnander K. (2013)

Background: Having a family member with aphasia severely affects the everyday life of the significant others, resulting in their need for support and information. Family-oriented intervention programmes typically consist of support, information, and skill training, such as communication partner training (CPT). However, because of time constraints and perceived lack of skills and routines, such programmes, especially CPT, are not common practice among speech-language pathologists (SLPs).

Aims: To design and evaluate an early family-oriented intervention of persons with stroke-induced moderate to severe aphasia and their significant others in dyads. The intervention was designed to be flexible to meet the needs of each participant, to emotionally support the significant others and supply them with information needed, to include CPT that is easy to learn and conduct for SLPs, and to be able to provide CPT when the persons with aphasia still have access to SLP services.

Methods & Procedures: An evaluative multiple-case study, involving three dyads, was conducted no more than 2 months after the onset of aphasia. The intervention consisted of six sessions: three sessions directed to the significant other (primarily support and information) and three to the dyad (primarily CPT). The intervention was evaluated both qualitatively and quantitatively based on video recordings of conversations and self-assessment questionnaires.

Outcomes & Results: The importance of emotional support as well as information about stroke/aphasia was clearly acknowledged, especially by the significant others. All significant others perceived increased knowledge and understanding of aphasia and related issues.

Communicative skills (as manifested in the video recordings) showed improvements from pre- to post-intervention.

Conclusions: The results corroborate the need for individualised and flexible family-oriented SLP services that are broad in content. Furthermore, the results support the early initiation of such services with recurrent contact. The usefulness of CPT this early in the rehabilitation process was indicated but is yet to be proved.

A new multidimensional measure of children’s perceptions of control

Connell, J.P. (1985)

Perceived control plays a central role in many motivational and cognitive accounts of behavior. In this study, a new 48-item self-report instrument, the Multidimensional Measure of Children's Perceptions of Control, is described. Perceptions of control are defined as children's understanding of the locus of the sufficient cause for success and failure outcomes. 3 dimensions of third- through ninth-grade children's perceptions of control are independently assessed: internal, powerful others, and unknown. Each of these sources of control is assessed within 3 behavioral domains: (a) cognitive, (b) social, and (c) physical. General items are also included. Perceptions of control over success outcomes and failure outcomes are assessed separately. The psychometric properties of the new measure's subscales are presented. Correlations of the new measure with measures of perceived and actual competence and findings demonstrating the sensitivity of the new measure to developmental, gender, and environmental influences are reported. It is argued that the new measure is an advance over existing measures of internal versus external locus of control in children because it provides domain-specific assessments of 3 separate dimensions of locus of control, including the previously untapped dimension of unknown control.

A new standing posture detector to enable people with multiple disabilities to control environmental stimulation by changing their standing posture through a commercial Wii Balance Board

Shih CH, Shih CT, Chiang MS. (2010)

This study assessed whether two persons with multiple disabilities would be able to control environmental stimulation using body swing (changing standing posture) and a Wii Balance Board with a newly developed standing posture detection program (i.e. a new software program turns a Wii Balance Board into a precise standing posture detector). The study was performed according to an ABAB design, in which A represented baseline and B represented intervention phases. Both participants significantly increased their target response (body swing) to activate the control system to produce environmental stimulation during the intervention phases. Practical and developmental implications of the findings were discussed.

A pilot evaluation of the Family Caregiver Support Program.

Chen, Y.-M., Hedrick, S. C., & Young, H. M. (2010)

Abstract
The purposes of this study were to evaluate a federal and state-funded Family Caregiver Support Program (FCSP) and explore what types of caregiver support service are associated with what caregiver outcomes. Information was obtained on a sample of 164 caregivers' use of eleven different types of support service. Descriptive and comparative analyses were used to detect the differences between users and nonusers of caregiver support services. Six measures included were caregiving appraisal scale, caregiving burden, caregiving mastery, caregiving satisfaction, hour of care, and service satisfaction. Using consulting and education services is associated with lessening of subjective burden; using financial support services is associated with more beneficial caregiver appraisal, such as better caregiver mastery. The findings are practical and helpful for future caregiver service and program development and evaluation and policy making for supporting caregivers. In addition, the evaluation method demonstrated in the study provided a simple and moderately effective method for service agencies which would like to evaluate their family caregiver support services.

A pilot study of adjunctive family psychoeducation in adolescent major depression: Feasibility and treatment effect

Sanford, M., Boyle, M., McCleary, L., Miller, J., Steele, M., Duku, E., et al. (2006)

Objective: To obtain preliminary evidence of the feasibility and effectiveness of adjunctive family psychoeducation in adolescent major depressive disorder. Method: Participants were from outpatient clinics in Hamilton and London, Ontario. Over 24 months, 41 adolescents ages 13 through 18 years meeting major depressive disorder criteria were recruited (31 in Hamilton, 10 in London). Participants were randomized to usual treatment or usual treatment plus family psychoeducation. Outcome measures were readministered at 2 weeks, mid-treatment, posttreatment, and 3-month follow-up. Intent-to-treat analyses used χ2 and t tests and growth curve analysis. Standardized effects based on growth curve estimates were calculated for continuous outcomes. Results: The London site was withdrawn because of poor participant retention. In Hamilton, no participant missed more than one assessment and there was good family psychoeducation adherence. Compared to controls, participants in the experimental group showed greater improvement in social functioning and adolescent-parent relationships (with medium standardized effect size >0.5), and parents reported greater satisfaction with treatment. Conclusions: There were positive treatment effects on family and social functioning processes postulated to mediate the clinical course of major depressive disorder. The study provides support for further evaluation of family psychoeducation in this clinical population. (PsycINFO Database Record (c) 2012 APA, all rights reserved)(journal abstract)

A Preliminary Study of an Extension of a Community Dialectic Behaviour Therapy (DBT) Programme to Adolescents in the Looked After Care System

James AC, Winmill L, Anderson C, Alfoadari K. A (2011)

Background: Adolescents in the Looked After Care (LAC) system demonstrate high rates of psychiatric disorder and self‐harm; however, there is little evidence for therapies reducing self‐harm in this population. Method: An open evaluation of DBT for adolescents with repeated serious self‐harm in the LAC system was undertaken. Results: An intention‐to‐treat (ITT) analysis showed that DBT was successful at reducing the core elements of depression, hopelessness and self‐harm; however, 35% (7/20) failed to engage. Conclusion: DBT is a useful treatment option; the failure, however, of some adolescents to engage in therapy may be due to their higher initial rates of depression and hopelessness.

A Prospective Four-Year Followup Study of Children at Risk for ADHD: Psychiatric, Neuropsychological, and Psychosocial Outcome

Faraone, S. V, Biederman, J., Mennin, D., Gershon, J., & Tsuang, M. T. (1996)

BACKGROUND:
Attention-deficit hyperactivity disorder (ADHD) is a familial disorder that places the siblings of ADHD children at high risk for ADHD, conduct, mood, and anxiety disorders. Although the pattern of psychiatric risk has been well documented by prior family studies, neither the short- nor long-term outcome of these high-risk siblings has been prospectively examined.
OBJECTIVE:
To document the 4-year psychiatric, psychosocial, and neuropsychological outcome of the siblings of children with ADHD.
METHOD:
DSM-III-R structured diagnostic interviews and blind raters were used to conduct a 4-year follow-up of siblings from ADHD and control families. The siblings were also evaluated for cognitive, achievement, social, school, and family functioning.
RESULTS:
At follow-up, significant elevations of behavioral, mood, and anxiety disorders were found among the siblings of ADHD children. The high-risk siblings had high rates of school failure and showed evidence of neuropsychological and psychosocial dysfunction. These impairments aggregated among the siblings who had ADHD.
CONCLUSIONS:
The siblings of ADHD children are at high risk for clinically meaningful levels of psychopathology and functional impairment. In addition to supporting hypotheses about the familial transmission of ADHD, the results suggest that the high-risk siblings might be appropriate targets for primary preventive interventions.

A prospective longitudinal study of attachment disorganization/disorientation

CARLSON, E. A. (1998)

The research explores the antecedents and consequences of attachment disorganization from a prospective longitudinal perspective. The relations of attachment disorganization/disorientation to endogenous (e.g., maternal medical history, infant temperament) and environmental (e.g., maternal caregiving quality, infant history of abuse) antecedents and to behavioral consequences from 24 months to 19 years are examined. For the 157 participants in the longitudinal study, attachment disorganization was correlated significantly with environmental antecedents (e.g., maternal relationship and risk status, caregiving quality, and infant history of maltreatment), but not with available endogenous antecedents. Infant history of attachment disorganization was correlated with consequent variables related to mother-child relationship quality at 24 and 42 months, child behavior problems in preschool, elementary school and high school, and psychopathology and dissociation in adolescence. Structural models suggest that disorganization may mediate the relations between early experience and later psychopathology and dissociation. The findings are considered within a developmental view of psychopathology, that is, pathology defined in terms of process, as a pattern of adaptation constructed by individuals in their environments.

A qualitative study exploring patients’ and carers’ experiences of Early Supported Discharge services after stroke.

Cobley CS, Fisher RJ, Chouliara N, Kerr M, Walker MF. (2013)

Objective: To investigate patients' and carers' experiences of Early Supported Discharge services and inform future Early Supported Discharge service development and provision.
Design and subjects: Semi-structured interviews were completed with 27 stroke patients and 15 carers in the Nottinghamshire region who met evidence-based Early Supported Discharge service eligibility criteria. Participants were either receiving Early Supported Discharge or conventional services.
Setting: Community stroke services in Nottinghamshire, UK.
Results: A thematic analysis process was applied to identify similarities and differences across datasets. Themes specific to participants receiving Early Supported Discharge services were: the home-based form of rehabilitation; speed of response; intensity and duration of therapy; respite time for the carer; rehabilitation exercises and provision of technical equipment; disjointed transition between Early Supported Discharge and ongoing rehabilitation services. Participants receiving Early Supported Discharge or conventional community services experienced difficulties related to: limited support in dealing with carer strain; lack of education and training of carers; inadequate provision and delivery of stroke-related information; disjointed transition between Early Supported Discharge and ongoing rehabilitation services.
Conclusions: Accelerated hospital discharge and home-based rehabilitation was perceived positively by service users. The study findings highlight the need for Early Supported Discharge teams to address information and support needs of patients and carers and to monitor their impact on carers in addition to patients, using robust outcome measures.

A qualitative study exploring patients’ and carers’ experiences of Early Supported Discharge services after stroke.

Cobley CS, Fisher RJ, Chouliara N, Kerr M, Walker MF. (2013)

Objective: To investigate patients' and carers' experiences of Early Supported Discharge services and inform future Early Supported Discharge service development and provision.
Design and subjects: Semi-structured interviews were completed with 27 stroke patients and 15 carers in the Nottinghamshire region who met evidence-based Early Supported Discharge service eligibility criteria. Participants were either receiving Early Supported Discharge or conventional services.
Setting: Community stroke services in Nottinghamshire, UK.
Results: A thematic analysis process was applied to identify similarities and differences across datasets. Themes specific to participants receiving Early Supported Discharge services were: the home-based form of rehabilitation; speed of response; intensity and duration of therapy; respite time for the carer; rehabilitation exercises and provision of technical equipment; disjointed transition between Early Supported Discharge and ongoing rehabilitation services. Participants receiving Early Supported Discharge or conventional community services experienced difficulties related to: limited support in dealing with carer strain; lack of education and training of carers; inadequate provision and delivery of stroke-related information; disjointed transition between Early Supported Discharge and ongoing rehabilitation services.
Conclusions: Accelerated hospital discharge and home-based rehabilitation was perceived positively by service users. The study findings highlight the need for Early Supported Discharge teams to address information and support needs of patients and carers and to monitor their impact on carers in addition to patients, using robust outcome measures.

A qualitative study of older informal carers´ experiences and perceptions of their caring role

Nan Greenwood, Carole Pound, Sally Brearley, Raymond Smith (2019)

Abstract
Background and aims
Unpaid family carers, or caregivers as they are also known, often play a vital role in supporting others with illness or disability living in the community. Overall numbers of carers are growing but numbers of older carers are increasing particularly rapidly as populations age worldwide. However, little research has focused on this important older group. This qualitative study therefore investigated older carers' experiences and their perceptions of their role.

Methods
Five digitally recorded focus groups with carers from Greater London were undertaken. Recordings were transcribed and analysed thematically.

Findings
Forty-four carers aged 70–87 years participated. Most were female and two-thirds were spouses or partners. Overall, the carers thought their experiences were similar to those of younger adult carers and included both satisfying and challenging facets. However, they thought that some of the more negative aspects of the role were more difficult for older carers. Their own declining physical and emotional health and strength were seen as making it harder to access support and maintain social contacts. Loneliness both outside and within relationships featured prominently and was perceived as especially significant for housebound carers and when caring for someone with dementia. Many of these older carers also worried about the future when they might no longer be able to be a carer due to their own ill-health or death.

Conclusions
Older carers find their role challenging and future investigations should focus on identifying means of reducing their isolation and supporting them with planning for the future.

A randomized controlled trial of motherinfant psychoanalytic treatment: II. Predictive and moderating influences of qualitative patient factors

SALOMONSSON, B. & SANDELL, R. (2011)

A randomized control trial was performed on 75 dyads in Stockholm, Sweden, with infants under 1½ years. It recruited mothers who worried about the babies, themselves as mothers, and/or the mother-baby relationship. Two groups of mother-infant dyads were compared. One received only Child Health Centre care (the "CHCC" group) while the other received mother-infant psychoanalytic treatment plus CHCC (the "MIP" group). Significant treatment effects were found on mother-reported depression, interviewer-rated dyadic relationship qualities and externally rated maternal sensitivity, and near-significant effects on mother-reported stress, all in favor of MIP. The objective of this study is to investigate the predictive and moderating influences on outcomes by qualitatively assessed maternal and infant characteristics. The qualitative factors covered maternal suitability for psychoanalysis, and "ideal types" of mother and child, respectively. Outcome measures from two interviews with a 6-month interval were depression (Edinburgh Postnatal Depression Scale (J. Cox, J. Holden, & R. Sagovsky, 1987), stress (Swedish Parental Stress Questionnaire (M. Östberg, B. Hagekull, & S. Wettergren, 1997), distress (Swedish Symptom Checklist-90 (SCL-90; L.R. Derogatis, 1994; M. Fridell, Z. Cesarec, M. Johansson, & S. Malling Thorsen, 2002) and infant social and emotional functioning (Ages and Stages Questionnaire: Social-Emotional (J. Squires, D. Bricker, K. Heo, & E. Twombly, 2002), relationship qualities (Parent-Infant Global Assessment Scale (PIR-GAS; ZERO TO THREE, 2005), and videotaped interactions (Emotional Availability Scales, Z. Biringen, J.L. Robinson, & R.N. Emde, 1998). Suitability for psychoanalysis predicted outcome only on the PIR-GAS. Two overarching maternal ideal types were created, reflecting their attitude to the psychoanalytic process: "Participators" and "Abandoned." The Participators benefited more from MIP than they did from CHCC on maternal interactive sensitivity. A contrasting, but nonsignificant, pattern was found among the Abandoned mothers. Two ideal types of babies emerged: those "Affected" and "Unaffected" by the disturbance, respectively. Among Affected babies, dyadic relationships and sensitivity among their mothers improved significantly more from MIP than they did from CHCC. The superior effects of MIP applied especially to Participator mothers and Affected infants. For Abandoned mothers and Unaffected infants, CHCC seemed to be of equal value.

A randomized pilot study of the engaging moms program for family drug court

Dakof GA, Cohen JB, Henderson CE, Duarte E, Boustani M, Blackburn A, et al. (2010)

In response to the need for effective drug court interventions, the effectiveness of the Engaging Moms Program (EMP) versus Intensive Case Management Services (ICMS) on multiple outcomes for mothers enrolled in family drug court was investigated. In this intent-to-treat study, mothers (N = 62) were randomly assigned to either usual drug court care or the Engaging Moms drug court program. Mothers were assessed at intake and 3, 6, 12, and 18 months following intake. Results indicated that at 18 months post drug court enrollment, 77% of mothers assigned to EMP versus 55% of mothers assigned to ICMS had positive child welfare dispositions. There were statistically significant time effects for both intervention groups on multiple outcomes including substance use, mental health, parenting practices, and family functioning. EMP showed equal or better improvement than ICMS on all outcomes. The results suggest that EMP in family drug court is a viable and promising intervention approach to reduce maternal addiction and child maltreatment.

A randomized trial of family focused treatment for adolescents and young adults at risk for psychosis: study rationale, design and methods

Schlosser DA, Miklowitz DJ, O'Brien MP, De Silva SD, Zinberg JL, Cannon TD. (2012)

This article outlines the rationale for a family-focused psychoeducational intervention for individuals at risk for psychosis and explains the design of a randomized multisite trial to test its efficacy. Adolescents and young adults that meet criteria for a psychosis risk syndrome at eight participating North American Prodromal Longitudinal Study sites are randomly assigned to a 6-month, 18-session family-focused treatment for prodromal youth or a 3-session psychoeducational enhanced care control intervention and followed over 1 year. The results will determine whether the use of a family intervention is able to significantly improve functional outcomes, decrease the severity of positive symptoms and possibly prevent the onset of full psychosis, compared with enhanced care alone. Levels of familial criticism at baseline are hypothesized to moderate responses to family intervention. Improvements in knowledge about symptoms, family communication and problem solving will be tested as mediators in the pathways between treatment assignment and clinical or psychosocial outcomes in high-risk youth. The ongoing trial evaluates whether a non-invasive psychosocial approach can significantly enhance functional outcomes and prevent the ultra high risk patients from developing psychosis. The results will provide an important stepping stone in the movement of the field from refining early detection strategies to developing efficacious preventative treatments.

A randomized trial to evaluate an education programme for patients and carers after stroke

Smith J, Forster A, Young J. (2004)

Objectives: To evaluate the effectiveness of an education programme for patients and carers recovering from stroke.
Design: Randomized controlled trial.
Subjects and setting: One hundred and seventy patients admitted to a stroke rehabilitation unit and 97 carers of these patients.
Interventions: The intervention group received a specifically designed stroke information manual and were invited to attend education meetings every two weeks with members of their multidisciplinary team. The control group received usual practice.
Measures: Primary outcome was knowledge of stroke and stroke services. Secondary outcomes were handicap (London Handicap Scale), physical function (Barthel Index), social function (Frenchay Activities Index), mood (Hospital Anxiety and Depression Scale) and satisfaction (Pound Scale). Carer mood was measured by the General Health Questionnaire-28.
Results: There was no statistical evidence for a treatment effect on knowledge but there were trends that favoured the intervention. The education programme was associated with a significantly greater reduction in patient anxiety score at both three months (p=0.034) and six months (p=0.021) and consequently fewer 'cases' (Hospital Anxiety and Depression Scale anxiety subscale score ≥ 11). There were no other significant statistical differences between the patient or carer groups for other outcomes, although there were trends in favour of the education programme.
Conclusion: An education programme delivered within a stroke unit did not result in improved knowledge about stroke and stroke services but there was a significant reduction in patient anxiety at six months post stroke onset.

Family intervention with bereaved children

Black, D. & Urbanowicz, M (1987)

This paper describes an intervention study carried out with 45 families (83 children) where one of the parents died, leaving a child or children under 16 years of age. The families were randomly assigned to treatment and control groups, the treatment group being seen by a family therapist for approximately six sessions within 3-5 months of bereavement. All the families were contacted approximately 1 year after and again 2 years after the bereavement and a structured interview was carried out, covering parental health and psychiatric state, the children's health and behaviour, and the death and events surrounding it. At follow-up, there was some indication that the treatment group had benefited from the brief intervention. The implications for practice are discussed

Family intervention with bereaved children

Black, D., & Urbanowicz, M. (1987)

This paper describes an intervention study carried out with 45 families (83 children) where one of the parents died, leaving a child or children under 16 years of age. The families were randomly assigned to treatment and control groups, the treatment group being seen by a family therapist for approximately six sessions within 3-5 months of bereavement. All the families were contacted approximately 1 year after and again 2 years after the bereavement and a structured interview was carried out, covering parental health and psychiatric state, the children's health and behaviour, and the death and events surrounding it. At follow-up, there was some indication that the treatment group had benefited from the brief intervention. The implications for practice are discussed.

Family Intervention: Telephone Tracking (FITT): A Pilot Stroke Outcome Study

Bishop D, Miller I, Weiner D, Guilmette T, Mukand J, Feldmann E, et al. (2014)

Objective: The goal of this study was to preliminarily test the efficacy of a telephone intervention, Family Intervention: Telephone Tracking, designed to assist stroke survivors and their primary caregivers during the first 6 months after stroke. Method: Forty-nine stroke survivors and their caregivers were randomly assigned to treatment as usual or treatment as usual plus the telephone intervention. Global outcomes are reported for health care utilization, family functioning, and general functioning. Results: Family and general functioning were positively and significantly changed at 3 and 6 months. Health care utilization was positively and significantly changed at 3 months. Conclusion: Findings suggest that the model has the potential to decrease health care utilization and improve quality of life for stroke survivors and their caregivers. Further study is warranted.

Family member´s expectation of the psychiatric health-care professionals´ approach towards them

Ewertzon, M., B. Andershed, et al. (2011)

The importance of involving family members in the care of individuals with schizophrenia or other psychotic illnesses has received increasing attention within psychiatric healthcare services. However, several studies suggest that family members often experience a lack of involvement. Furthermore, research indicates that family members' experience of the professional's approach has bearing on whether they feel involved or not. Thus, the aims of this study were to investigate the level of importance that the family members of individuals with schizophrenia or other psychotic illnesses ascribe to the professionals' approach, the level of agreement between their experiences and what they consider as important, and aspects they consider to be important with regards to contact with professionals. Seventy family members from various parts of Sweden participated. Data were collected by the Family Involvement and Alienation Questionnaire and open-ended questions. The median level and quartiles were used to describe the distribution, and percentage agreement was analysed. Open-ended questions were analysed by qualitative content analysis. The results reveal that the majority of the participants consider Openness, Confirmation, and Cooperation as important aspects of a professional's approach. Continuity emerged as an additional aspect. The results show a low level of agreement between the participants' experience and what they consider as important.

Family members' experiences with intensive care unit diaries when the patient does not survive

Johansson Maria, Wåhlin, Magnusson Lennart, Runeson Ingrid (2019)

Abstract [en]
OBJECTIVE: The aim of the study was to explore how family members experienced the use of a diary when a relative does not survive the stay in the intensive care unit (ICU).

METHOD: A qualitative method with a hermeneutic approach was used. Nine participants who read/wrote eight diaries in total were interviewed. The collected data were analysed using a hermeneutic technique inspired by Geanellos.

FINDINGS: The analysis revealed an overall theme 'the diary was experienced as a bridge connecting the past with the future', which was a metaphor referring to the temporal aspect where there was the period with the diary up until the patient's death and then the postbereavement period. The diary contributed to both a rational and emotional understanding of the death of the patient and disclosed glimmers of light that still existed before the illness deteriorated. Further, the diary bridged the space between family members themselves and between family and nursing staff. It helped to maintain a feeling of togetherness and engagement in the care of the patient which family members found comforting.

CONCLUSION: Family members of nonsurvivors had a need to have the ICU time explained and expressed. The diary might work as a form of 'survival kit' to gain coherence and understanding; to meet their needs during the hospital stay; and, finally, to act as a bereavement support by processing the death of the patient.

Family members' experiences with intensive care unit diaries when the patient does not survive

Johansson Maria, Wåhlin Ingrid, Magnusson Lennart, Runeson Ingrid, Hanson Elizabeth (2018)

Abstract [en]
OBJECTIVE: The aim of the study was to explore how family members experienced the use of a diary when a relative does not survive the stay in the intensive care unit (ICU).

METHOD: A qualitative method with a hermeneutic approach was used. Nine participants who read/wrote eight diaries in total were interviewed. The collected data were analysed using a hermeneutic technique inspired by Geanellos.

FINDINGS: The analysis revealed an overall theme 'the diary was experienced as a bridge connecting the past with the future', which was a metaphor referring to the temporal aspect where there was the period with the diary up until the patient's death and then the postbereavement period. The diary contributed to both a rational and emotional understanding of the death of the patient and disclosed glimmers of light that still existed before the illness deteriorated. Further, the diary bridged the space between family members themselves and between family and nursing staff. It helped to maintain a feeling of togetherness and engagement in the care of the patient which family members found comforting.

CONCLUSION: Family members of nonsurvivors had a need to have the ICU time explained and expressed. The diary might work as a form of 'survival kit' to gain coherence and understanding; to meet their needs during the hospital stay; and, finally, to act as a bereavement support by processing the death of the patient.

Family members' strategies when their elderly relatives consider relocation to a residential home - Adapting, representing and avoiding

Söderberg, M., Ståhl, A., & Melin Emilsson, U. (2012)

The aim of this article is to reveal how family members act, react and reason when their elderly relative considers relocation to a residential home. Since family members are usually involved in the logistics of their elderly relative's relocation, yet simultaneously expected not to influence the decision, the focus is on how family members experience participation in the relocation process in a Swedish context. 17 family members are included in 27 open, semi-structured interviews and follow-up contacts. Prominent features in the findings are firstly the family members' ambition to tone down their personal opinions, even though in their minds their personal preferences are clear, and secondly, the family members' ambivalence about continuity and change in their everyday lives. Family members are found to apply the adapting, the representing, or the avoiding strategy, indirectly also influencing their interaction with the care manager. Siblings applied the adapting strategy, spouses the representing strategy, while family members in the younger generation at times switched between the strategies.

Family members´ experiences of the end-of-life care environments in acute care settings – a photo-elicitation study

Hajradinovic Y.,Tishelman C., Lindqvist O., Goliath I. (2018)

Abstract:
Purpose: This article explores experiences of the acute-care environment as a setting for end-of-life (EoL) care from the perspective of family members of a dying person. Method: We used participant-produced photographs in conjunction with follow-up interviews with nine family members to persons at the EoL, cared for in two acute-care settings. Results: The interpretive description analysis process resulted in three constructed themes-Aesthetic and unaesthetic impressions, Space for privacy and social relationships, and Need for guidance in crucial times. Aspects of importance in the physical setting related to aesthetics, particularly in regard to sensory experience, and to a need for enough privacy to facilitate the maintenance of social relationships. Interactions between the world of family members and that of professionals were described as intrinsically related to guidance about both the material and immaterial environment at crucial times. Conclusion: The care environment, already recognized to have an impact in relation to patients, is concluded to also affect the participating family members in this study in a variety of ways.

Family Obligations and Social Change

Finch, J. (1989)

Finch discusses the nature of family life, especially concepts of duty, responsibility and obligation and how these factors operate in family and kin relationships.

Family preservation and family support programs: child maltreatment outcomes across client risk levels and program types.

Chaffin M, Bonner BL, Hill RF. (2001)

OBJECTIVES:
This study evaluated client-level outcomes among an entire statewide group of Family Preservation and Family Support (FPFS) programs funded under PL 103-66.
METHOD:
A total of 1,601 clients (primarily low income, moderate to high risk with no current involvement in the child protection system) were assessed and followed over time for future child maltreatment events reported to Child Protective Services. The study compared program completers with program dropouts, compared recipients of more lengthy full-service programs with recipients of one-time services, and examined the effects of program duration, intensity, service site (center-based vs. home based) and service model/content. Effects were modeled using survival analysis and variable-exposure Poisson hierarchical models, controlling for initial client risk levels and removing failure events because of surveillance bias. Changes in lifestyle, economic and risk factors were also examined.
RESULTS:
A total of 198 (12.2%) participants had at least one defined failure event over a median follow-up period of 1.6 years. Controlling for risk and receipt of outside services, program completers did not differ from program dropouts or from recipients of one-time services, and there was no relationship between program intensity or duration and outcomes. Program types designed to help families meet basic concrete needs and programs using mentoring approaches were found to be more effective than parenting and child development oriented programming, and center-based services were found to be more effective than home-based services, especially among higher risk parents.
CONCLUSIONS:
The findings did not support the effectiveness of these services in preventing future maltreatment cases, and raised questions about a number of common family support assumptions regarding the superiority of home-visiting based and parent training services. A number of possible reasons for this are explored.

Family Support and Empowerment: Post Autism Diagnosis Support Group for Parents

Banach, M., J. Iudice, et al. (2010)

Receiving a diagnosis of an autism spectrum disorder often elicits strong emotional reactions from parents of the diagnosed child. Follow-up services and continued support for these families is a necessary component to help families adapt and meet their and their children's needs. This pilot study measured the effects of a six-session, co-facilitated, support group on the advocacy skills and self-efficacy of parents coping with a child's diagnosis. Statistically significant increases in the average mean scores for the three subscales of the Family Empowerment Scale were found. Implications for practice and research are discussed. Adapted from the source document.

Family support for stroke: a randomised controlled trial.

Mant J, Carter J, Wade DT, Winner S. (2000)

Background

Attention is currently focused on family care of stroke survivors, but the effectiveness of support services is unclear. We did a single-blind, randomised, controlled trial to assess the impact of family support on stroke patients and their carers.

Methods

Patients with acute stroke admitted to hospitals in Oxford, UK, were assigned family support or normal care within 6 weeks of stroke. After 6 months, we assessed, for carers, knowledge about stroke, Frenchay activities index, general health questionnaire-28 scores, caregiver strain index, Dartmouth co-op charts, short form 36 (SF-36), and satisfaction scores, and, for patients, knowledge about stroke and use of services, Barthel index, Rivermead mobility index, Frenchay activities index, London handicap scale, hospital anxiety and depression scales, Dartmouth co-op charts, and satisfaction.

Findings

323 patients and 267 carers were followed up. Carers in the intervention group had significantly better Frenchay activities indices (p=0·03), SF-36 scores (energy p=0·02, mental health p=0·004, pain p=0·03, physical function p=0·025, and general health perception p=0·02), quality of life on the Dartmouth co-op chart (p=0·01), and satisfaction with understanding of stroke (82 vs 71%, p=0·04) than those in the control group. Patients' knowledge about stroke, disability, handicap, quality of life, and satisfaction with services and understanding of stroke did not differ between groups. Fewer patients in the intervention group than in the control group saw a physiotherapist after discharge (44 vs 56%, p=0·04), but use of other services was similar.

Interpretation

Family support significantly increased social activities and improved quality of life for carers, with no significant effects on patients.

Family support for stroke: one year follow up of a randomised controlled trial.

Mant J, Winner S, Roche J, Wade DT. (2005)

BACKGROUND:
There is evidence that family support can benefit carers of stroke patients, but not the patients themselves.
OBJECTIVE:
To extend the follow up of a single blind randomised controlled trial of family support for stroke patients and carers to one year to ascertain whether there were any late effects of the intervention.
METHODS:
The study was a randomised controlled trial. Patients admitted to hospital with acute stroke who had a close carer were assigned to receive family support or normal care. Families were visited at home by a researcher 12 months after the stroke, and a series of questionnaires was administered to patient and carer.
RESULTS:
The benefits to carers mostly persisted, though they were no longer statistically significant because some patients were lost to follow up. There was no evidence of any effects on patients.
CONCLUSION:
Family support is effective for carers, but different approaches need to be considered to alleviate the psychosocial problems of stroke patients.

Family supports and services in early intervention: A bold vision.

Turnbull AP, Summers JA, Turnbull R, Brotherson MJ, Winton P, Roberts R, et al. (2007)

This article utilizes four knowledge sources to characterize a current gap in policy and practice related to serving families in early intervention (birth to 5) programs. It argues that the field of early intervention has focused primarily on implementing family-centered practices by focusing on how families and professionals should interact. The field has not sufficiently addressed what supports and services should be offered to families to enhance the likelihood of positive outcomes for families themselves and for their children with disabilities. The paper concludes with recommendations for enhancing policy, research, and professional development related to family services and supports.

Family therapy techniques

Minuchin, S. and H. C. Fishman (1981)

A master of family therapy, Salvador Minuchin, traces for the first time the minute operations of day-to-day practice. Dr. Minuchin has achieved renown for his theoretical breakthroughs and his success at treatment. Now he explains in close detail those precise and difficult maneuvers that constitute his art. The book thus codifies the method of one of the country's most successful practitioners.

Family Treatment Approaches for Depression in Adolescent Males

Pruitt, I. T. P. (2006)

Adolescent depression is a serious and common disorder. Though adolescent males are less likely to report depression than females, they have serious risks associated with the disorder, like suicide, future substance abuse, and illegal activity. Several gender differences have been observed among depressed adolescents and should be considered in assessment and treatment. Little efficacy research exists for family treatments of depression in adolescent males, though several approaches have been proposed. These approaches include Structural Family Therapy, Interpersonal Family Therapy, and Attachment-Based Family Therapy. These treatments have been found useful in clinical settings, but much more efficacy research is necessary. Adapted from the source document.

Family-Based Interventions for Substance Use and Misuse Prevention

Kumpfer KL, Alvarado R, Whiteside HO. (2003)

Because "substance abuse" is a "family disease" of lifestyle, including both genetic and family environmental causes, effective family strengthening prevention programs should be included in all comprehensive substance abuse prevention activities. This article presents reviews of causal models of substance use and evidence-based practices. National searches by the authors suggest that there is sufficient research evidence to support broad dissemination of five highly effective family strengthening approaches (e.g., behavioral parent training, family skills training, in-home family support, brief family therapy, and family education). Additionally, family approaches have average effect sizes two to nine time larger than child-only prevention approaches. Comprehensive prevention programs combining both approaches produced much larger effect sizes. The Strengthening Families Program (SFP) is the only one of these programs that has been replicated with positive results by independent researchers with different cultural groups and with different ages of children. Few research-based programs have been adopted by practitioners, partly because of technology transfer issues. Overall, research on ways to improve dissemination, marketing, training, and funding is needed to improve adoption of effective prevention programs.

Family-centeredness in service and rehabilitation planning for children and youth with cerebral palsy in Finland

Jeglinsky, I. (2012)

Objectives: The overall aim of this thesis was to explore and describe the familycentredness and rehabilitation planning procedure for children and youth with cerebral palsy (CP) in Finland. The main focus was on how professionals working with children and youth with cerebral palsy describe and document the rehabilitation planning procedure and how family-centredness was perceived by professionals and parents.

Methods: Participants were team members in neuropediatric multidisciplinary teams in central and university hospitals and government special schools as well as physiotherapy private practitioners who had an agreement with the Social Insurance Institution. Parents visiting two university hospital neuropediatric wards participated in one study (II). Family-centredness in services (FCS) was evaluated by the Measure of Processes of Care questionnaires. To get a deeper insight in the rehabilitation planning procedure, focus group interviews were conducted. Two researchers conducted the interviews which were tape recorded and transcribed. Three content areas guided the interviews: goal-setting, different transition phases and the use of the International Classification of Functioning, Disability and Health, Children and Youth version. A retrospective cross-sectional register study was used to analyze the interrelation between needs and functional difficulties and the therapeutic goals in written rehabilitation plans. The ICF-CY was used as a reference in the analysis.

Results: Professionals and parents rated the family-centred service as fair to moderate. There was a significant difference in how professionals of different disciplines rated their FCS delivery. Professionals with more than 25 years of work experience in the field of rehabilitation for children and youth with CP rated their service higher than those with shorter work experience. Parents and professionals identified common aspects in need of development, i.e. letting the family choose when and what kind of information is provided as well as providing opportunities for the whole family to obtain information. Goal setting and ways to involve families in the rehabilitation planning procedure was experienced as challenging. Collaboration with all involved in the child´s rehabilitation was partly scanty and the results indicate a lack of routines in the transition phases. In the written rehabilitation plans the goals were not well reflected in the children´s needs and functional difficulties.

Conclusion: This thesis identified examples in the rehabilitation planning procedure of good practice in which collaboration with various parties and clear formal processes occurred. Areas in need of development were also identified. Standardized formal programme processes and policies and a named care manager for all families could provide a starting point in developing and improving the services to ensure all families have the possibility to be involved in their child´s rehabilitation service.

Family-centeredness in service and rehabilitation planning for children and youth with cerebral palsy in Finland. (Doctoral dissertation),

Jeglinsky, I. (2012)

Objectives: The overall aim of this thesis was to explore and describe the familycentredness and rehabilitation planning procedure for children and youth with cerebral palsy (CP) in Finland. The main focus was on how professionals working with children and youth with cerebral palsy describe and document the rehabilitation planning procedure and how family-centredness was perceived by professionals and parents.

Methods: Participants were team members in neuropediatric multidisciplinary teams in central and university hospitals and government special schools as well as physiotherapy private practitioners who had an agreement with the Social Insurance Institution. Parents visiting two university hospital neuropediatric wards participated in one study (II). Family-centredness in services (FCS) was evaluated by the Measure of Processes of Care questionnaires. To get a deeper insight in the rehabilitation planning procedure, focus group interviews were conducted. Two researchers conducted the interviews which were tape recorded and transcribed. Three content areas guided the interviews: goal-setting, different transition phases and the use of the International Classification of Functioning, Disability and Health, Children and Youth version. A retrospective cross-sectional register study was used to analyze the interrelation between needs and functional difficulties and the therapeutic goals in written rehabilitation plans. The ICF-CY was used as a reference in the analysis.

Results: Professionals and parents rated the family-centred service as fair to moderate. There was a significant difference in how professionals of different disciplines rated their FCS delivery. Professionals with more than 25 years of work experience in the field of rehabilitation for children and youth with CP rated their service higher than those with shorter work experience. Parents and professionals identified common aspects in need of development, i.e. letting the family choose when and what kind of information is provided as well as providing opportunities for the whole family to obtain information. Goal setting and ways to involve families in the rehabilitation planning procedure was experienced as challenging. Collaboration with all involved in the child´s rehabilitation was partly scanty and the results indicate a lack of routines in the transition phases. In the written rehabilitation plans the goals were not well reflected in the children´s needs and functional difficulties.

Conclusion: This thesis identified examples in the rehabilitation planning procedure of good practice in which collaboration with various parties and clear formal processes occurred. Areas in need of development were also identified. Standardized formal programme processes and policies and a named care manager for all families could provide a starting point in developing and improving the services to ensure all families have the possibility to be involved in their child´s rehabilitation service.

Family-Oriented Interventions for the Prevention of Chemical Dependency in Children and Adolescents

Demarsh J, Kumpfer KL. (1986)

Researchers and clinicians are begining to recognize the valuable resource that parents and families are for increasing the effectiveness of substance abuse prevention programs for youth and adolescents. To date, however, most prevention interventions have been developed for use in community or school-based programs. There is a growing number of family-oriented interventions which have been developed specifically as substance abuse prevention programs, or may be easily adapted for use by prevention specialists. This article will review these family-oriented interventions and discuss outcome effectiveness data when available.

Family-oriented program models, helpgiving practices, and parental control appraisals

Trivette, Carol, Dunst, Carl, Boyd, Kimberly & Hamby, Deborah (1995)

Findings from 2 studies investigating sources of variations in parents' assessment of help-giving practices and personal control appraisals are reported. A total of 280 parents of young children with disabilities or at-risk for poor developmental outcomes participated. Parents were involved in early intervention and human services programs that differed along a continuum from professionally centered to family focused. Demographic characteristics showed no relationship to either help-giving practices or perceptions of personal control. In contrast, program characteristics were highly related to help-giving practices, and both program characteristics and help-giving practices were highly related to personal control.

Fathers in neonatal units: Improving infant health by supporting the baby-father bond and mother-father coparenting

Fisher Duncan, Khashu Minesh Adama Esther A. Feeley Nancy (2018)

Abstract

The Family Initiative's International Neonatal Fathers Working Group, whose members are the authors of this paper, has reviewed the literature on engaging fathers in neonatal units, with the aim of making recommendations for improving experience of fathers as well as health outcomes in neonatal practice. We believe that supporting the father-baby bond and supporting co-parenting between the mother and the father benefits the health of the baby, for example, through improved weight gain and oxygen saturation and enhanced rates of breastfeeding. We find, however, that despite much interest in engaging with parents as full partners in the care of their baby, engaging fathers remains sub-optimal. Fathers typically describe the opportunity to bond with their babies, particularly skin-to-skin care, in glowing terms of gratitude, happiness and love. These sensations are underpinned by hormonal and neurobiological changes that take place in fathers when they care for their babies, as also happens with mothers. Fathers, however, are subject to different social expectations from mothers and this shapes how they respond to the situation and how neonatal staff treats them. Fathers are more likely to be considered responsible for earning, they are often considered to be less competent at caring than mothers and they are expected to be "the strong one", providing support to mothers but not expecting it in return. Our review ends with 12 practical recommendations for neonatal teams to focus on: (1) assess the needs of mother and father individually, (2) consider individual needs and wants in family care plans, (3) ensure complete flexibility of access to the neonatal unit for fathers, (4) gear parenting education towards co-parenting, (5) actively promote father-baby bonding, (6) be attentive to fathers hiding their stress, (7) inform fathers directly not just via the mother, (8) facilitate peer-to-peer communication for fathers, (9) differentiate and analyse by gender in service evaluations, (10) train staff to work with fathers and to support co-parenting, (11) develop a father-friendly audit tool for neonatal units, and (12) organise an international consultation to update guidelines for neonatal care, including those of UNICEF.

Feeling heard: a support group for siblings of children with developmental disabilities

McCullough, K. and S. R. Simon (2011)

Siblings are often overlooked in the provision of services to families of children with disabilities. These children also need education and support to ensure their own optimal development. Moreover, as funding and support services decrease, engaging siblings is paramount to the health and safety of children with developmental disabilities. Focusing on the observed therapeutic impact of the group process, this article describes and assesses a model for facilitating a support group for siblings of children with developmental delays. It advocates for significantly increased attention within the social work community to the needs of the sibling population.

Fetal alcohol spectrum disorder prevalence estimates in correctional systems: a systematic literature review.

Popova S, Lange S, Bekmuradov D, Mihic A, Rehm J. (2011)

OBJECTIVES:
The objective of this study was to conduct a systematic search of the literature for studies that estimated the prevalence/incidence of Fetal Alcohol Spectrum Disorder (FASD) in correctional systems in different countries and, based on these data, to estimate a) the number of people with Fetal Alcohol Syndrome (FAS)/FASD within the criminal justice system population, and b) the relative risk of becoming imprisoned for individuals with FAS/FASD compared with those without FAS/FASD.
METHOD:
A systematic world literature review of published and unpublished studies concerning the prevalence/incidence of FASD in correctional systems was conducted in multiple electronic bibliographic databases.
SYNTHESIS:
Very little empirical evidence is available on the prevalence of FASD in correctional systems. There were no studies estimating the prevalence/incidence of FASD in correctional systems found for any country other than Canada and the USA. The few studies that have identified incarcerated individuals with FASD estimate that the number of undiagnosed persons in correctional facilities is high. Based on available Canadian data, this study estimates that youths with FASD are 19 times more likely to be incarcerated than youths without FASD in a given year.
CONCLUSION:
More studies investigating the prevalence/incidence of alcohol-affected people in the criminal justice system are required. There is an urgent need to raise awareness about the prevalence and disabilities of individuals with FASD in the criminal justice system and about appropriate responses. The criminal justice system is an ideal arena for intervention efforts aimed at the rehabilitation and prevention or reduction of recidivism in this unique population.

Fetal Alcohol Spectrum Disorders

Rangmar Jenny, Fahlke Claudia (2013)

Kunskapsöversikten har skrivits på uppdrag av Socialstyrelsen. Det är en sammanställning av aktuell vetenskaplig litteratur rörande psykosociala konsekvenser av alkoholrelaterade fosterskador samt preventiva aspekter på denna typ av fosterskador.

Fetal alcohol spectrum disorders in Finnish children and adolescents. Diagnosis, cognition, behavior, adaptation and brain metabolic alterations (Akademisk avhandling).

Fagerlund Å. (2013)

När en gravid kvinna dricker alkohol gör hennes foster det också. Eftersom det inte finns
någon skyddande blodbarriär kan alkohol fritt korsa moderkakan och orsaka omfattande
skador både fysiologiskt, neurologiskt och beteendemässigt på det växande fostret.
Alkoholrelaterade fosterskador går under den engelska termen Fetal Alcohol Spectrum
Disorders (FASD, Fetala alkohol spektrum störningar). Trots att alkoholrelaterade skador är
fullt möjliga att förhindra utgör de idag en av de vanligaste orsakerna till utvecklingsstörning
i västvärlden. I västländer där prevalensundersökningar har gjorts är antalet barn som
föds med FASD fler än de med autismspektrumstörningar, Downs syndrom eller cerebral
pares. I siffror handlar det om mellan 1 och 6 % av alla levande födda, vilket i Finland skulle
innebära att 600–3600 barn föds med alkoholrelaterade fosterskador varje år. Utöver de
direkta toxiska effekterna av alkohol utsätts barnen som föds med FASD ofta för en dubbel
börda i livet. Dels har barnen redan vid födseln neurologiska skador, dels föds de också
med stor sannolikhet in i en familj med minst en missbrukande förälder och en omgivning
där de utsätts för ytterligare risker i sin utveckling. Trots detta är FASD idag en starkt
underdiagnosticerad grupp inom hälso- och sjukvården.
Den här avhandlingen utgör en del av ett större multinationellt forskningsprojekt, The
Collaborative Initiative on Fetal Alcohol Spectrum Disorders (CIFASD), som initierades av det
nationella institutet för alkoholmissbruk och alkoholism (National Institute of Alcohol Abuse and
Alcoholism, NIAAA) i USA. Det huvudsakliga syftet med den föreliggande avhandlingen var att
undersöka en kohort med barn och ungdomar med alkoholrelaterade fosterskador i Finland.
Avhandlingen består av fem studier med ett brett fokus på diagnos, kognition, beteende,
adaptiva färdigheter och avvikelser i hjärnans ämnesomsättning hos barn och unga med FASD.
Deltagarna bestod av fyra olika grupper: en grupp som varit utsatt för alkohol under
graviditeten (FASD); en IQ-matchad kontrollgrupp som huvudsakligen bestod av barn med
specifika inlärningssvårigheter (Specific Learning Disorder, SLD); och två grupper med normala
kontroller (CON1 och CON2). Deltagarna rekryterades via genomgång av medicinska journaler,
slumpmässigt urval ur det finska befolkningsregistret och e-postförfrågningar till studerande.
Med diagnoser som är såpass svåra att fastställa som de inom FASD-spektret är det av stor
betydelse att de föreliggande studierna har utförts i nära samarbete med ledande experter
på FASD (prof. Edward Riley och prof. Sarah Mattson från Center for Behavioral Teratology vid
San Diego State University, USA och prof. Eugene Hoyme från Sanford School of Medicine,
University of South Dakota, USA). Deltagarna i föreliggande studier är således mycket noggrant
undersökta och diagnosticerade. I den här avhandlingen testades för första gången de
amerikanska reviderade Institute of Medicines diagnoskriterier för FASD på en finsk population.
Kriterierna visade sig tillförlitliga i att särskilja olika undergrupper bland alkoholskadade barn.
Ett annat värdefullt hjälpmedel som användes vid diagnosticeringen var en speciellt utarbetad
skala för bedömning av de specifika dysmorfa dragen vid FASD (Studie 1).
Syftet med Studie 2 var att klargöra relationen mellan alkoholrelaterade dysmorfa drag och
allmän kognitiv kapacitet. Resultaten visade på en signifikant korrelation mellan dysmorfa
drag och kognitiv kapacitet, så att barn med större avvikelser i sin tillväxt och med mer
dysmorfa drag också tenderade att uppvisa större kognitiva svårigheter. Sambandet var
emellertid måttligt och det kan betonas att fysiologiska markörer och kognitiv kapacitet inte
alls alltid går hand i hand hos individer med FASD.
Barnen och ungdomarna i FASD-gruppen uppvisade omfattande problem i beteende och
mental hälsa jämfört med kontrollgruppen (CON1). I studie 3 utforskades närmare hurudana
risk- och skyddande faktorer som kunde associeras med beteendeproblemen i FASD-gruppen.
Studien fokuserade på diagnosrelaterade och omgivningsrelaterade faktorer. Resultaten visade
att två grupper med förhöjd risk för beteendeproblem kunde urskiljas: 1) Ju längre tid ett barn
hade spenderat intaget på barnhem desto högre risk för beteendeproblem och 2) ju mindre
dysmorfa drag ett barn med FASD hade desto mer omfattande beteendeproblem uppvisade
barnet. Resultaten understryker betydelsen av att inom hälso- och sjukvården uppmärksamma
och ge vård och adekvata insatser också (eller framför allt) till mindre synligt alkoholskadade
barn. Det är också av stor vikt att uppmärksamma behoven och välmåendet hos de barn med
FASD som växer upp på olika former av barnhem. För dessa barn verkar kombinationen av
medfödda fysiologiska och psykologiska skador tillsammans med minskad möjlighet till en nära
och kontinuerlig relation till en närstående vuxen göra dem extra utsatta och sårbara i livet.
Studie 4 fokuserade på adaptiva färdigheter så som kommunikationsförmåga, förmåga att
klara ett dagligt liv och sociala förmågor. Adaptiva färdigheter handlar med andra ord om
förmågor som gradvis hjälper en individ att klara ett självständigt liv, upprätthålla sociala
relationer och integreras i samhället. Resultaten visade att de adaptiva färdigheterna hos
barn och unga som växer upp med FASD är avsevärt sämre än hos både normalt utvecklade
barn och IQ-matchade barn med inlärningssvårigheter. Klart skilda adaptiva profiler
uppdagades där FASD-gruppen klarade sig sämre än barnen med inlärningssvårigheter
som i sin tur klarade sig sämre än barnen i den normala kontrollgruppen. Det är viktigt att
poängtera att barnen med inlärningssvårigheter presterade bättre än FASD-gruppen trots
att de kognitivt befann sig på samma nivå. Den här studien är den första att jämföra adaptiva
förmågor hos en grupp barn och unga med FASD jämfört med både en grupp IQ-matchade
barn med inlärningssvårigheter och en grupp normalt utvecklade barn.
Slutligen påvisades i studie 5 neurokemiska förändringar med hjälp av magnetisk resonansspektroskopi
(MRS) hos tonåringar och unga vuxna med FASD som kunde relateras till
alkoholbruk under fosterstadiet 14–20 år tidigare. De neurokemiska förändringarna kunde
påvisas i ett flertal områden i hjärnan: i den frontala och parietala hjärnbarken, i corpus
callosum, thalamus, i frontala områden med vit substans samt i lilla hjärnans nucleus dentatus.
Förändringarna stämmer överens med den neuropsykologiska profilen vid FASD. Glia celler (vit
hjärnsubstans) verkade mer påverkade av alkohol under fosterstadiet än neuron (nervceller).
Sammantaget kan konstateras att större samhälleliga ansträngningar och resurser borde
fokuseras på att känna igen och diagnosticera FASD och på att stöda speciellt utsatta
riskgrupper av alkoholskadade barn och unga. Utan tillräcklig intervention och stöd löper
de en stor risk för marginalisering och utslagning, vilket är kostsamt inte bara för samhället
utan också för de många barn som växer upp med FASD.

Fetal alcohol spectrum disorders: an over- view

Riley EP, Infante MA, Warren KR. (2011)

When fetal alcohol syndrome (FAS) was initially described, diagnosis was based upon physical parameters including facial anomalies and growth retardation, with evidence of developmental delay or mental deficiency. Forty years of research has shown that FAS lies towards the extreme end of what are now termed fetal alcohol spectrum disorders (FASD). The most profound effects of prenatal alcohol exposure are on the developing brain and the cognitive and behavioral effects that ensue. Alcohol exposure affects brain development via numerous pathways at all stages from neurogenesis to myelination. For example, the same processes that give rise to the facial characteristics of FAS also cause abnormal brain development. Behaviors as diverse as executive functioning to motor control are affected. This special issue of Neuropsychology Review addresses these changes in brain and behavior highlighting the relationship between the two. A diagnostic goal is to recognize FAS as a disorder of brain rather than one of physical characteristics.

Fetal alcohol syndrome and the developing socio-emotional brain

Niccols A. (2007)

Fetal alcohol syndrome (FAS) is currently recognized as the most common known cause of mental retardation, affecting from 1 to 7 per 1000 live-born infants. Individuals with FAS suffer from changes in brain structure, cognitive impairments, and behavior problems. Researchers investigating neuropsychological functioning have identified deficits in learning, memory, executive functioning, hyperactivity, impulsivity, and poor communication and social skills in individuals with FAS and fetal alcohol effects (FAE). Investigators using autopsy and brain imaging methods have identified microcephaly and structural abnormalities in various regions of the brain (including the basal ganglia, corpus callosum, cerebellum, and hippocampus) that may account for the neuropsychological deficits. Results of studies using newer brain imaging and analytic techniques have indicated specific alterations (i.e., displacements in the corpus callosum, increased gray matter density in the perisylvian regions, altered gray matter asymmetry, and disproportionate reductions in the frontal lobes) in the brains of individuals prenatally exposed to alcohol, and their relations with brain function. Future research, including using animal models, could help inform our knowledge of brain-behavior relations in the context of prenatal alcohol exposure, and assist with early identification and intervention.

I sinnenas värld. Hörsel

Johansson, I., Andersson, L., Wramberg I. (1997)

I sinnenas värld är en serie böcker utgivna av SIH läromedel. De innehåller förslag på aktiviteter och övningar som stimulerar alla olika sinnen. Illustrerade av Eva Skåreus.

I sinnenas värld. Känsel

Hagander BM., Moback I. (1997)

I sinnenas värld är en serie böcker utgivna av SIH läromedel. De innehåller förslag på aktiviteter och övningar som stimulerar alla olika sinnen. Illustrerade av Eva Skåreus.

I sinnenas värld. Luktsinnet - Lukt och smak

Dannert E. (1996)

I sinnenas värld är en serie böcker utgivna av SIH läromedel. De innehåller förslag på aktiviteter och övningar som stimulerar alla olika sinnen. Illustrerade av Eva Skåreus.

I sinnenas värld. Rörelse, kroppsuppfattning

Feldtman K. (1998)

I sinnenas värld är en serie böcker utgivna av SIH läromedel. De innehåller förslag på aktiviteter och övningar som stimulerar alla olika sinnen. Illustrerade av Eva Skåreus.

I sinnenas värld. Syn

Sahlén U., Berglund L. (1997)

I sinnenas värld är en serie böcker utgivna av SIH läromedel. De innehåller förslag på aktiviteter och övningar som stimulerar alla olika sinnen. Illustrerade av Eva Skåreus.

Finansiell och politisk samordning i den lokala välfärden: En ny politisk arena för gemensamma prioriteringar mellan huvudmän. CEFOS rapport nr. 20.

Fridolf, M. (2004)

I denna rapport beskrivs politikeruppdraget vid politisk och finansiell samordning. Vid samordning samlas resurser över organisationsgränser för att användas gemensamt. Det unika med politisk och finansiell samordning är att huvudmännen har ett gemensamt kostnadsansvar. Resurserna kan omfördelas mellan huvudmän. Politisk samordning innebär att en politisk arena skapas som prioriterar resurser över organisationsgränser. I rapporten påvisas att politikeruppdraget skiljer sig mycket åt beroende på vilken inriktning som finns på olika områden; mot samordningsperspektiv eller befolkningsperspektiv. Inriktningen har skapats av vald struktur men också av hur aktörerna ser på sin roll och dess utövande. En ny struktur skapas på den parlamentariska arenan. I denna samordning betonas politikernas roll. Rollskillnader utvecklas dock mellan olika politiker, vilket gör att de får olika betydelse och status. Detta påverkar i sin tur deras inflytande. En samförståndspolitik utvecklas, där politikerna inte driver partipolitik. Genom politisk samordning skapas förutsättningar för gemensamma prioriteringar av behov. Den nya strukturen påverkar politikerna som aktörer i samtliga områden.

I rapporten återges ambitioner med finansiell och politisk samordning samt hur en ny politisk struktur skapas. Dessutom beskrivs politikernas motiv till engagemang, hur de ser på sin uppgift samt hur politisk organisering genom behovsidentifiering, prioritering, resursmobilisering och utvärdering utvecklas. Studien behandlar också politikernas betydelse för samarbete mellan chefer och professionella.

Finding care for the caregiver? Active participation in online health forums attenuates the negative effect of caregiver strain on wellbeing

Tanis M, Das E, Fortgens-Sillmann M. (2011)

This paper focuses on how online health forums may benefit the wellbeing of caregivers. An online questionnaire of caregivers assessed caregiver strain, forum use, and mental and physical wellbeing. Results show a positive relation between caregiver strain and using online health forums to seek emotional support. Furthermore, we find that caregivers with higher levels of caregiver strain report lower mental and physical wellbeing. This relation is however moderated by using online health forums. While the amount of time spent on the online forums did not moderate the relation between caregiver strain and wellbeing, the amount of activity (i. e. the number of messages posted per week) did: Active participation in online health forums attenuates the negative effect of caregiver strain on wellbeing. These findings suggest that online forums are valuable for caregivers and that it is active contribution that matters, rather than simply visiting the online health groups.

Flickan och kajorna

Riita Jalonen, Kriistina Louhi (2005)

En flicka står under ett träd utanför tågstationen. Hennes mamma är inne och köper biljetter för att de ska resa bort. Flicka tittar på kajorna i trädet hon står under, tänker på saknad och minnen av pappa som är död. Hon tänker på vad de gjorde, vad hon minns av honom och hur det känns inuti att ha en pappa som är död. Hennes tankar vindlar över sidorna, från det ena till det andra, men saknade efter pappa går som en röd tråd genom boken. Stora mättade bilder illustrerar boken. Boken passar barn från 5 år.

Fokus på mig, Vuxensyskon. Samtalsmaterial

Bräcke diakoni (2021)

Samtalsmaterialet "Fokus på mig, Vuxensyskon" är en del av Projekt Vuxensyskon.

Känner du igen dig?
• Har du svårt att veta vilket ansvar du har för ditt syskon?
• Är din självständighet en belastning för dig?
• Får du dåligt samvete när du tänker på ditt syskon?
• Har du svårt att veta vad du själv vill?
• Känns det jobbigt för dig när du säger nej?
"Fokus på mig, Vuxensyskon" är till för dig som är syskon till någon
med funktionsnedsättning eller sjukdom. Samtalsmaterialet innehåller
berättelser, teman, övningar och frågeställningar där förhoppningen
är att ge igenkänning, hopp och förståelse för sig själv.

Inclusive education for high school students with severe intellectual disabilities: Supporting communication

Downing, J. E. (2005)

This article provides a summary of different strategies used to support the complex communication needs of high school students with severe intellectual disabilities and additional impairments who are included in general education classrooms. The premise of this paper is that students with severe cognitive disabilities benefit from inclusive educational opportunities at the high school level and can acquire critical communication skills, given the necessary support. High school students typically communicate for a variety of purposes and use a variety of different modes of communication. This variety in purpose and mode extends to students who do not use speech and have other severe disabilities. The role that peers can play in the development of communication for high school students is described, as well as the need to critically evaluate the learning environment in order to identify communication opportunities. (PsycINFO Database Record (c) 2012 APA, all rights reserved)(journal abstract)

Increased Risks of Heart Disease and Stroke Among Spousal Caregivers of Cancer Patients

Jianguang, J., Zöller, B., Sundquist, K., & Sundquist, J. (2012)

Background—Spousal caregivers of cancer patients suffer psychological and physical burdens that may affect their risk of subsequently developing coronary heart disease and stroke.

Methods and Results—Cancer patients were identified in the Swedish Cancer Registry, and information on their spouses was retrieved from the Swedish Multi-Generation Register. Follow-up of caregivers was performed from the date of the first diagnosis of cancer in their spouses through 2008. Standardized incidence ratios were calculated for spousal caregivers of cancer patients compared with those without an affected spouse. After the cancer diagnosis in wives, the risks of coronary heart disease, ischemic stroke, and hemorrhagic stroke in husbands were 1.13 (95% confidence interval [CI], 1.10–1.16), 1.24 (95% CI, 1.21–1.27), and 1.25 (95% CI, 1.18–1.32), respectively. The corresponding risks in wives with an affected husband were 1.13 (95% CI, 1.10–1.16), 1.29 (95% CI, 1.26–1.32), and 1.27 (95% CI, 1.19–1.34). The increases were consistent over time and were more pronounced if the spouse was affected by a cancer with a high mortality rate, such as pancreatic and lung cancers.

Conclusions—Spousal caregivers of cancer patients have increased risks of coronary heart disease and stroke that persist over time. Clinical attention should be paid to spousal caregivers, especially those caring for cancer patients with high mortality rates.

Increasing functional communication in non-speaking preschool children: Comparison of PECS and VOCA

Bock, S. J., Stoner, J. B., Beck, A. R., Hanley, L., & Prochnow, J. (2005)

For individuals who have complex communication needs and for the interventionists who work with them, the collection of empirically derived data that support the use of an intervention approach is critical. The purposes of this study were to continue building an empirically derived base of support for, and to compare the relative effectiveness of two communication intervention strategies (i.e., PECS and the use of VOCA) with preschool children who have complex communication needs. Specific research questions were (a) Which communication strategy, PECS or VOCA, results in a more rapid rate of acquisition of requesting skills for preschool children?, and (b) To what extent do communication behaviors utilizing PECS and VOCA generalize from a pull-out setting to the classroom setting? Results are discussed and clinical implications given.

Increasing functional communication in non-speaking preschool children: Comparison of PECS and VOCA.

Bock, S. J., Stoner, J. B., Beck, A. R., Hanley, L., & Prochnow, J. (2005)

For individuals who have complex communication needs and for the interventionists who work with them, the collection of empirically derived data that support the use of an intervention approach is critical. The purposes of this study were to continue building an empirically derived base of support for, and to compare the relative effectiveness of two communication intervention strategies (i.e., PECS and the use of VOCA) with preschool children who have complex communication needs. Specific research questions were (a) Which communication strategy, PECS or VOCA, results in a more rapid rate of acquisition of requesting skills for preschool children?, and (b) To what extent do communication behaviors utilizing PECS and VOCA generalize from a pull-out setting to the classroom setting? Results are discussed and clinical implications given.

Increasing preparedness for caregiving and death in family caregivers of patients with severe illness who are cared for at home – study protocol for a web-based intervention

Alvariza, Anette ; Häger-Tibell, Louise ; Holm, Maja ; Steineck, Gunnar ; Kreicbergs, Ulrika (2020)

Abstract

Family caregivers of patients with severe illness and in need for a palliative care approach, face numerous challenges and report having insufficient preparedness for the caregiver role as well as a need for information and psychosocial support. Preparing to care for a severely ill family members also means becoming aware of death. Feelings of being prepared are associated with positive aspects and regarded protective against negative health consequences. The study adheres to the SPIRIT-guidelines (Supplementary 1), uses a pre-post design and include a web-based intervention. Inclusion criteria are; being a family caregiver of a patient with severe illness and in need of a palliative care approach. The intervention which aims to increase preparedness for caregiving and death is grounded in theory, research and clinical experience. The topics cover: medical issues, symptoms and symptom relief; communication within the couple, how to spend the time before death, being a caregiver, planning for the moment of death and; considerations of the future. The intervention is presented through videos and informative texts. The website also holds an online peer-support discussion forum. Study aims are to: evaluate feasibility in terms of framework, content, usage and partners' experiences; explore how the use of the website, influences family caregivers' preparedness for caregiving and death; explore how the use of the website influences family caregivers' knowledge about medical issues, their communication with the patient and their considerations of the future; and to investigate how the family caregivers' preparedness for caregiving and death influences their physical and psychological health and quality of life 1 year after the patient's death. Data will be collected through qualitative interviews and a study-specific questionnaire at four time-points. This project will provide information about whether support via a website has the potential to increase preparedness for caregiving and death and thereby decrease negative health consequences for family caregivers of patients affected by severe illness. It will provide new knowledge about intervention development, delivery, and evaluation in a palliative care context. Identification of factors before death and their association with family caregivers' preparedness and long-term health may change future clinical work.

Informal caregivers' conceptions of daily life with a spouse having chronic obstructive pulmonary disease

Lindqvist, G. (2013)

The overall aim of this thesis was to explore informal caregivers' daily life with particular focus on those living with a spouse who has Chronic Obstructive Pulmonary Disease (COPD) in different grades, mild to severe, based on the ill person's main concern. The study design was explorative, comparative and descriptive. The thesis included a literature review of 45 scientific articles and semi-structured interviews with 23 patients suffering from COPD, and 21 women and 19 men living with a spouse suffering from COPD. Data were analysed using content analysis, grounded theory, and phenomenography. Main findings: Men and women living with a spouse suffering from mild COPD did not experience changes in their daily life, and were not in need of support. It was when the COPD gradually escalated that their daily life was affected and they needed support. The caregiving women conceived that their daily life was socially restricted, they had changed roles, changes in health and changes in the couple's relationship. The caregiving men's daily life was conceived as burdened, restricted and the partner relationship was affected. The men's attitude was to continue with their own life and own activities, and their approach to their caregiving situation was to view themselves as "Me and my spouse". The main concern for people suffering from COPD was feelings of guilt due to self-inflicted disease associated with smoking habits. The thesis shows that there are differences in informal caregiving between males and females. Conclusion: This thesis shows that there are differences in male and female caregiving for a spouse suffering from COPD. The caregivers conceive and handle the caregiving situation in different ways. It is central that health professionals and municipality consider this along with the individual needs that are related to the development of the COPD. There is a need to identify the person who suffers from COPD and their spouses from the first contact onwards, to regularly follow the development of their situation and need of support.

Informal caregivers who are interested and do make use of information and communication technologies

Lindqvist Gunilla, Elizabeth Hanson (2018)

Abstract 
Objective: The aim of the study was to highlight informal caregivers' interest in using the Information and Communication Technology (ICT)-based ACTION service (Assisting Carers using Telematics Interventions to meet Older People's Needs) and their ideas for how to further develop and extend the service. The use of ICT is constantly increasing worldwide. Europe has the highest old age dependency ratio, but other parts of the world are also experiencing a dramatic ageing of their population. The demands for care are increasing, and resources are shrinking. One way to support informal caregivers is through ICT.

Methods: The study employed a qualitative design. Focus group interviews were carried out with informal caregivers in Sweden. The interviews were analysed using a latent content analysis method.

Results: The analysis yielded a major theme, striving to feel confident, with four categories: informal caregivers' reflections and ideas about ICT; promoting their own health process; increasing their knowledge bank and informal caregivers' rights; and striving for inclusiveness.

Conclusions: The present study highlights the challenges that informal caregivers face in their daily life as well as their resources to devise possible solutions that could improve their situation. To preserve their health, a carer support plan including regular health checks could be helpful. ICT-based support (such as the ACTION service) could act as a way forward for supporting informal caregivers in their striving to feel confident. The study highlighted that ICT-based support has the potential to act as a direct benefit for informal caregivers.

Informal Caregiving and Quality of Life Among Older Adults: Prospective Analyses from the Swedish Longitudinal Occupational Survey of Health (SLOSH)

Lawrence B. Sacco, Stefanie König, Hugo Westerlund, Loretta G. Platts (2020)

Abstract [en]
Providing unpaid informal care to someone who is ill or disabled is a common experience in later life. While a supportive and potentially rewarding role, informal care can become a time and emotionally demanding activity, which may hinder older adults' quality of life. In a context of rising demand for informal carers, we investigated how caregiving states and transitions are linked to overall levels and changes in quality of life, and how the relationship varies according to care intensity and burden. We used fixed effects and change analyses to examine six-wave panel data (2008–2018) from the Swedish Longitudinal Occupational Survey of Health (SLOSH, n = 5076; ages 50–74). The CASP-19 scale is used to assess both positive and negative aspects of older adults' quality of life. Caregiving was related with lower levels of quality of life in a graded manner, with those providing more weekly hours and reporting greater burden experiencing larger declines. Two-year transitions corresponding to starting, ceasing and continuing care provision were associated with lower levels of quality of life, compared to continuously not caregiving. Starting and ceasing caregiving were associated with negative and positive changes in quality of life score, respectively, suggesting that cessation of care leads to improvements despite persistent lower overall levels of quality of life. Measures to reduce care burden or time spent providing informal care are likely to improve the quality of life of older people.

Informal caregiving in old age : Content, coping, difficulties and satisfaction

Kristensson Ekwall, A. (2004)

Older people take a great share of caregiving responsibility already and thus understanding of their strain, coping and satis-faction is required. The aim was to investigate dimensions of caregiving activities among elderly (75+) caregivers and to study the dimensions in relation to health-related quality of life (Paper I). It was also to investigate quality of life in relation to loneliness, caregiving, social network, gender, age and economic status among men and women in a population-based sample aged 75 or older (Paper II). Another aim was to investigate coping strategies and sense of coherence (SOC) in relation to gender, the extent of care, caregiving activities and QoL in a sample of caregivers aged 75+ (n=171) and to explore the reliability and validity of an instrument assessing coping (CAMI) (Paper III). It was also to study correlation between gender, extent and content of the care, coping, satisfaction and difficulties in the caregiving situation and to identify clusters of caregivers (Paper IV), and to psycho-metrically explore two instruments assessing satisfaction (CASI) and difficulties (CADI) in the care (Paper IV) as well as sources of satisfaction together with caregiving difficulties. Responses to a Swedish postal survey (n=4278) (Paper II) showed that 18% helped another person due to that person's impaired health (Paper I), 41.6% women among the caregivers, mean age 81.8 (SD 4.96) for men 81.7 (SD 4.32). The second sample included 171 caregivers (59.6% men, mean age 82.1, SD 4.6, women 80.6, SD 3.9), response rate 47%, of whom almost 70% provided help every day (Papers III & IV). Adapting their activities to be prepared if something happened (52%), having regular contact to prevent problems (35%), helping in contacts with the hospital (57%), helping with IADL (49%), PADL (14%), medical care (11%) and helping to improve functions (14%) were activities reported. Adapting own activities, regular contact, weak economy and needing help with IADL oneself predicted low MCS-12 (Paper I). Caregivers had a larger social network and reported feelings of loneliness less often than non-caregivers, indicating that caregiving takes place mainly in the phase when the older person is healthy (Paper II). There were gender differences in loneliness, with women being more lonely. Loneliness and a small network were associated with low QoL among caregivers as well as elderly in general (Paper II). The 25% of the respondents (n=171) with the lowest MCS-12 scores were more dissatisfied with the information given about the practical and medical care than those with higher scores (Paper III). Higher MCS-12 predicted with using self-sustaining coping and a high SOC while poor economy and asking for social and practical support predicted low scores. The most frequent source of satisfaction was seeing the care recipient happy (77%) and problems with mobility in the person cared for (28%) and difficulties sleeping were frequently reported (14%) which shows that feelings of satisfaction were more frequent than experiencing difficulties. The difficulties did not differ between men and women.

Informing children of their parent's illness: A systematic review of intervention programs with child outcomes in all health care settings globally from inception to 2019

Charlotte Oja, Tobias Edbom, Anna Nager, Jörgen Månsson, Solvig Ekblad (2020)

Abstract
Introduction: Children are impacted when parents are ill. This systematic review gives an overview of the current state of research and extracts what children and parents found helpful in the interventions aimed at informing children of their parent's illness.

Methods: This review was registered with PROSPERO and conducted in accordance with PRISMA guidelines. Five health and social science databases were searched from inception to November 2019 to identify original, peer-reviewed articles in English describing effective interventions. The authors selected and reviewed the studies independently, and any inconsistencies were resolved by discussion in face-to-face meetings and emails. A descriptive synthesis of evidence-based concepts from quantitative and qualitative studies was conducted.

Results: A total of 13 892 titles and 144 full-text articles were reviewed with 32 selected for final inclusion, 21 quantitative, 11 qualitative and no mixed-method studies published from 1993 to November 2019. Most of the research was conducted in mental health, including substance abuse (n = 22), but also in cancer care (n = 6) and HIV care (n = 4). Most studies using quantitative method showed a small to moderately positive statistically significant intervention effect on the child's level of internalized symptoms. Content analysis of the results of studies employing qualitative methodology resulted in four concepts important to both children and parents in interventions (increased knowledge, more open communication, new coping strategies and changed feelings) and three additional concepts important to parents (observed changes in their children's behavior, the parent's increased understanding of their own child and the relief of respite).

Conclusions: In the literature there is evidence of mild to moderate positive effects on the child's level of internalized symptoms as well as concepts important to children and parent's worth noting when trying to bridge the still existing knowledge gaps. In further efforts the challenges of implementation as well as adaptation to differing clinical and personal situations appear key to address.

Infoteket om funktionshinder

LUL (2012)

Infoteket om funktionshinder är till för dig som har en funktionsnedsättning, är anhörig eller arbetar med barn, ungdomar eller vuxna med funktionsnedsättningar i skola eller annan verksamhet.

På Infoteket kan du läsa och låna aktuell litteratur, filmer, söka information på webben, tala med experter och lyssna på föreläsningar. Här finns lästips och faktablad inom olika diagnoser och funktionsnedsättningar att hämta.

Infrared-based communication augmentation system for people with multiple disabilities

Chen SC, Tang FT, Chen YL, Chen WL, Li YC, Shih YY, et al. (2004)

Purpose: This study describes an eyeglass-type infrared-based communication board for the nonspeaking with quadriplegia. Method: This system is composed of four major components: a headset, an infrared transmitting module, an infrared receiving/signal-processing module, and a main controller, the Intel-8951 microprocessor. This design concept was based on the use of an infrared remote module fastened to the eyeglasses which could allow the convenient control of the input motion on the keys of a communication board, which are all modified with infrared receiving/signal-processing modules. For system evaluation, 12 subjects (all men, 21-45 years old, six normal subjects as the control group and six nonspeaking with quadriplegia as the experimental group) were recruited. Results: The average accuracy of the control group and the experimental group were 93.1 ± 4.3% and 89.7 ± 5.5%, respectively. The average time cost of the control group and the experimental group were 78.3 ± 8.7 s and 89.9 ± 10.2 s, respectively. An independent t-test revealed that the differences in the average accuracy and the average time cost of the control group and the experimental group were not significant (p > 0.05). Conclusions: The increase of opportunity to communicate using the infrared-based communication board would help people with multiple disabilities to socialize actively. © 2004 Taylor & Francis Ltd.

Funktionshindrade 1988-1999

Statistiska centralbyrån, SCB (2003)

Funktionsnedsättningar som medför någon form av begränsningar i tillvaron utgör funktionshinder. I denna rapport redovisas levnadsförhållanden för personer med olika typer av funktionsnedsättningar. Det gäller dels ett antal medicinska sjukdomar, dels några grupper som definierats just utifrån sina funktionsbegränsningar.Rapporten är indelad i två delar där den första behandlar levnadsförhållanden för personer i normalt yrkesverksam ålder, 25-64 år, och den senare förhållanden för personer i pensionsålder, 65-84 år. I ett inledande kapitel redovisas också hur vanligt förekommande olika kombinationer av funktionsnedsättningar är. I rapporten jämförs de funktionsnedsattas förhållanden i slutet av 90-talet med förhållandena tio år tidigare, dvs. före och i slutet av ett årtionde som kännetecknades av stora problem på arbetsmarknaden och besparingar i den offentliga sektorn.

Funktionshindrade 1988-1999

Statistiska centralbyrån, SCB (2003)

Funktionsnedsättningar som medför någon form av begränsningar i tillvaron utgör funktionshinder. I denna rapport redovisas levnadsförhållanden för personer med olika typer av funktionsnedsättningar. Det gäller dels ett antal medicinska sjukdomar, dels några grupper som definierats just utifrån sina funktionsbegränsningar.Rapporten är indelad i två delar där den första behandlar levnadsförhållanden för personer i normalt yrkesverksam ålder, 25-64 år, och den senare förhållanden för personer i pensionsålder, 65-84 år. I ett inledande kapitel redovisas också hur vanligt förekommande olika kombinationer av funktionsnedsättningar är. I rapporten jämförs de funktionsnedsattas förhållanden i slutet av 90-talet med förhållandena tio år tidigare, dvs. före och i slutet av ett årtionde som kännetecknades av stora problem på arbetsmarknaden och besparingar i den offentliga sektorn.

Funktionshindrade i välfärdssamhället

Lindqvist, R. (2012)

Funktionshindrade i välfärdssamhället handlar om funktionshindrades livsvillkor på några centrala områden: arbete och försörjning, vård, omsorg och utbildning, men också om funktionshindrades roll som samhällsmedborgare med anspråk på delaktighet och inflytande.

Bokens fokus ligger till stor del på välfärdssystemets möjligheter och begränsningar relaterade till funktionshindrades villkor. Men det finns naturligtvis en rad andra faktorer som också påverkar medborgarnas villkor som till exempel utvecklingen inom ekonomi och arbetsmarknad och inte minst de attityder och föreställningar vi har om vad det innebär att ha ett funktionshinder.

Den historiska framställningen visar på en utveckling från ett ensidigt individuellt handikappbegrepp, som betonar individens sjukdomar, skador och andra brister som konstituerande för handikappet, till ett mer relativt funktionshinderbegrepp som betonar omgivningens betydelse för om handikapp föreligger eller ej.

Boken vänder sig till studerande på universitet och högskolor, framför allt inom socialt arbete och vårdvetenskap.

Rafael Lindqvist är professor i sociologi, med inriktning funktionshinderforskning, Uppsala universitet.

Future Directions in Family and Professional Caregiving for the Elderly

Zarit, S. H. and A. M. Reamy (2013)

As the population ages and the expected wave of baby boomers settles into old age, there is a pressing need to examine the people and institutions that care for elders and the ways in which the system will need to adapt during the next 5-10 years to accommodate the needs of the elderly and of their caregivers. This paper examines future directions in this field, identifying the major issues from two perspectives: family caregiving and professional caregiving. Despite extensive research on caregiving, more attention to a series of methodological issues is needed, as is more extensive evaluation of promising intervention models in community and institutional settings. Effective strategies to lower caregiver distress and improve the quality of care can be implemented in efficient ways that manage costs, but the argument for innovations must be made based on efficacy.

Får hundar korvar i himlen?

Sara Galli, Mats Molid (2014)

Alva har en hund Musse. Musse är inte bara en hund, Alva ser Musse som en storebror också. När Alva får höra att Musse är gammal och inte kommer att leva länge till blir Alva både ledsen och arg, hon vill att han ska leva för alltid. Det är ju honom hon har som bästa vän och som hon berättar alla hemlisa för! Alva funderar över hur det ska gå till när Musse ska dö och vad händer med honom efteråt? Alva inser till slut att han inte försviner helt. Han finns ju kvar inom henne, lite i köket och kanske även i himlen.

För alltid i mitt hjärta

Bouw Rose Marie (2017)

Kristina och Vivianne, två motpoler vars liv löper parallellt i Solgläntans korridorer när de hälsar på sina mödrar. Sida vid sida i demensens skugga söker de sig till varandra, i behov av ett outtalat stöd. Vivianne gömmer sin osynliga sorg bakom lager av glada färger och en väldigt lång halsduk. Fast besluten att alltid se det positiva i livet väljer hon att hålla fast i nuet och leva för stunden, tacksam för alla minnen hon får. Kristina försöker förtränga sitt förflutna, men hon är rädd för att glömma. Rädd att pärlhalsbandet av minnen ska gå sönder. Rädd att bli som sin mamma, som hon i hemlighet önskar livet ur. Men döden kommer aldrig i tid. Den kommer alltid för sent. Eller för tidigt. För alltid i mitt hjärta är en roman om en oväntad vänskap, som kommer att betyda så mycket mer än Kristina och Vivianne någonsin hade kunnat ana. En vänskap som kommer att sträcka sig genom både tid och rum.

För den jag är – om utbildning och utvecklingsstörning

SOU (2003)

Carlbeck-kommittén har till uppgift att se över utbildningen för barn, ungdomar och vuxna med utvecklingsstörning. Delbetänkandet För den jag är om utbildning och utvecklingstörning (SOU: 2003: 35), är en beskrivning och kartläggning av hur utbildningen för barn, ungdomar och vuxna ser ut i dag.

Kommitténs uppgift är att hitta vägar att stärka utbildningen för barn, ungdomar och vuxna med utvecklingstörning med det övergripande målet att åstadkomma en inkluderande skola och en inkluderande undervisning.

Föräldraboken om ADHD

Lena Westholm (2016)

"Föräldraboken om ADHD" vänder sig till föräldrar som har ett barn eller en tonåring med ADHD. Grundtanken är att ökad kunskap om ADHD ska göra det lättare för föräldrarna att förstå och stödja sitt barn.

Boken är skriven av psykolog Lena Westholm. Hon arbetar på ADHD-center inom Habilitering och Hälsa i Stockholms läns landsting.I boken konstateras att föräldrar till barn eller tonåringar med ADHD måste kämpa och använda mer energi än andra föräldrar för att få tillvaron att fungera. Det ställs stora krav på tålamod, planering och konflikthantering.

Läsaren ges tips på olika sätt att lösa problem och hur det kan bli lättare att hantera vardagen. Områden som tas upp är ADHD i olika åldrar, skolgång, medicinering, fritid, mat- och sovvanor, relationer, känslor med mera.

Föräldralärande inom barnhabilitering. Teori och praktik

Solders, Lena (2008)

Föräldrautbildning erbjuds idag bl.a. inom förskola/skola, socialtjänst liksom hälso- och sjukvård. Lärandet kan beskrivas ur olika perspektiv. Om barnet är det primära brukar man tala om Parent Education, när fokus ligger på familjen som helhet talar man om Parent Training och när det är föräldrarna som står i centrum för utbildningsinsatsen säger man ofta Parent Support. En viktig tanke är att få tillstånd ett bra samarbete mellan föräldrar och personal. Det är nödvändigt för att skapa större delaktighet och ett bättre lärande för föräldrar.

Föräldrar med utvecklingsstörning och deras barn –vad finns det för kunskap?

Socialstyrelsen (2005)

I denna samanställning av befintlig forskning framkommer att några områden är mer studerade än andra. Ett antal studier har undersökt föräldraförmåga och föräldrakompetens. I dag vet man ganska väl vad som kan fungera och vad som kan brista i föräldrarnas förmåga att ta hand om sina barn. Resultat från olika studier visar att träning och utbildning kan förbättra föräldrarnas förmåga. En förutsättning för detta är dock att utbildningen är kontinuerlig såväl över tid som i kontakten med de professionella. Befintliga studier inkluderar oftare mödrar än fäder vilket innebär att det finns mer kunskap om mödrarna. Endast ett fåtal studier har undersökt fäderna och männen i kvinnornas liv.

Vidare finns det ett fåtal studier som fokuserar barnet i de familjer där föräldrarna har en utvecklingstörning. Den forskning som finns visar dock att barnen utgör en riskgrupp. Riskfaktorerna varierar delvis beroende på barnets ålder, men även beroende på om barnet har en utvecklingsstörning. Det rapporteras att det finns risk för att barnen försummas vilket kan ta sig uttryck i bristande omvårdnad, att barnen inte får näringsriktig kost, bristande säkerhet i hemmet och bristande hygien. Det finns även risk för att barnen utsätts för misshandel. Studier visar en ökad risk för att barn med utvecklingsstörning utsätts för misshandel och/eller sexuella övergrepp jämfört med andra barn, oavsett om föräldrarna har en utvecklingsstörning eller inte.

Det rapporteras att barn som har föräldrar med utvecklingsstörning kan ha svårigheter med språklig och kognitiv utveckling. Dessutom förekommer det att barnen har beteendeproblem och emotionella svårigheter och det är vanligare att barnen har psykiska svårigheter, framför allt depressioner, än andra barn. Förekomsten av svårigheter samt barnens utsatthet kan påverka barnens förmåga att senare i livet fungera som föräldrar.
Hur livet gestaltar sig för de barn som har vuxit upp med föräldrar som har en utvecklingstörning finns det liten kunskap om. I en dansk studie har forskarna funnit att kvinnorna lever ett mer utsatt liv än männen. I en studie från England finns det resultat som visar att de "vuxna barnen" som själva har en utvecklingsstörning har ett mer fungerande liv jämfört med de "vuxna barn" som är normalbegåvade.

Familjernas möten med det offentliga har studerats ur ett antal olika perspektiv, såväl barnens, föräldrarnas, närståendes som professionellas. I mötet mellan familj och professionella rapporteras att det är av stor betydelse att professionella är väl förtrogna med familjens behov, att de samordnar sina insatser, att det inte är för många inblandade och att man samverkar med familjen och tar hänsyn till familjemedlemmarnas behov.

När det gäller hälsobefrämjande faktorer i familjer där föräldrarna har en utvecklingsstörning finns det resultat som visar på betydelsen av såväl informella som formella nätverk. Forskare har funnit att det är olika karaktär på stödet från det formella respektive det informella nätverket. Det informella nätverket bidrar med praktisk hjälp i vardagslivet. Det formella nätverket bidrar med sakkunskap om viktiga funktioner i samhället, kunskap om interaktion mellan föräldrar och barn samt stöd för att föräldrarna skall utveckla sin kompetens.

Flertalet studier påpekar vikten av att kartlägga föräldrarnas och familjernas levnadsomständigheter för att kunna genomföra relevanta insatser. En rad olika mer eller mindre framgångsrika insatser som prövats i familjerna har rapporterats. Som framgångsfaktorer omnämns att stödet ska utformas efter barnens och föräldrarnas behov, att det är kontinuerligt och att det genomförs under en längre tid. För att insatser skall ge god effekt bör de vara anpassade till familjens omgivning, de bör vara prestationsbaserade och omfatta förebilder, praktisk feedback, beröm och belöningar. Forskare menar även att insatserna skall utformas så att det blir möjligt för föräldrar att utvecklas utifrån sina förutsättningar.

Föräldrars erfarenhet av kontakt med psykiatrisk vård - behov, upplevelser och önskemål, en pilot studie

Ewertzon, M. and H. Forssell (1994)

Syfte med föreliggande studie var att identifiera centrala kategorier och dimensioner som beskriver: "Föräldrars, till schizofrena barn, erfarenhet av kontakten med psykiatrisk vård". Beskrivningen bygger på föräldrars erfarenhet - behov, upplevelser och önskemål, av kontakten i samband med barns sjukdom. Barn är i studien är inte ett åldersrelaterat begrepp utan beskriver förhållandet till föräldern. Den metod studien bygger på är inspirerad av "Grounded theory" och har genomförts med ostrukturerade intervjuer. Fyra intervjuer med föräldrar till barn med en psykossjukdom har analyserats. Två män och fyra kvinnor ingår i studien, de representerar erfarenhet av kontakt av psykiatrisk vård från tre sjukvårsområden inom Stockholms läns landsting och kontakten omfattar 5-16 år. Resultatet visar såväl positiv som negativ erfarenhet av kontakten. De behov i kontakten som framträder är - behov av samarbete med psykiatrisk vård, - behov av att bli omhändertagna och - behov av kontakt med människor i samma situation. De upplevelser i kontakten som framkommer är - upplevelser av samarbete, - upplevelser av bristande samarbete - upplevelser av att bli omhändertagna. - upplevelser av dåligt bemötande, upplevelser av att bli skuldbelagda och - upplevelser av bristande kontinuitet i vården. De önskemål på kontakten som framkommer är - önskemål om samarbete, - önskemål om metoder för gott omhändertagande, - önskemål om behandlingsinriktning, - önskemål om att ej bli skuldbelagda, - önskemål om anhörigutbildning och önskemål om samarbete med IFS -Intresseföreningen för schizofreni eller andra psykotiska sjukdomar.

Föräldraröster

Rausch, B. (2013)

InledningUnder många år har Föräldrautbildningen/anhörigutbildningen vid Forum Funktionshinder engagerat socionomBerit Rauschsom föreläsare för föräldrar på temat "Det finns en framtid –men vad gör man av allt det som känns tungt?". Berit har också lett kurser i konsultativt förhållningssätt som riktat sig till paramedicinsk personal inom Habilitering & Hälsa och handlett personal. Berit är själv förälder till en idag vuxen dotter med funktionsnedsättning. Utifrån sina erfarenheter såg Berit ett behov av att fördjupa kunskapen om föräldrars situation genom föräldraintervjuer för att sedan kunna använda den kunskapen som underlag för diskussion och kompetensutveckling för personalen inom Habilitering & Hälsa.Frågan om en studie diskuteradesinom ledningsgruppen för Utvecklingsforum och i FoU-rådet vid flera tillfällen. Några synpunkter som framkom var att Fokus bör ligga på riskfaktorer och kritiska punkter. Hur identifierar man dem? Hur fångar man upp? I diskussion med verksamhetschef och Utvecklingsforum kom vi överens med Berit Rausch om att genomföra projektet Föräldraröster. BakgrundBerit Rausch, initiativtagare till projektet Föräldraröster, har mångårig erfarenhet av såväl föräldragrupper som handledning av personal inom bland annat Habilitering &Hälsa. Föräldrar som får ett barn med funktionsnedsättning genomgår eninre process som till stora delar påminner om en sorgeprocessnär man utsätts för en förlust av något slag.Även i handledningssituationer blir denna process aktuell när situationer som personal har att handskas medska diskuteras. Sjukgymnaster, logopeder, arbetsterapeuter etc saknar utbildning i psykosocialt arbete.Isamtal med nyckelpersoner inom Habilitering &Hälsa har framkommit att organisationenhar intresse av att titta närmare på vad det är som gör att vissa föräldrar kommer vidare i sin process efter att ha fått ett barn med funktions-nedsättning, medan andra "fastnar" i någon av krisens faser, förnekelse, ilska eller sorg. Frågeställningen ska ses i relation till habiliteringens utbud och arbetssätt samt förhållningssätt och bemötande av personer i kris.Vi såg det också som oerhört viktigt att förmedla den unika kunskap och kompetens som föräldrar har, till all personal inom Habilitering & Hälsa.
SyfteAtt utforska vilka kritiska punkter som föräldrar beskriver för hur de tagit sig vidare/"fastnat"ochhur föräldrar utifrån sin unika situation ser på Habilitering & Hälsas utbud, insatser, förhållningssätt och bemötande.ProjektmålAtt fördjupa kunskapen om riskfaktorer,kritiska punkter och föräldrars behov av stöd i olika faser. Att presentera resultatet av intervjuernai en sammanfattande rapport. Att inspirera till kompetensutveckling hos personal när det gäller bemötande och till anpassning av habiliteringens insatser.MetodBerit Rausch har gjort en kvalitativstudie bestående av djupintervjuer med 10 föräldrapar utifrån ett semi-strukturerat frågeformulär.Anhörigutbildningen vid Forum Funktionshinder mejlade 338 föräldrar som hade anmält sig till anhörigutbildningar under hösten 2010 och ställde frågan om de var intresserade av att bli intervjuade av Berit Rausch. 36 föräldrar/föräldrapar svarade att det var intresserade. Tillsammans med Berit valdes 11 föräldrar/föräldrapar ut för intervju. Urvalet gjordes utifrån ålder och diagnos för att i möjligaste mån få en så stor spridning som möjligt.10 familjer intervjuades.ProjektorganisationProjektgruppens medlemmar har bestått av Eva Norberg, informationschef (projektägare tom januari 2012) Barbro Lagander, verksamhetschef VO Stockholm (projektägare from februari 2012), Marie Bökman, konsulent vid Forum (projektledare), Kristina Eklund, konsulent vid Forum och Barbro Sjöström Miljand, enhetschef Kris-och samtalsmottagningen, Länscenter. ProjektresultatProjektet har bidragit medett skriftligt material som beskriver riskfaktorer och olika sätt att handskas med sin livssituation, vilket kan bidra till ökad förståelsen för föräldrars olika sätt att skapa en fungerande vardag. Föräldraröster kan användas i personalutbildningen och utveckling av metoder för föräldrastöd.

Föräldraskap hos vuxna med ADHD eller Autismspektrumtillstånd - konsekvenser för barnet samt metoder för stöd Systematisk kunskapsöversikt

Janeslätt Gunnel & Hayat Roshanay Afsaneh (2015)

Det finns idag mycket kunskap om barn med neuropsykiatriska funktionsnedsättningar (NPF) som uppmärksamhetsstörning med hyperaktivitet (Attention-Deficit/Hyperactivity Disorder ADHD) och autismspektrumtillstånd (AST). Det finns också en del kännedom om vilka konsekvenser barnens svårigheter får för individ och samhälle. Det är konstaterat att ADHD och AST kvarstår i vuxen ålder, även om symtombilden och problematiken kan te sig annorlunda. Kunskapen om föräldraskap hos vuxna med ADHD eller AST är dock begränsad. Syftet med denna studie var att på ett systematiskt sätt sammanställa kunskap om barn och föräldrar när föräldrar har konstaterad ADHD, ADHD-symtom eller AST samt evidens för metoder som syftar till att ge stöd i föräldraskapet. Tre frågeställningar har styrt arbetet:
1. Vad vet man om hur barnet och föräldraskapet påverkas när förälder/rar har
konstaterad ADHD?
2. Vad vet man om hur barnet och föräldraskapet påverkas när förälder/rar har
konstaterad AST/Aspergers syndrom?
3. Vilka evidensbaserade metoder prövade på dessa målgrupper finns som kan
påverka föräldraskapet och barnet/en?

Föräldraskap och expertis. Motsättningar kring handikappade barn

Åkerström, Malin (2004)

När man möter en mamma eller pappa berättar de kanske om sitt barn. Men är barnen deras? I många andra sammanhang talas det om våra barn: skolan, sjukvården, föreningar gör också anspråk på att äga barnen. Världen kring handikappade barn sätter förhållandet på sin spets: där finns en myriad av yrken och institutioner, som hävdar att de både vet mer och vet bäst.
Experternas kunskaper är eftersökta samtidigt skall de uppvisa en måttfull och balanserad expertis; föräldrarnas kompetens skall erkännas enligt de föräldrar som intervjuas i boken. Föräldrarna till döva, hjärnskadade, diabetessjuka barn och barn med andra handikapp ger sin bild av mötet med sjukvården, daghemmet och skolan: en bild som är drastisk och dramatisk och skildrar dilemman, strider samt konkurrensen mellan med såväl professionella som andra föräldrar. Författaren hävdar emellertid att denna bild kan översättas till de flesta moderna föräldraskap: här ges den i en kondenserad och tillspetsad form.

Föräldraskap och missbruk: att ta upp frågor om föräldraskap i missbruks- och beroendevården

Socialstyrelsen (2012)

Genom svaren på de frågor som ställs om familjen är utredare och behandlare i missbruks- och beroendevården ibland de enda som känner till att barnen lever i en familj med missbruk. De behöver uppmärksamma barns och ungas situation, så att deras rättigheter, behov av information, råd och stöd tillgodoses.

Syftet med skriften är att underlätta för personal inom missbruks- och beroendevården att ta upp föräldraskap och samtala med föräldern om barns situation i utredning eller behandling. Den förespråkar ingen särskild modell eller metod i arbetet, utan tar upp förhållningssätt och innehåll i samtal om föräldraskap. Den tar även upp samarbetet med socialtjänstens barn- och ungdomsvård. Skriften riktar sig till utredare och behandlare inom socialtjänsten, hälso- och sjukvården samt övrig missbruks- och beroendevård, och kan också vara av intresse för socialtjänstens barn- och ungdomsvård. Den utgår ifrån situationen vid alkoholmissbruk eller -beroende, men kan i väsentliga delar också vara relevant vid föräldrars missbruk av narkotika eller läkemedel.

Föräldraskapande och professionell följsamhet på familjecentralers öppna förskolor – en programteori

Abrahamsson, Agneta & Bing, Vibeke (2011)

Familjecentralens verksamhetsidé för öppna förskolan på familjecentraler – formulerat som en hypotes - har utvärderats steg för steg genom samla in data på sammanlagd sex familjecentraler för att pröva hållbarheten i hypotesen. Utvärderingen visar på ett föräldraskapande bland småbarnsföräldrar genom att de lär sig om barn och föräldraskap, får möjlighet att utöka sitt sociala kontaktnät och att bara vara i en trygg omgivning där socialt stöd finns till hands. De får tillsammans med andra känna sig 'good enough' som en vanlig förälder med ett normalt barn. Professionell följsamhet utmärker personalens arbetssätt. De bedömer den "mognadsgrad" som föräldern befinner sig i för att söka stöd och anpassar sitt förhållningssätt till föräldern genom fysiskt avstånd och djup i samtalet. På så vis kan pedagogiska, sociala och psykologiska mekanismer triggas igång och förklara de resultat som föräldrar upplever för dem själva och deras barn. Artikeln avslutas med en omformulerad hypotes om öppna förskolors verksamhet på familjecentraler

Individualisering, utvärdering och utveckling av anhörigstöd

Winqvist, Marianne (2010)

Ett av Nationellt kompetenscentrum Anhörigas (NKA) prioriterade områ-
den är Individualisering, utvärdering och utveckling av anhörigstöd. Syftet
med denna kunskapsöversikt är att utifrån en litteraturgenomgång beskriva
hur anhörigstöd har utvecklats och vad forskning och utvärderingar av anhörigstöd
har givit för resultat med fokus speciellt på anhörigstödets anpassning
till anhörigas olika förutsättningar.
Frågeställningar som studeras är:
• Hur har anhörigstödet utvecklats från tiden för Anhörig 300 till idag?
• Hur kan anhörigas förutsättningar variera och vad betyder det för anhörigstödets
utformning?
• Hur ser anhörigas behov av stöd ut?
• Vad har utvärderingar av olika former av anhörigstöd givit för resultat
när det gäller anpassning till individuella behov och situationer.
Kunskapsöversikten bygger på publicerade forskningsresultat, FoUrapporter,
utredningar och offentliga skrifter från tidsperioden år 2000 till
mitten av år 2008. Endast svenska förhållanden studeras.
Översikten inleds med en genomgång utifrån Socialstyrelsens uppföljningar
av hur det nuvarande anhörigstödet har utvecklats från och med Anhörig
300 och framåt. Statens satsningar har varit stora och anhörigstödet
har utvecklats starkt, men mycket återstår att göra inom området. Kunskap
som saknas rör de mer kvalitativa aspekterna av anhörigstödet, innehållet
och om anhörigstödet motsvarar anhörigas behov.
För att problematisera vad det är för olika slags behov och situationer
som anhörigstödet skall möta görs en genomgång av den kunskap som
finns om anhörigskapets olika förutsättningar. Teman som behandlas är
olika anhörigtypologier, kön, ålder, relationens betydelse, klass och livsform,
sjukdomar och symptom, vård- och omsorgsprocessen, omfattning av vårdoch
omsorgsinsatser, hälsa, geografiskt avstånd, stad och landsbygd, närmiljöns
betydelse, socialt stöd och coping. Resultatet av denna genomgång
visar att förutsättningarna för anhörigskapet uppvisar mycket stora variationer
och att detta ställer krav på anhörigstödet om det skall skräddarsys eller
individualiseras.
Hur det är att vara anhörig och anhörigvårdare, speciellt till personer med
demenssjukdomar, finns det mycket kunskap om. I texten beskrivs anhöri-10
gas motiv till att hjälpa eller inte hjälpa, anhörigas upplevelser och dilemman
samt anhörigas behov av stöd. Positiva och negativa upplevelser kan förekomma
samtidigt och kanske till och med förutsätter varandra. Återkommande
inom forskningen beskrivs känslomässiga och existentiella upplevelserna
som svåra, tillsammans med bundenhet och fysisk trötthet. Studier
visar även att anhöriga kan skatta sina liv i positiva termer och att det är
tillfredsställande att kunna hjälpa. Anhöriga kan ha svårt att identifiera egna
stödbehov, men insatser som efterfrågas är avlösning (flexibel och med kort
varsel), information och kunskap, någon att tala med, att bli bekräftad, uppskattad
och sedd samt ekonomisk ersättning. Att vara anhörig i samband
med vårdplaneringar och biståndsbedömningar, att vara anhörig till någon
som bor på särskilt boende samt att vara anhörig i anslutning till vård i livets
slutskede kan innebära speciella krav och förväntningar. En presentation ges
därför av den kunskap som vi har av att vara anhörig i dessa specifika situationer.

Genomgången avslutas med en redovisning av de utvärderingar som har
gjorts av olika former av anhörigstöd som avlösning i form av korttidsvård
och växelvård, dagverksamhet, kombination av dag- och nattavlösning och
avlösning i hemmet, anhöriggrupper, utbildning av anhöriga, utbildning av
personal, anhörigcentraler och träffpunkter, må bra-aktiviteter, enskilda
samtal samt övrigt stöd. De erfarenheter som har dragits av att använda
instrumentet COAT för planering, uppföljning och utvärdering av stöd till
anhöriga redovisas samt resultaten från de två svenska kontrollerade interventionsstudierna
om anhörigstöd som finns där resultaten visar att utbildning
och stödgrupper för anhöriga har positiva effekter.
Sammanfattningsvis kan konstateras att det är svårt att få grepp om kunskapsläget
inom området eftersom dokumentation och systematiska uppföljningar
av befintliga verksamheter när det gäller innehåll och kvalitet,
vilka anhöriga verksamheterna når och till vilken nytta, i stor utsträckning
saknas. Området är också behäftat med en del metodologiska svårigheter
som bland annat medför att det är svårt att jämföra resultaten mellan olika
studier. Mest kunskap har vi om sammanboende anhörigas situation, oftast
makar och makor och dessutom anhöriga till personer med demenssjukdomar.
Grovt uttryckt kan sägas att det anhörigstöd som ges är bra för många
anhöriga, men att vi inte kan uttala oss om vilka dimensioner som är bra för
vilka anhöriga. Likaså vet vi inte för vem det befintliga anhörigstödet kanske
inte passar. Kopplingen mellan anhörigas olika upplevelser av sin situation
och målet med anhörigstödet kan också utvecklas.
Som en (ofta outtalad) röd tråd i de texter som ligger till grund för kunskapsöversikten
går samtalets eller mötets betydelse. Inom ramen för ett av 11
NKA:s lärande nätverk konstateras också att det enskilda samtalet kanske är
vårt mest underskattade anhörigstöd. Samtalet som stödform har dock inte
lyfts fram i någon större utsträckning inom forskning och utvärderingar
vilket innebär att mycket av innehållet i dagens anhörigstöd är osynliggjort.
Likaså saknar vi dokumenterad kunskap om det som kan benämnas som
osynligt stöd det vill säga de mer individbaserade kvalitativa dimensionerna
som kan innebära att anhöriga upplever sig sedda, känner sig trygga, har
förtroende för personal etc. Det är i samtal och möten som grunden för
detta stöd läggs.

Individualisering, utvärdering och utveckling av anhörigstöd. Kunskapsöversikt 2010:2.

Winqvist M. (2010)

Ett av Nationellt kompetenscentrum Anhörigas (NKA) prioriterade områ-
den är Individualisering, utvärdering och utveckling av anhörigstöd. Syftet
med denna kunskapsöversikt är att utifrån en litteraturgenomgång beskriva
hur anhörigstöd har utvecklats och vad forskning och utvärderingar av anhörigstöd
har givit för resultat med fokus speciellt på anhörigstödets anpassning
till anhörigas olika förutsättningar.
Frågeställningar som studeras är:
• Hur har anhörigstödet utvecklats från tiden för Anhörig 300 till idag?
• Hur kan anhörigas förutsättningar variera och vad betyder det för anhörigstödets
utformning?
• Hur ser anhörigas behov av stöd ut?
• Vad har utvärderingar av olika former av anhörigstöd givit för resultat
när det gäller anpassning till individuella behov och situationer.
Kunskapsöversikten bygger på publicerade forskningsresultat, FoUrapporter,
utredningar och offentliga skrifter från tidsperioden år 2000 till
mitten av år 2008. Endast svenska förhållanden studeras.
Översikten inleds med en genomgång utifrån Socialstyrelsens uppföljningar
av hur det nuvarande anhörigstödet har utvecklats från och med Anhörig
300 och framåt. Statens satsningar har varit stora och anhörigstödet
har utvecklats starkt, men mycket återstår att göra inom området. Kunskap
som saknas rör de mer kvalitativa aspekterna av anhörigstödet, innehållet
och om anhörigstödet motsvarar anhörigas behov.
För att problematisera vad det är för olika slags behov och situationer
som anhörigstödet skall möta görs en genomgång av den kunskap som
finns om anhörigskapets olika förutsättningar. Teman som behandlas är
olika anhörigtypologier, kön, ålder, relationens betydelse, klass och livsform,
sjukdomar och symptom, vård- och omsorgsprocessen, omfattning av vårdoch
omsorgsinsatser, hälsa, geografiskt avstånd, stad och landsbygd, närmiljöns
betydelse, socialt stöd och coping. Resultatet av denna genomgång
visar att förutsättningarna för anhörigskapet uppvisar mycket stora variationer
och att detta ställer krav på anhörigstödet om det skall skräddarsys eller
individualiseras.
Hur det är att vara anhörig och anhörigvårdare, speciellt till personer med
demenssjukdomar, finns det mycket kunskap om. I texten beskrivs anhöri-
10
gas motiv till att hjälpa eller inte hjälpa, anhörigas upplevelser och dilemman
samt anhörigas behov av stöd. Positiva och negativa upplevelser kan förekomma
samtidigt och kanske till och med förutsätter varandra. Återkommande
inom forskningen beskrivs känslomässiga och existentiella upplevelserna
som svåra, tillsammans med bundenhet och fysisk trötthet. Studier
visar även att anhöriga kan skatta sina liv i positiva termer och att det är
tillfredsställande att kunna hjälpa. Anhöriga kan ha svårt att identifiera egna
stödbehov, men insatser som efterfrågas är avlösning (flexibel och med kort
varsel), information och kunskap, någon att tala med, att bli bekräftad, uppskattad
och sedd samt ekonomisk ersättning. Att vara anhörig i samband
med vårdplaneringar och biståndsbedömningar, att vara anhörig till någon
som bor på särskilt boende samt att vara anhörig i anslutning till vård i livets
slutskede kan innebära speciella krav och förväntningar. En presentation ges
därför av den kunskap som vi har av att vara anhörig i dessa specifika situationer.

Genomgången avslutas med en redovisning av de utvärderingar som har
gjorts av olika former av anhörigstöd som avlösning i form av korttidsvård
och växelvård, dagverksamhet, kombination av dag- och nattavlösning och
avlösning i hemmet, anhöriggrupper, utbildning av anhöriga, utbildning av
personal, anhörigcentraler och träffpunkter, må bra-aktiviteter, enskilda
samtal samt övrigt stöd. De erfarenheter som har dragits av att använda
instrumentet COAT för planering, uppföljning och utvärdering av stöd till
anhöriga redovisas samt resultaten från de två svenska kontrollerade interventionsstudierna
om anhörigstöd som finns där resultaten visar att utbildning
och stödgrupper för anhöriga har positiva effekter.
Sammanfattningsvis kan konstateras att det är svårt att få grepp om kunskapsläget
inom området eftersom dokumentation och systematiska uppföljningar
av befintliga verksamheter när det gäller innehåll och kvalitet,
vilka anhöriga verksamheterna når och till vilken nytta, i stor utsträckning
saknas. Området är också behäftat med en del metodologiska svårigheter
som bland annat medför att det är svårt att jämföra resultaten mellan olika
studier. Mest kunskap har vi om sammanboende anhörigas situation, oftast
makar och makor och dessutom anhöriga till personer med demenssjukdomar.
Grovt uttryckt kan sägas att det anhörigstöd som ges är bra för många
anhöriga, men att vi inte kan uttala oss om vilka dimensioner som är bra för
vilka anhöriga. Likaså vet vi inte för vem det befintliga anhörigstödet kanske
inte passar. Kopplingen mellan anhörigas olika upplevelser av sin situation
och målet med anhörigstödet kan också utvecklas.
Som en (ofta outtalad) röd tråd i de texter som ligger till grund för kunskapsöversikten
går samtalets eller mötets betydelse. Inom ramen för ett av
11
NKA:s lärande nätverk konstateras också att det enskilda samtalet kanske är
vårt mest underskattade anhörigstöd. Samtalet som stödform har dock inte
lyfts fram i någon större utsträckning inom forskning och utvärderingar
vilket innebär att mycket av innehållet i dagens anhörigstöd är osynliggjort.
Likaså saknar vi dokumenterad kunskap om det som kan benämnas som
osynligt stöd det vill säga de mer individbaserade kvalitativa dimensionerna
som kan innebära att anhöriga upplever sig sedda, känner sig trygga, har
förtroende för personal etc. Det är i samtal och möten som grunden för
detta stöd läggs.

Individualisering, utvärdering och utveckling av anhörigstöd. Uppdaterad version 2016:4

Winqvist Marianne (2016)

Ett av Nationellt kompetenscentrum Anhörigas (Nka) prioriterade områden har varit Individualisering, utvärdering och utveckling av anhörigstöd. Syftet med denna kunskapsöversikt är att utifrån litteraturgenomgångar beskriva hur anhörigstöd för anhöriga som ger omsorg till äldre personer, har utvecklats och vad forskning och utvärderingar av anhörigstöd har givit för resultat med fokus speciellt på anhörigstödets anpassning till anhörigas olika förutsättningar. Översikten är en uppdaterad version av en rapport med samma namn som kom ut år 2010.
Frågeställningar som studerats är:
 Hur har anhörigstödet utvecklats från tiden för Anhörig 300 till idag?
 Hur kan anhörigas förutsättningar variera och vad betyder det för anhörigstödets
utformning?
 Hur ser anhörigas behov av stöd ut?
 Vad har utvärderingar av olika former av anhörigstöd givit för resultat när
det gäller anpassning till individuella behov och situationer. Kunskapsöversikten bygger på publicerade forskningsresultat, FoU-rapporter, utredningar och offentliga skrifter från tidsperioden år 2000 till mitten december år 2015. Endast svenska förhållanden studeras.Översikten inleds med en genomgång utifrån Socialstyrelsens uppföljningar av hur det nuvarande anhörigstödet har utvecklats från och med Anhörig 300 och framåt. Statens satsningar har varit stora och anhörigstödet har utvecklats starkt, men mycket återstår att göra inom området. Kunskap som saknas rör de mer kvalitativa aspekterna av anhörigstödet, innehållet och om anhörigstödet motsvarar anhörigas behov. För att problematisera vad det är för olika slags behov och situationer som anhörigstödet skall möta görs en genomgång av den kunskap som finns om anhörigskapets olika förutsättningar. Teman som behandlas är olika anhörigtypologier, kön, ålder, relationens betydelse, klass och livsform, sjukdomar och symptom, vård- och omsorgsprocessen, omfattning av vård- och omsorgsinsatser, hälsa, geografiskt avstånd, stad och landsbygd, närmiljöns betydelse, socialt stöd och coping. Resultatet av denna genomgång visar att förutsättningarna för anhörigskapet uppvisar mycket stora variationer och att detta ställer krav på anhörigstödet om det skall skräddarsys eller individualiseras. Hur det är att vara anhörig som ger omsorg, speciellt till personer med demenssjukdomar, finns det mycket kunskap om. I texten beskrivs anhörigas motiv till att hjälpa eller inte hjälpa, anhörigas upplevelser och dilemman samt anhörigas behov av stöd. Positiva och negativa upplevelser kan förekomma samtidigt och kanske till och med förutsätter varandra. Återkommande inom forskning beskrivs känslomässiga och existentiella upplevelser som svåra, tillsammans med bundenhet och fysisk trötthet. Studier visar även att anhöriga kan skatta sina liv i positiva termer och att det är tillfredsställande att kunna hjälpa. Anhöriga kan ha svårt att identifiera egna stödbehov, men insatser som efterfrågas är avlösning (flexibelt och lättillgängligt), information och kunskap, någon att tala med (att bli bekräftad, uppskattad och sedd) samt ekonomisk ersättning. Att vara anhörig i samband med vårdplaneringar och biståndsbedömningar, att vara anhörig till någon som bor på särskilt boende samt att vara anhörig i anslutning till vård i livets slutskede kan innebära speciella krav och förväntningar. En presentation ges därför av kunskap om att vara anhörig i dessa specifika situationer. Genomgången avslutas med en redovisning av de utvärderingar som har gjorts av olika former av anhörigstöd som avlösning i form av korttidsvård och växelvård, dagverksamhet, kombination av dag- och nattavlösning och avlösning i hemmet, anhöriggrupper, utbildning av anhöriga, utbildning av personal, anhörigcentraler och träffpunkter, "må bra-aktiviteter", enskilda samtal samt övrigt stöd. De erfarenheter som har dragits av att använda instrumentet COAT för planering, uppföljning och utvärdering av stöd till anhöriga
redovisas samt resultaten från svenska kontrollerade interventionsstudier om anhörigstöd där resultaten visar att utbildning och stödgrupper för anhöriga har positiva effekter. Sammanfattningsvis kan konstateras att det är svårt att få grepp om kunskapsläget inom området anhörigstöd eftersom dokumentation och systematiska uppföljningar av befintliga verksamheter när det gäller innehåll och kvalitet, vilka anhöriga verksamheterna når och till vilken nytta, i stor utsträckning saknas. Området är också behäftat med en del metodologiska svårigheter som bland annat medför att det är svårt att jämföra resultaten mellan olika studier. Grovt uttryckt kan sägas att det anhörigstöd som ges är bra för
många anhöriga, men att det är svårt att uttala vilka dimensioner som är bra för vilka anhöriga. Likaså vet vi inte för vem det befintliga anhörigstödet kanske inte passar. Kopplingen mellan anhörigas olika upplevelser av sin situation och målet med anhörigstödet kan utvecklas. I kunskapsöversikten diskuteras också avgränsningar när det gäller vad som skall kallas för anhörigstöd samt allmänt behovet av definitioner av använda ord och begrepp.

Informal and formal home-care use among older adults in Europe: Can cross-national differences be explained by societal context and composition?

Suanet, B. (2012)

Cross-national comparisons employed welfare state classifications to explain differences in care use in the European older population. Yet these classifications do not cover all care-related societal characteristics and limit our understanding of which specific societal characteristics are most important. Using the Survey of Health, Ageing and Retirement (second wave, 2006–07), the effect of societal determinants relating to culture, welfare state context and socio-economic and demographic composition on informal and formal care use of older adults in 11 European countries was studied. Multinomial multi-level regression analyses showed that, in addition to individual determinants, societal determinants are salient for understanding care use. In countries with fewer home-based services, less residential care, more informal care support and women working full time, older adults are more likely to receive informal care only. Older adults are more likely to receive only formal home care or a combination of formal and informal care in countries with more extensive welfare state arrangements (i.e. more home-based services, higher pension generosity), whereas the odds of receiving a combination of informal and formal care are also larger in countries that specify a legal obligation to care for parents. We tentatively conclude that the incorporation of societal determinants rather than commonly used welfare state classifications results in more understanding of the societal conditions that determine older adults' care use.

Informal carers: Who takes care of them? Policy Brief April 2010

Hoffman, F. and R. Rodriguez (2010)

Until recently, informal care (provided by relatives and friends) has been overlooked by policy-makers in the context of long-term care for dependent older people. Driven by concerns about the fiscal sustainability of long-term care services and by more self-conscious and demanding carers' movements across countries, informal care has been brought into the limelight.
Data on carers is still relatively scarce due in part to the nature of the care itself as it is often provided informally at home. In view of this, what do we know about informal carers and who benefits from them? Which country differences exist? Which policies are set in place to support them? This Policy Brief tries to shed light on these issues by using available data from (inter)national sources as well as qualitative information gathered in our recent publication "Facts and Figures on Long-term Care -- Europe and North America". It seeks to increase knowledge on informal carers and discuss some of the implications surrounding social policies that impact them. The analysis is very much policy-oriented and takes a comparative view, focusing mostly on the wider Europe.

Informal caring-time and caregiver satisfaction

Marcén, M. and J. A. Molina (2012)

This paper examines the role of care decision processes on informal caring-time choices. We focus on three care decisions: the caregiver's own decision, a family decision and a recipient request. Results show that informal caregivers, engaged in care activities as a result of a family decision, are more likely to devote more than 5 h to care activities, even after allowing for endogeneity. Our findings are robust to controlling for a large number of socio-demographic characteristics, including care recipient and caregiver characteristics. Supplemental analysis, developed to explore whether care arrangements are related to informal caregiver's satisfaction, indicates that the family decision heavily penalizes informal caregivers. Given the importance of informal care activities in reducing health care costs, our findings imply that care decision processes should be taken into consideration when formulating health care policies.

Informal elderly care and women´s labour force participation across Europe.

Viitanen, T. (2005)

This paper uses the European Community Household Panel (ECHP) to analyze the relationship between the dynamics of labour force participation and informal care to the elderly for a sample of women aged 20-59 across 13 European countries. The analysis has two focal points: the relative contributions of state dependence as well as observed and unobserved heterogeneity in explaining the dynamics in women's labour force participation and the existence and consequences of non-random attrition from the ECHP. The results indicate positive state dependence in labour force participation in all 13 EU countries used in the analysis. The share of unobserved heterogeneity accounts for between 45% and 86% of the total variation in labour force participation. Informal care-giving is found to have a significant, negative impact on the probability of employment only in Germany. Nevertheless, analysis of different sub-groups indicates that the impact is largest for middle-aged women and also for single women in several EU countries.

Informal home caregiving in a gender perspective: A selected literature review

Lindqvist, G., Håkansson, A., & Petersson, K. (2004)

An informal home caregiver is a person (family member or friends) who takes care of or participates to some degree in the care of a person in the home. This study provides a selected review of literature published 1982–2003 of the informal home caregiving from a gender perspective. A computer-aided search using MEDLINE and CINAHL was carried out. The final number of articles was 45. The main findings were that there are differences in informal caregiving due to gender. Gender differences were found in categories such as affected lifeworld, health problems, managing ability and caregivers experience from caring for a care receiver with different diseases. It is of importance that the informal caregiver is involved in the planning and that a planning act takes place. If society involves the informal home caregiver we can avoid the caregiver being the hidden victim of illness and disability. It is known that burdensome caregiving can result in encroachment due to exhaustion.

Information and Communication Technology - mediated support for working carers of older people

Andersson, Stefan (2017)

Avhandling

Despite a growing awareness of the importance of support for carers who combine paid work with care of an older relative, so called 'working carers', there remains a lack of empirical knowledge about more innovative ways to support this largest group of carers of older people. Information and Communication Technologies (ICTs) are becoming more readily available. As a result, ICTs have made it feasible to offer working carers more targeted forms of support.

This thesis aimed to gain an understanding about support for working carers of older people via the use of ICT.

An integrative literature review was conducted to explore and evaluate the current evidence base concerning the use of ICT-mediated support for working carers (I). Content analysis of qualitative data was used to describe nursing and support staff's experiences of using web-based ICTs for information, e-learning and support of working carers (II). Content analysis was also used to describe working carers' experiences of having access to a web-based family care support network provided by the municipality (III). Descriptive statistical methods were used to analyse survey data which focused on the types of support received and how they were valued by working carers, with a focus on ICT support (IV).

Findings highlighted that ICT mediated support provided working carers with the means to manage their caring situation, via the provision of information, e-learning and education, in addition to practical assistance and emotional and/or physical respite from caregiving. In this way, working carers felt empowered in their caring situation by feeling more competent and prepared in their caring role and by strengthening their self-efficacy and positive self-appraisal of their situation. Carers were provided channels to share their frustrations and burdens via forums for emotional and social support between working carers, caring professionals, and other peer carers. This led to working carers feeling less burdened by their caregiving role and it helped promote their wellbeing. Further, carers were helped in some instances to balance work and care. As a result caregiving activities conflicting with work obligations were then lessened.

In contrast, when ICT mediated support was neither provided in a timely fashion or in accordance with individual carers' needs and preferences, then it was perceived by them to be unimportant. Cross-sectional data revealed that take-up of support services was low suggesting that unmet support needs may be inflated by work-care conflicts. For carers with lower digital skills, the additional time needed to learn to use ICTs was a further barrier.

Overall, ICT mediated support acted as a complementary form of support for working carers. Measures to overcome dis-empowering aspects of this innovative from of support are needed to avoid working carers' deprioritizing their own support needs and also to avoid possible digital exclusion from the current information society.

Informell och formell vård hos äldre personer i ordinärt boende – förändringar och samspel över tid 2001-2015 i SNAC projektet

Anders Wimo, Ron Handels, Sölve Elmståhl, Cecilia Fagerström, Laura Fratiglioni, Ulrika Isaksson, Ole Larsen, Johan Sanmartin Berglund, Britt-Marie Sjölund, Anders Sköldunger, Maria Wahlberg (2020)

Anhöriga och andra närståendes informella insatser utgör en stor del av de samlade insatserna hos äldre personer. Resultat från olika undersökningar tyder på att de närståendes insatser är 2-3 gånger så omfattande som den formella vården och omsorgen i det ordinära boendet (i Sverige i huvudsak som hemtjänst) och hos demenssjuka personer är de närståendes insatser än mer omfattande.
Från SNAC projektet har tidigare en vetenskaplig artikel publicerats som analyserar s k baslinjedata från perioden 2001-2003. Förutom att bekräfta att de närståendes insatser är mycket mer omfattande än hemtjänstens, så visades också att det finns risk att felskatta omfattningen om inte befolkningsbaserade data (t ex SNAC) används. Resultatet visade också att närståendes insatser till personer med demenssjukdom också var mer omfattande jämfört med ej demenssjuka.

Socialdepartementet gav SNAC i uppdrag att följa upp resultatet från den studien och
analysera tidstrender i samspelet mellan informell och formell vård hos personer äldre än 80 år i ordinärt boende, med eller utan kognitiv funktionsnedsättning, i SNAC-projektet, något som resulterat i denna rapport.

In-home online support for caregivers of survivors of stroke: a feasibility study.

Pierce LL, Steiner V, Govoni AL (2002)

The primary aim of this feasibility study was to determine if caregivers (n = 5) were willing and able to use Caring-Web, a Web-based intervention for support, from their home Internet connection for 3 months. The caregivers' perceived health and satisfaction with caring, as well as the care recipients' use of healthcare services, were recorded. The experience of caring (problems and successes) was examined. Data were collected via weekly online surveys and e-mail discussions. Descriptive analyses revealed that the 3 caregivers who completed the study were satisfied with Caring-Web. Caregivers rated their health as average to excellent and their satisfaction with caring as good. Care recipients averaged 6 calls/visits to a medical office with one emergency room visit and subsequent hospitalization. Major problems for the caregivers included dealing with medical conditions about which they lacked knowledge. Content analysis of the e-mail discussions revealed that subjects sought information about medical conditions related to caring for the survivor of the stroke. Major successes for the caregivers involved communicating effectively with the care recipient and returning to everyday life with family and friends.

Inifrån utanförskapet. Om att vara annorlunda och delaktig

Gustavsson, Anders (2001)

Den här boken handlar om förutsättningarna för delaktighet och integration av människor som uppfattas som annorlunda eller avvikande. Författaren försöker vända på det traditionella synsättet att det är "vi" som integrerar "dem". För att istället låta de berörda själva komma till tals. En viktig erfarenhet från den undersökningen som boken bygger på är i grund och botten att våra möjligheter att förstå integrationen kräver att vi tar reda på hur den uppfattas av dem det gäller.
Huvudpersonerna är vad man brukar kalla lindrigt utvecklingsstörda. De tillhör "den första integreringsgenerationen". De har växt upp under den tid som integrering och normalisering varit den officiella handikappolitiken i Sverige. Boken handlar om hur vardagstillvaron gestaltar sig för dem. De berättar om ett utanförskap som vi känner igen från andra likartade situationer. Samtidigt uppvisar de personer som boken handlar om också en anmärkningsvärd tilltro till sin rätt att vara delaktiga i alla livssammanhang. Deras tilltro tycks bland annat bygga på ett stöd som de fått från andra med likartade erfarenheter och perspektiv på intellektuella

Initial Findings on Preventive Intervention for Families with Parental Affective Disorders

Beardslee, W.R., Hoke, L., Wheelock, I., Rothberg, P.C., van de Velde, P., & Swatling, S. (1992)

Abstract
OBJECTIVE:
The purpose of this study was to develop a clinician-based cognitive, psychoeducational, preventive intervention for families with parental affective disorder that would be suitable to widespread use, test its feasibility and safety, and define the areas affected by the intervention. The intervention was designed to increase understanding of parental illness and resilience in the children.
METHOD:
The authors studied the first seven families (14 parents) to receive the intervention. Enrollment criteria included affective disorder during the preceding year in at least one parent, presence of at least one child between the ages of 8 and 14 years who was not psychiatrically ill at the time of participation, and willingness to participate in the research study. The intervention consisted of parent, child, and family sessions. Assessment included semistructured interviews with parents about affective disorders, standard ratings of marital satisfaction and therapeutic alliance, and a recently developed semistructured interview to assess response to the intervention.
RESULTS:
Overall satisfaction with the intervention was rated moderate to high by parents. No harm was reported. Ten of 14 parent subjects reported five or more behavior and attitude changes that they attributed to the intervention. The most frequent behavior and attitudinal changes reported were increased discussion of the illness and related issues and increased understanding of information about affective illness.
CONCLUSIONS:
The authors conclude that the intervention is safe and feasible in families with parental affective disorder.

Inledning till: 2008 Standards for bereavement Care in the UK, Nationella riktlinjer/standarder för sörjandestöd i Storbritannien och Nordirland. Översättning: Grimby, A. Johansson, Å K.

Grimby, A., & Johansson, Å. K. (2009)

De nationella, grundläggande riktlinjerna för sörjandestöd i U.K.
Behovet
Förlust av en nära anhörig är oftast den mest förödande upplevelsen i ens liv. Även om
tillvaron aldrig mer blir sig lik, finner de flesta ett sätt att anpassa sig till förlusten. Det är
normalt och naturligt att sörja. För vissa människor blir det emellertid alltför svårt eller
traumatiskt utan extra stöd.
Vid sådana tillfällen, när människor är som mest sårbara, kan organisationer med
välutvecklat och utbildat sörjandestöd erbjuda en rad lämpliga och professionella
stödformer. För första gången i U.K. finns nu en uppsättning riksomfattande, godkända
riktlinjer eller normer som garanterar att detta stöd är tryggt, lämpligt och etiskt.
Riktlinjerna och Principerna
Riktlinjerna för sörjandestöd (The Bereavement Care Standards) i detta dokument är
under ständig bearbetning. De är generellt formulerade och inte några föreskrifter. De
behöver anpassas till individuella behov och omständigheter samt tillgång till lokala
stödmöjligheter. Nyckeln till användningen av riktlinjerna utgörs av etiska principer (The
set of Ethical Principles) som kan användas universellt, oavsett om stödet är riktat till en
enskild individ eller en grupp. Dessa principer hjälper till att ange kvaliteten på det
sörjandestöd som erbjuds.
Riktlinjerna och Principerna avser att:
• Ge ett nationellt erkännande för det ovärderliga stöd som tillhandahålls av redan
befintliga sörjandestödsgrupper.
• Stärka förtroendet bland användare och finansiärer genom att sörjandestödet
arbetar efter en nationell standard.
Riktlinjer för sörjandestödet från "UK Council" (Rådet i U.K.)
Denna organisation upprättades för att föra arbetet med Riktlinjerna framåt. Riktlinjerna
är inte huggna i sten för att gälla för all framtid; därför kommer Rådet att svara för att de
ständigt revideras i takt med att nya erfarenheter görs.
Medlemskap i Rådet kommer från
• de fyra organisationerna i "The National Bereavement Consortium"
• enskilda och serviceorganisationer från hela U.K.
• personer med uttalat intresse för sörjandestöd i U.K.
En viktig utgångspunkt är att alla medlemmar i Rådet skriver under på de etiska
principerna.

Innan man vet

Elisabet O Klint (2020)

"Jag drömmer om att jag pratar för oss båda och vi lyssnar tillsammans på det jag berättar. Då ser jag honom le, skratta och gestikulera för att visa sina känslor. Hade jag kunnat göra honom lyckligare, gladare och tryggare? Eller, var han kanske lycklig, och inom sig tacksam, att jag fanns där hela tiden? Vilka av hans handlingar var egentligen hans, och vilka var ett resultat av sjukdom?"

Innan man vet är en finstämd skildring av en kvinnas dilemma i kärlek och i sorg. I denna självbiografiska berättelse får vi följa Elisabet O Klint genom dagboksanteckningar som gestaltar livet såsom det tedde sig. I hopp om att förstå, och förbättra. Gripande åskådliggör hon den livssituation som uppstod när hennes man drabbades av ALS och frontallobsdemens, två livshotande sjukdomar utan botemedel.

Insatser för personer med psykiska funktionsnedsättningar. Kommunernas användning av stimulansbidragen 2007-2010

Socialstyrelsen (2011)

Rättstillämpningen
Den nya vårdformen som trädde i kraft den 1 september 2008 tycks fungera bättre för rättspsykiatrins patienter än för patienter inom den psykiatriska tvångsvården. Patienter inom rättspsykiatrin har längre vårdtider och får insatser som är mer anpassade efter individuella behov. Förutsättningarna för att slussa ut personer till öppen rättspsykiatrisk vård är på så sätt bättre jämfört med dem som förs över till öppen psykiatrisk tvångsvård. De sistnämnda patienterna har i regel kortare vårdtid än fyra veckor och behandlas för en psykiatrisk diagnos i ett akut skede. Behandlingsinsatserna innebär oftast att symtom medicineras.

Chefsöverläkare och annan personal verksamma inom sluten psykiatrisk tvångsvård har relativt kort tid på sig för att bedöma vad som är adekvata insatser för en patient som ska föras över till öppen psykiatrisk tvångsvård och för att upprätta en samordnad vårdplan. I nästan hälften av de fall när patienter överförts till öppen psykiatrisk tvångsvård har kommunerna saknat kännedom om detta. Det beror i regel på att chefsöverläkaren bedömt att patienterna enbart behövt insatser från landstinget med krav på medicinering och regelbunden kontakt med den öppna psykiatriska mottagningen. Någon med kommunen samordnad vårdplan har då inte upprättats. Socialstyrelsen avser att uppmärksamma den sittande Psykiatriutredningen (S2008:98) på de brister i lagstiftningens tillämpning som myndigheten sett när det gäller öppen psykiatrisk tvångsvård.

Otillräcklig kunskap om effekten för den enskilde
En uppföljning av det slag som nu gjorts ger föga kunskap om vårdformens effekter för den enskilde, dvs. om den motsvarar den enskildes förväntningar och bidrar till ökad livskvalitet. Återkommande uppföljningar om hur människor med psykiska funktionsnedsättningar bor och om de har meningsfull sysselsättning saknas. Det saknas också undersökningar om hur de anser sig bemötta inom såväl vård och omsorg som samhället i övrigt tillhandahåller. Socialstyrelsen anser att bättre och mer ingående kunskap om livssituationen för personer med psykiska funktionsnedsättningar förutsätter en intensifierad metodutveckling för att ta fram, bearbeta och analysera data om socialtjänstens effekter för klienter.

Statsbidraget och kommunernas arbete
Socialstyrelsen har under åren 2007 - 2010 förmedlat sammanlagt 520 miljoner kronor i statsbidrag till kommunerna för att stimulera dem att förbättra sina sociala insatser för de personer med psykisk funktionsnedsättning som vårdas i öppen tvångsvård.

Förändringsarbete tar tid att förankra och genomföra om effekten ska bli varaktig. Detta framgår av det material Socialstyrelsen haft tillgång till under arbetet med uppföljningen. Kommunerna har också olika förutsättningar att använda statsbidraget för de ändamål för vilka det är avsett. Det handlar t.ex. om kommunernas kännedom om vilka insatser som fungerar och som motsvarar de enskildas behov och vilka förbättringsområden som bör prioriteras och som det finns beredskap för.

Mål och måluppfyllelse
Regeringen har satt upp fem mål för statsbidraget.

Mål 1.
Det ska finnas effektiva och formaliserade strukturer för samarbete mellan kommun och landsting kring personer som varit föremål för åtgärder inom den psykiatriska tvångsvården.

Sedan januari 2010 då bestämmelsen om att kommunen ska ingå formaliserade, övergripande överenskommelser med landstinget om samarbete i fråga om personer med psykisk funktionsnedsättning har över hälften av kommunerna träffat sådana överenskommelser med respektive landsting. Socialstyrelsen anser att samverkan mellan kommuner och landsting utvecklas positivt och bedömer att mål 1 har goda förutsättningar att uppnås när det gäller formaliserade och övergripande strukturer för samarbete. Men för att målet ska vara uppnått ska samverkansstrukturerna också vara effektiva. Kommuner och landsting behöver fortsätta arbetet med gemensamma policydokument, avtal och överenskommelser.

Mål 2.
Det ska finnas kunskap om de behov personer med psykisk funktionsnedsättning har så att utbyggnaden av verksamheter ges förutsättningar att motsvara målgruppens behov av stödinsatser.

Ett fåtal kommuner har inventerat målgruppen och dess behov på ett heltäckande sätt. De flesta kommuner och stadsdelar har på ett tidigt stadium undersökt hur många personer som kan förväntas bli föremål för den nya vårdformen. Det är emellertid betydligt fler personer som förts över till öppen vårdform än vad kommunerna känt till. Socialstyrelsen anser att kommuner i samverkan med respektive landsting kontinuerligt behöver inventera målgruppen och dess behov av stödinsatser för att mål 2 ska uppnås.

Mål 3.
Det ska finnas ett varierat utbud av flexibla och individanpassade lösningar (t.ex. boende och sysselsättning) som kan tillgodose behovet för de personer som får den nya vårdformen.

Kommuner och stadsdelar har uppmärksammat i allt högre grad boende och sysselsättningsområdet. I vilken utsträckning målet om flexibla och individanpassade lösningar är uppfyllt är svårt att bedöma. I vilken mån mål 3 uppnås får bedömas utifrån alla de satsningar som gjorts och görs inom psykiatriområdet.

Mål 4.
Personalen ska ha tillgång till relevant vägledning, handledning och fortbildning

Kommunerna har i hög grad satsat på kompetensutveckling för att utveckla sina arbetsmetoder och för att kunna tillgodose enskildas behov på ett professionellt sätt. Socialstyrelsen bedömer att mål 4 har goda förutsättningar att uppnås.

Mål 5.
Återintagningar ska inte bero på att kommunerna har otillräckliga stödinsatser

Mål 5 är problematiskt att följa upp då det oftast är flera, och ofta komplexa orsaker som ligger till grund för återintagningar. Kommuner och landsting är också i vissa avseenden oeniga om både hur bestämmelserna om överföring till öppen psykiatrisk tvångsvård ska tolkas och när återintagningar ska ske. Socialstyrelsen anser att det är svårt att bedöma om återintagningarna endast är en följd av kommunernas bristande sociala insatser. Det är oftast flera aktörer inblandade, förutom kommunen, öppenvårdsmottagningar, sjukvårdsinrättning och den enskilde samt i vissa fall också beroendemottagningar.

Insatser mot psykiska problem hos barn och ungdomar. Statens offentliga utredningar

SOU 1998:31 (1998)

Utredningen har anlagt ett folkhälsoperspektiv på barns och ungdomars psykiska hälsa. En grundläggande funktion för varje samhälle är att skapa gynnsamma förhållanden för det uppväxande släktet. Föräldrarna ansvarar för att barnet får sina behov av omvårdnad, trygghet och god fostran tillgodosedda. Samhällets stöd och vård skall komplettera föräldrarnas insatser, och ske i samspel med dem. Vi konstaterar att insatser utvecklas. Vi fokuserar två generella verksamheter som har stor betydelse och potential i folkhälsoarbetet: mödra- och barnhälsovården samt skolans elevvård.

Insatser till barn och unga som lever i familjer med missbruks- eller beroendeproblem: en kunskapsöversikt

Rehnman, Jenny & Andrée Löfholm, Cecilia (2009)

Resultatet visar att det för närvarande inte finns något tillförlitligt underlag för insatser till barn och unga med föräldrar som har missbruksproblem. När det gäller insatser till barn och unga med föräldrar som har någon psykisk funktionsnedsättning saknas också vetenskapligt stöd för att uttala sig om hur effektiva insatserna är. Det finns dock en utvärdering som bedöms ha medelgod tillförlitlighet, och den gäller insatsen Beardslees familjeintervention som är riktad till familjer där någon av föräldrarna har en depression. Utvärderingen av Beardslees familjeintervention visade att insatsen inte var mer effektiv än den föreläsningsinsats som den jämfördes med.

Effekterna av familjeinterventionen eller föreläsningsinsatsen har emellertid inte satts i relation till en icke-insats (placebo eller väntelista) eller någon annan insats som kan antas vara standardbehandling, och därför går det för närvarade inte att uttala sig om insatsens effektivitet.

Resultatet från översikten ska inte tolkas som att det inte finns några insatser som är verksamma och som kan ge stöd till barn och unga som lever i familjer med missbruksproblem eller med förälder som har en psykisk funktionsnedsättning. Problemet är att det i dagsläget inte går att värdera om de insatser som förekommer har en positiv effekt. Därför behövs både svenska utvärderingar och lokala uppföljningar av de befintliga insatserna genomföras.

Insatser år 2010 för vuxna personer med missbruks- och beroendeproblem och för övriga vuxna

Socialstyrelsen (2011)

I denna rapport redovisas statistik över socialtjänstens insatser för vuxna med missbruks- och beroendeproblem samt övriga vuxna år 2010. Statistiken är en del av Sveriges officiella statistik (SOS). Den innehåller uppgifter om de insatser som är individuellt behovsprövade och som beslutats enligt socialtjänstlagen (2001:453), i fortsättningen förkortad SoL, eller lagen om vård av missbrukare i vissa fall (1988:870), i fortsättningen förkortad LVM. De insatser socialtjänsten ger utan biståndsbeslut ingår inte.

Vuxna med missbruks- och beroendeproblem

Som vuxna räknas i denna statistik huvudsakligen personer som är 21 år eller äldre. I statistiken redovisas de personer som den 1 november eller någon gång under år 2010 hade något beslut om insatser enligt SoL och LVM på grund av problem med sitt missbruk av alkohol, narkotika, läkemedel eller lösningsmedel.

Av de vuxna personer med missbruks- och beroendeproblem som hade pågående insatser den 1 november 2010 hade knappt 6 200 personer bistånd som avser boende (samma nivå som 2009) och cirka 11 700 personer individuellt behovsprövade öppna insatser (även det på ungefär samma nivå som år 2009).
Knappt 2 900 personer hade insatser inom heldygnsvård den 1 november 2010, vilket var en ökning med 8 procent jämfört med antalet den 1 november 2009. Av dessa personer vårdades 90 procent på frivillig grund.
Antalet personer med frivillig institutionsvård (enligt SoL) den 1 november 2010 var 8 procent fler i jämförelse med föregående år, medan antalet som har vårdats i familjehem (enligt SoL och LVM) minskade med 2 procent.
Antalet tvångsvårdade personer på institution (enligt LVM) den 1 november 2010 uppgick till 285, vilket innebär att antalet tvångsvårdade har ökat med 18 procent jämfört med året innan.
Ungefär 23 procent av de vuxna med missbruks- och beroendeproblem som mottog bistånd som avser boende den 1 november 2010 var kvinnor. Inom de individuellt behovsprövade öppna insatserna var andelen kvinnor drygt 30 procent och inom heldygnsvården drygt 25 procent. Andelen kvinnor som tvångsvårdades enligt LVM den 1 november 2010 var 36 procent.

Övriga vuxna

Gruppen övriga vuxna definierar Socialstyrelsen som personer 21 år eller äldre med problem som inte är relaterade till eget missbruk av alkohol, narkotika, läkemedel, lösningsmedel eller kombinationer av dessa. I denna statistik redovisas till exempel de insatser som ges enligt SoL på grund av spelmissbruk, hemlöshet, behov av stöd i föräldrarollen samt på grund av en anhörigs missbruk och insatser riktade till att hjälpa våldsoffer.

Den 1 november 2010 fick drygt 9 200 personer av kategorin övriga vuxna bistånd som avsåg boende, vilket är cirka 5 procent fler än 1 november 2009.
Cirka 6 900 personer fick individuellt behovsprövade öppna insatser den 1 november 2010, vilket innebär en ökning med 2 procent i jämförelse med 1 november 2009.
Antalet som vistades frivilligt på någon institution den 1 november 2010 uppgick till 330 personer. Antalet har inte förändrats sedan 2009.
81 personer hade beslut om familjehemsvård den 1 november 2010, även det på samma nivå som 2009.

Förskola i brytningstid

Skolverket (2004)

Skolverket presenterar den första nationella utvärderingen av förskolan efter reformen 1998 då förskolan fick en läroplan och blev det första steget i det samlade utbildningssystemet för barn och ungdom. Utvärderingens övergripande syfte är att belysa hur förskolan utvecklats i olika avseenden efter reformen samt att ge en lägesbeskrivning av reformens effekter. Utvärderingen visar på att förskolans utveckling innehåller både positiva och problematiska inslag. Förskolans läroplan har tagits emot positivt i kommuner och förskolor, men har man lyckats uppnå det som var en av de viktigaste målen med reformen "en likvärdig förskola"?Förskolan har dessutom i en rad avseenden närmat sig skolan, i vissa fall på bekostnad av sin särart. Barns prestationer kartläggs och bedöms i ökad omfattning, vilket strider mot grundtankarna i reformen.

Föräldrastöd i Sverige 2002

Statens folkhälsoinstitut (2003)

Internet kan ge bra stöd i föräldrarollen visar ny studie från Statens folkhälsoinstitut. Delrapport från uppdraget om föräldrastöd. Under utredningstiden har flera delrapporter tagits fram. Delrapporterna är "Föräldrastöd i Sverige år 2002", "Verklig gemenskap i en virtuell värld?", "Stöd till föräldrar för att främja barns och ungdomars psykiska hälsa" och slutrapporten "Nya verktyg för föräldrar".

Gabriellas resa: I skuggan gömmer sig solkatterna

Elisabeth Hagborg, Tove Hennix (2009)

I Gabriellas liv finns mycket mörker. Det finns händelser som kastar skuggor ... där mardrömmar kan gömma sig och minne kan lura.Men i det mörka finns också små stänk av ljus. Gabriella behöver hjälp att låta ljuset växa. Hjälp att resa tillbaka in i skuggan, städa ur och låta solkatterna dansa.
I den här boken har Elisabeth Hagborg samlat många års yrkeserfarenhet av vad det kan innebära att växa upp i ett dysfunktionellt hem och tillsammans med illustratören Tove Hennix skapat en bok om Gabriella.

GAKK – grafisk AKK

Ida Andersson (2007)

Om saker, bilder och symboler som alternativ och kompletterande kommunikation.

Galenskap och återhämtning – vägar till ett nytt liv för psykiskt sjuka människor

Neugeboren, Jay (2001)

Natur och Kultur. 2001.Inbunden med skyddsomslag, 410 sidor, 23,5x15,5cm. 700 gram. Nära nyskick, anteckningar på pärmens insida.Jay och Robert Neugeboren växte upp i en judisk familj i New York under komplicerade och kaotiska emotionella förhållanden. Jay blev framgångsrik skönlitterär författare - Robert drabbades av svår psykisk sjukdom och skulle komma att åka in och ut på mentalsjukhus i fyra decennier. Han skulle underkastas alla tänkbara slags behandlingar - många med svåra biverkningar - men utan att få någon verklig hjälp. Galenskap och återhämtning är Jays bok om den fyra år yngre brodern och den psykiatriska vårdapparatens fullständiga misslyckanden att ge denne en anständig vård. Men det är framför allt en bok om hopp. Neugeborens budskap är att även svåra psykiska sjukdomar som schizofreni i hög grad är behandlingsbara. De kanske inte går att bota helt med det finns hjälp för dessa människor och hopp om återhämtning. Detta kan ske med hjälp av bra medicinsk behandling, adekvat psykoterapi men framför allt genom ett personlig engagemang hos personerna i den sjukes omgivning. Neugeboren berättar också om många spännande och dramatiska möten med andra människor som lärt sig att leva fullvärdiga liv trots svår psykisk sjukdom

Gemensam planering – på den enskildes villkor

Stenhammar, Ann-Marie & Flyckt, Karin (2007)

Socialstyrelsen har på regeringens uppdrag tillsammans med Skolverket och Specialpedagogiska institutet analyserat förutsättningarna för att samordna de individuella planer som ett barn, en ungdom och en vuxen person med funktionshinder kan ha. Med funktionshinder menas det komplexa sambandet mellan förekomst av en sjukdom, skada eller liknande och begränsad aktivitet och delaktighet. Särskild uppmärksamhet har ägnats åt vad som behöver förändras i regelverken.

Den huvudsakliga frågeställningen har varit vad som hindrar och stödjer gemensam individuell planering i regelverk, hos organisationer och hos aktörer (det senare avser personalen som är anställd i de berörda verksamheterna). Ytterligare en frågeställning har varit om gemensam planering kan innebära några negativa konsekvenser för den enskilde.

Förutsättningarna för samordnad och gemensam planering har analyserats på tre nivåer: individnivå, organisationsnivå och nationell nivå. Kunskapen om de två förstnämnda nivåerna bygger på skriftlig och muntlig information från brukarföreträdare, personal, verksamhetsansvariga och myndighetsföreträdare i Sverige och i Norge. På den tredje nivån, som berör rapportens huvudresultat, har kunskap inhämtats genom granskning av de bestämmelser om individuella planer som finns i lagar, förordningar eller i för sammanhanget relevanta förarbeten och myndighetsföreskrifter. Ett antal analysfaktorer har använts som stöd för granskningen. De lagstiftningsområden som valts ut för granskning är socialtjänst, hälso- och sjukvård och skollagsreglerade verksamheter samt integration, socialförsäkring och arbetsmarknad. Förutsättningarna för gemensam planering har analyserats utifrån sambandet mellan de tre nivåerna. Rapportens bilaga visar en översikt av bristande överensstämmelser mellan de berörda regelverken.

Gender differences when parenting children with autism spectrum disorders: A multilevel modeling approach

Jones L, Totsika V, Hastings RP, Petalas MA. (2013)

Parenting a child with autism may differentially affect mothers and fathers. Existing studies of mother–father differences often ignore the interdependence of data within families. We investigated gender differences within-families using multilevel linear modeling. Mothers and fathers of children with autism (161 couples) reported on their own well-being, and their child's functioning. Mothers reported higher levels of distress compared with fathers, and child behavior problems predicted psychological distress for both mothers and fathers. We found little evidence of child functioning variables affecting mothers and fathers differently. Gender differences in the impact of child autism on parents appear to be robust. More family systems research is required to fully understand these gender differences and the implications for family support. (PsycINFO Database Record (c) 2013 APA, all rights reserved)(journal abstract)

Gender perspective on informal care for elderly people one year after acute stroke

Gosman-Hedström, G. and L. Claesson (2005)

BACKGROUND AND AIMS: The aim of the one-year follow-up was to evaluate formal care and the situation of informal caregivers from a gender perspective. METHODS: The present study targeted elderly persons (n = 147) living in their own homes 12 months after acute stroke, 94 women and 53 men. The median age of the women was 81 years and the men 80 years. RESULTS: A statistically significant gender difference was seen in living conditions. Eighty percent of the women were living alone compared with 28% of the men (CI 48-56%). The informal care given far exceeded that provided by the community: 65% of these elderly people had some kind of informal care and 44% received formal care from the community. There was a gender difference in daily informal personal care, 24% of men and 16% of women (CI 2-18%), and in daily informal household assistance (CI 15-43%). Formal care was provided by the community significantly more frequently to women (56%) than men (23%) (CI 21-45%). The women more frequently had community-based help with house-cleaning (CI 23-39%) and they also more frequently received help with personal care (CI 1-10%). CONCLUSIONS: This study showed statistically significant gender differences in the use of informal and formal care. Elderly caregivers' situations must be given greater attention, since informal care to stroke survivors represents a far greater burden than the care that is provided by the community. Most of the caregivers were elderly women, and preventive intervention measures should be developed in order to enable them to manage their everyday lives.

Integrated programs for mothers with substance abuse issues and their children: A systematic review of studies reporting on child outcomes

Niccols A, Milligan K, Smith A, Sword W, Thabane L, Henderson J. (2012)

BACKGROUND:
Integrated treatment programs (those that include on-site pregnancy-, parenting-, or child-related services with addiction services) were developed to break the intergenerational cycle of addiction, potential child maltreatment, and poor outcomes for children.
OBJECTIVES:
To examine the impact and effects of integrated programs for women with substance abuse issues and their children, we performed a systematic review of studies published from 1990 to 2011.
METHODS:
Literature search strategies included online bibliographic database searches, checking printed sources, and requests to researchers. Studies were included if all participants were mothers with substance abuse problems at baseline; the treatment program included at least 1 specific substance use treatment and at least 1 parenting or child treatment service; the study design was randomized, quasi-experimental, or cohort; and there were quantitative data on child outcomes. We summarized data on child development, growth, and emotional and behavioral outcomes.
RESULTS:
Thirteen studies (2 randomized trials, 3 quasi-experimental studies, 8 cohort studies; N=775 children) were included in the review. Most studies using pre-post design indicated improvements in child development (with small to large effects, ds=0.007-1.132) and emotional and behavioral functioning (with most available effect sizes being large, ds=0.652-1.132). Comparison group studies revealed higher scores for infants of women in integrated programs than those not in treatment, with regard to development and most growth parameters (length, weight, and head circumference; with all available effect sizes being large, ds=1.16-2.48). In studies comparing integrated to non-integrated programs, most improvements in emotional and behavioral functioning favored integrated programs and, where available, most effect sizes indicated that this advantage was small (ds=0.22-0.45).
CONCLUSIONS:
Available evidence supports integrated programs, as findings suggest that they are associated with improvements in child development, growth, and emotional and behavioral functioning. More research is required comparing integrated to non-integrated programs. This review highlights the need for improved methodology, study quality, and reporting to improve our understanding of how best to meet the needs of children of women with substance abuse issues.

Integrated programs for mothers with substance abuse issues and their children: A systematic review of studies reporting on child outcomes.

Niccols A, Milligan K, Smith A, Sword W, Thabane L, Henderson J. (2012)

BACKGROUND:
Integrated treatment programs (those that include on-site pregnancy-, parenting-, or child-related services with addiction services) were developed to break the intergenerational cycle of addiction, potential child maltreatment, and poor outcomes for children.
OBJECTIVES:
To examine the impact and effects of integrated programs for women with substance abuse issues and their children, we performed a systematic review of studies published from 1990 to 2011.
METHODS:
Literature search strategies included online bibliographic database searches, checking printed sources, and requests to researchers. Studies were included if all participants were mothers with substance abuse problems at baseline; the treatment program included at least 1 specific substance use treatment and at least 1 parenting or child treatment service; the study design was randomized, quasi-experimental, or cohort; and there were quantitative data on child outcomes. We summarized data on child development, growth, and emotional and behavioral outcomes.
RESULTS:
Thirteen studies (2 randomized trials, 3 quasi-experimental studies, 8 cohort studies; N=775 children) were included in the review. Most studies using pre-post design indicated improvements in child development (with small to large effects, ds=0.007-1.132) and emotional and behavioral functioning (with most available effect sizes being large, ds=0.652-1.132). Comparison group studies revealed higher scores for infants of women in integrated programs than those not in treatment, with regard to development and most growth parameters (length, weight, and head circumference; with all available effect sizes being large, ds=1.16-2.48). In studies comparing integrated to non-integrated programs, most improvements in emotional and behavioral functioning favored integrated programs and, where available, most effect sizes indicated that this advantage was small (ds=0.22-0.45).
CONCLUSIONS:
Available evidence supports integrated programs, as findings suggest that they are associated with improvements in child development, growth, and emotional and behavioral functioning. More research is required comparing integrated to non-integrated programs. This review highlights the need for improved methodology, study quality, and reporting to improve our understanding of how best to meet the needs of children of women with substance abuse issues.

Integrating Family Caregivers into Palliative Oncology Care Using the Self- and Family Management Approach

Schulman-Green D., Feder S. (2018)

Integrating Family Caregivers into Palliative Oncology Care Using the Self- and
Family Management Approach. Schulman-Green D, Feder S.
OBJECTIVE: To describe the integration of family caregivers into palliative
oncology care using the Self- and Family Management Framework.
DATA SOURCES: Peer-reviewed journal articles.
CONCLUSION: The role of family caregivers in palliative oncology includes
focusing on illness needs, activating resources, and living with cancer. Several
factors may serve as facilitators of or barriers to these activities. A growing
number of interventions support family caregivers' involvement in palliative
oncology care.
IMPLICATIONS FOR NURSING PRACTICE: Nurses should identify who the family
caregiver is, confirm ability and willingness, discuss patients' and family
caregivers' goals for cancer care, activate resources, and promote ongoing
communication to support changing needs.

Intensification of the transition between inpatient neurological rehabilitation and home care of stroke patients. Controlled clinical trial with follow-up assessment six months after discharge.

Gräsel E, Biehler J, Schmidt R, Schupp W. (2005)

OBJECTIVE:
An intensified transition concept between neurological inpatient rehabilitation and home care was investigated for effects on the functional status of stroke patients and the physical and emotional health of their carers.
DESIGN:
Controlled clinical trial allocating patients to intervention group (intensified transition on ward II) or control group (standard transition on ward I); patients were allocated to whichever ward had a vacancy. Follow-up assessment was carried out six months after discharge.
SUBJECTS:
Seventy-one patients and their family carers were included, of which nine cases dropped out. Therefore 62 stroke patients with persisting disability and their family carers were available for assessment at follow-up--33 patients in the intervention group, 29 patients in the control group.
INTERVENTION:
The intensified transition concept consisted of therapeutic weekend care, bedside teaching and structured information for relatives during the second phase of the rehabilitation.
MAIN MEASURES:
Patients were assessed with the Barthel Index, Functional Independence Measure, Ashworth Spastic Scale, Frenchay Arm Test, and Timed Up and Go Test. The carers completed SF-36, and were assessed using the Giessen Symptom List, Depression Scale and Burden Scale for Family Caregivers.
RESULTS:
The intensified transition did not lead to significant change in the functional status of the patients or in the physical and emotional health of the family carers. Within the first four weeks after discharge, the patients in the intervention group had fewer new illnesses. In the observation period the use of outpatient care services was more frequent in the intervention group than in the control group.
CONCLUSION:
Even though there are few differences of moderate intensity between the two groups the intensified transition programme does not affect either the functional status of the stroke patients or the health of the carers.

Intensivvårdsdagbok i Sverige: betydelse och tillämpning

Johansson Maria (2019)

Avhandling

Syfte
Avhandlingens övergripande syfte är att undersöka hur intensivvårdsdagboken upplevs av närstående och vårdpersonal inom intensivvård samt att bidra till utvecklingen av nationella riktlinjer avseende dagbokens utformning, innehåll och tillämpning.
Delsyften
I Att undersöka hur närstående upplever en intensivvårdsdagbok, när en
sjuk familjemedlem vårdas på IVA.
II Att undersöka hur närstående upplever en intensivvårdsdagbok, när den
sjuke familjemedlemmen inte överlever vistelsen på IVA.
III Att undersöka hur vårdpersonalen upplever användandet av
intensivvårdsdagbok.
IV Att undersöka tillämpningen av intensivvårdsdagbok på olika
intensivvårdsavdelningar i Sverige samt bidra till riktlinjer när det gäller
dagbokens utformning, innehåll och användning.

Abstract [en]
Aim: The overall aim of the thesis was to explore how the Intensive Care Unit (ICU) diary was experienced by family members, family members of non-survivors and nursing staff in the ICU setting, thereby contributing to the development of national clinical practice guidelines regarding the structure, content and use of the ICU diary.
Methods: A qualitative design was employed for all four studies: a hermeneutic approach was adopted in studies I and II, whilst a qualitative descriptive design with the use of focus groups interviews was chosen in study III. An Instrumental Multiple Case Study design was carried out in study IV.
Main Findings: The diary symbolised the maintenance of relationships with the patients and was a substitute for the usual opportunities for communication. The diary was instrumental in meeting the needs of the majority of participant family members. The diary provided the means to be present at the patient's bedside, to feel involved in caregiving, to maintain hope and to relay relevant information. If the critically ill family member did not survive the stay in the ICU, the diary acted as a form of bereavement support by processing the death of the patient. Nevertheless, some family members found the diary too public an arena to write in as the diary entries indicated visiting patterns which in turn provoke feelings of guilt when the visits were infrequent. Further, not knowing what to write was another source of pressure.
Nursing staff experienced that writing diaries often felt meaningful and led to an increased motivation and engagement in patient care and family support. They expressed that they felt they did something good for the patient and family members. Thus, the diary can be seen as a way to promote person-centred care, where family members were offered to participate in the care. However, in the absence of guidelines or clear guidelines about the use of an ICU diary, then not many patients actually received a diary.
Conclusions: Practice guidelines concerning ICU diaries would help to ensure the more widespread and consistent use of diaries for all ICU patients. As family members may benefit from the diary, even if the patient may not always be able to do so. The ICU diary can be seen as a tool to help promote person-centred care by directly involving family members and providing a human touch, thus helping to counterbalance the highly technical physical environment of ICU.

Intentional communication acts expressed by children with severe disabilities in high-rate contexts

Bruce, S. M., & Vargas, C. (2007)

The purpose of this study was to identify the rates of communication expressed by 17 children with severe disabilities in high-rate school contexts while piloting a new coding system for intentional communication acts (ICAs). The following nine characteristics were used when coding ICAs expressed in both child initiated and adult initiated communicative interactions: joint attention, form of communication, use of pause, persistence, repetition, repair, expression of pleasure or displeasure when understood or misunderstood, expression of pleasure or displeasure to communication partner's message, and evidence of comprehension. Children communicated 1.7 – 8.0 ICAs per minute in the highest rate contexts. Nine of the 34 high-rate contexts were speech clinical sessions, six were activities that included eating, 30 were familiar activities, and four were novel activities.

Interaction between the teacher and the congenitally deafblind child

Vervloed MPJ, Van Dijk RJM, Knoors H, Van Dijk JPM. (2006)

EMPIRICAL DATA on the development of interaction, communication, and language in deafblind children is very rare. To fill this gap, a case study was conducted in which the interaction between a teacher and a deafblind boy age 3 years 4 months was analyzed. Sequential analysis of their interaction confirmed some general clinical impressions about interaction with deafblind children, and provided the basis for suggestions on how the interaction pattern might be changed.

Interaction, inclusion and students with profound and multiple disabilities: Towards an agenda for research and practice

Arthur-Kelly M, Foreman P, Bennett D, Pascoe S. (2008)

The needs of students with profound and multiple disabilities (PMD) have received more attention in the educational research and best practice literature over the past decade, especially in relation to the importance of maximising their social and communicative engagement. However, perhaps as a function of their low incidence rate and resultant difficulties in obtaining research funding, there appears to be little in the way of a coherent vision for research in the international literature. In this paper we argue the need for a systematic programme of research into the nature of learning processes and outcomes for members of this group. Several issues emerge from a review of selected literature and from some recent observational data and descriptive case studies collected in special and inclusive classrooms. First, there is the importance of identifying ways of better understanding the complex experiences of members of this population, with particular attention to the ongoing contribution of behaviour state assessment as a means of measuring individual alertness and responsiveness. We argue that improved uptake of this approach will do much to advance our knowledge of life quality for this population and assist in more fully evaluating the effectiveness of educational interventions. Second, we explore the potential of social and communicative engagement in a variety of settings as a means of enhancing learning and participation in this group. We suggest that interpersonal variables are the key to improvements in educational support for this vulnerable group. Potential directions in research and practice are explored. © 2008 The Authors.

Intergenerational transmission of dating aggression as a function of witnessing only same sex parents vs. opposite sex parents vs. both parents as perpetrators of domestic violence

Jankowski M. K., Leitenberg, H., Henning, K., & Coffey, P. (1999)

The present study examined the association between witnessing interparental violence as a child, and the risk for perpetrating and being the victim of dating aggression as an adult, in an undergraduate sample. Specifically, this study tested a modeling hypothesis whereby witnessing a same sex parent vs. an opposite sex parent exclusively in the aggressor role would be more highly associated with risk for perpetrating dating aggression. Similarly, observing a same sex parent vs. an opposite sex parent as exclusively a victim of marital aggression would be associated with risk for being a victim of dating aggression. A same sex modeling effect was found for perpetration of dating aggression. Respondents who witnessed only their same sex parent perpetrate physical marital aggression were at increased risk for perpetrating physical dating aggression, whereas respondents who witnessed only their opposite sex parent perpetrate were not. A same sex modeling effect, however, was not found for being a victim of dating aggression. Rather, risk for victimization by dating aggression was associated only with witnessing bidirectional marital violence. Implications of these results, limitations of the present study, and ideas for future research are discussed.

International Classification of Functioning, Disability and Health

WHO (2001)

The International Classification of Functioning, Disability and Health, known more commonly as ICF, is a classification of health and health-related domains. As the functioning and disability of an individual occurs in a context, ICF also includes a list of environmental factors.

ICF is the WHO framework for measuring health and disability at both individual and population levels. ICF was officially endorsed by all 191 WHO Member States in the Fifty-fourth World Health Assembly on 22 May 2001(resolution WHA 54.21) as the international standard to describe and measure health and disability.

Since 2001, ICF has been demonstrating a broader, more modern view of the concepts of "health" and "disability" through the acknowledgement that every human being may experience some degree of disability in their life through a change in health or in environment. Disability is a universal human experience, sometimes permanent, sometimes transient. It is not something restricted to a small part of the population.

ICF focuses on impact. This creates a foundation and a common framework allowing all conditions to be compared using a common metric - the impact on the functioning of the individual.

Furthermore, ICF looks beyond the idea of a purely medical or biological conceptualization of dysfunction, taking into account the other critical aspects of disability. This allows for the impact of the environment and other contextual factors on the functioning of an individual or a population to be considered, analyzed, and recorded.

Internet-based support for rural caregivers of persons with stroke shows promise.

Pierce LL, Steiner V, Govoni AL, Hicks B, Cervantez Thompson TL, Friedemann ML. (2004)

The purpose of this pilot study was to test the feasibility of providing Internet-based education and support intervention to caregivers living in rural settings, including caregivers' satisfaction with the intervention. A secondary aim was to explore their experience of caring. Nine adult caregivers of persons with stroke were enrolled in this descriptive study from rehabilitation centers in northwestern Ohio and southeastern Michigan. They were given access to the intervention, Caring∼Webe©, for three months. Data were collected from participants' bimonthly interviews, as well as e-mail communications. Procedures were tested and found valid, and caregivers were willing and able to use Caring∼Web. Using Friedemann's framework of systemic organization, a coding system was developed for analyzing the qualitative data on the experience of caring. Five main themes emerged from these data. These findings help expand knowledge about caregivers dealing with stroke.

Interpreting the communication of people with profound and multiple learning difficulties

Porter J, Ouvry C, Morgan M, Downs C. (2001)

The present paper highlights some of the issues involved in interpreting the communication behaviours of people with profound and multiple learning difficulties (PMLDs). Both inference and intention can play an important role in the communication process, and this raises a number of difficulties and dangers where one of the communication partners is not in a position to correct misunderstandings. The present authors discuss the importance of validating communication and pose a number of key questions to ask those who are most significant in the life of a person with PMLDs. A case study is provided that illustrates a number of these issues. (PsycINFO Database Record (c) 2012 APA, all rights reserved)(journal abstract)

Inter-rater Reliability of Activity Limitations by ICF Codes and Qualifiers: ICF Codes Corresponding to FIM

Asakawa Y, Sato Y, Usuda S. (2010)

[Purpose] This study aimed to evaluate the inter-rater reliability of the evaluation scores of activity limitation in the International Classification of Functioning, Disability and Health (ICF) using the "Criteria for Activities and Participations" proposal. [Subjects] The subjects were 10 patients with cerebrovascular disorders living in a support center for people with disabilities. [Methods] Two physical therapists (PT) classified each evaluation item of the Functional Independence Measure (FIM) into corresponding ICF activity codes. Then, a full-time nurse and a part-time PT scored the activity limitations of each subject and calculated the weighted κ of each evaluated item using a flowchart-type questionnaire for the FIM and the scoring criteria shown in the proposal, "Criteria for Activities and Participations" in ICF. [Results] The range of the weighted κ of each item in FIM was 0.44-1.00, and that of ICF was 0.50-1.00. Our results demonstrate high inter-rater reliability for more than 70% of items scored by both evaluations. [Conclusion] The results of the present study suggest that the ICF scores of activity limitations are sufficiently applicable to clinical practice using the proposal, "Criteria for Activities and Participations".

Intersectional perspectives on family involvement in nursing home care: rethinking relatives' position as a betweenship

Holmgren J, Emami A, Eriksson LE, Eriksson H. (2014)

This study seeks to understand, in the context of intersectional theory, the
roles of family members in nursing home care. The unique social locus at which
each person sits is the result of the intersection of gender, status, ethnicity
and class; it is situational, shifting with the context of every encounter. A
content analysis of 15 qualitative interviews with relatives of nursing home
residents in Sweden was used to gain a perspective on the relationships between
relatives and residents, relatives and the nursing home as an institution, and
relatives and the nursing home staff. We sought to understand these relationships
in terms of gendered notions of the family and the residents, which are handed
down from generation to generation and thus condition who and how relatives
should be involved in care, and the ways in which relationships change as care
moves from home to nursing home. It requires knowledge and awareness that the
nursing home culture is based on intersectional power structures in order for
relatives to be involved in nursing home care in alternative and individual ways.

Intersectional perspectives on family involvement in nursing home care: rethinking relatives' position as a betweenship.

Holmgren J, Emami A, Eriksson LE, Eriksson H. (2014)

This study seeks to understand, in the context of intersectional theory, the
roles of family members in nursing home care. The unique social locus at which
each person sits is the result of the intersection of gender, status, ethnicity
and class; it is situational, shifting with the context of every encounter. A
content analysis of 15 qualitative interviews with relatives of nursing home
residents in Sweden was used to gain a perspective on the relationships between
relatives and residents, relatives and the nursing home as an institution, and
relatives and the nursing home staff. We sought to understand these relationships
in terms of gendered notions of the family and the residents, which are handed
down from generation to generation and thus condition who and how relatives
should be involved in care, and the ways in which relationships change as care
moves from home to nursing home. It requires knowledge and awareness that the
nursing home culture is based on intersectional power structures in order for
relatives to be involved in nursing home care in alternative and individual ways.

Intervening With Foster Parents to Enhance Biobehavioral Outcomes Among Infants and Toddlers

DOZIER, M., BICK, J. & BERNARD, K. (2011)

Children in foster care face a number of challenges that threaten their ability to form attachment relationships with foster parents and to regulate their behavior and biology. The authors describe the Attachment and Biobehavioral Catch-Up (ABC) intervention, an evidence-based intervention aimed at helping foster children develop trusting relationships with foster parents and develop better biological and behavioral regulation. The authors present research that led to the development of the ABC intervention, outcome research of randomized clinical trials, and a case example of a foster parent and child who participated in the ABC intervention. Finally, issues related to the broader system of care that are likely to affect children's adjustment (e.g., foster caregiver commitment and placement stability) are discussed.

Intervention outcomes among HIV-affected families over 18 months

Rotheram-Borus MJ, Rice E, Comulada WS, Best K, Elia C, Peters K, et al. (2012)

We evaluate the efficacy of a family-based intervention over time among HIV-affected families. Mothers living with HIV (MLH; n = 339) in Los Angeles and their school-aged children were randomized to either an intervention or control condition and followed for 18 months. MLH and their children in the intervention received 16 cognitive-behavioral, small-group sessions designed to help them maintain physical and mental health, parent while ill, address HIV-related stressors, and reduce HIV-transmission behaviors. At recruitment, MLH reported few problem behaviors related to physical health, mental health, or sexual or drug transmission acts. Compared to MLH in the control condition, intervention MLH were significantly more likely to monitor their own CD4 cell counts and their children were more likely to decrease alcohol and drug use. Most MLH and their children had relatively healthy family relationships. Family-based HIV interventions should be limited to MLH who are experiencing substantial problems.

Intervention outcomes among HIV-affected families over 18 months

Rotheram-Borus, M.J., Rice, E., Scott Comulada, W., Best, K., Elia, C., Peters, K., li, L., Green, S., & Valladares, E. (2012)

Abstract
We evaluate the efficacy of a family-based intervention over time among HIV-affected families. Mothers living with HIV (MLH; n = 339) in Los Angeles and their school-aged children were randomized to either an intervention or control condition and followed for 18 months. MLH and their children in the intervention received 16 cognitive-behavioral, small-group sessions designed to help them maintain physical and mental health, parent while ill, address HIV-related stressors, and reduce HIV-transmission behaviors. At recruitment, MLH reported few problem behaviors related to physical health, mental health, or sexual or drug transmission acts. Compared to MLH in the control condition, intervention MLH were significantly more likely to monitor their own CD4 cell counts and their children were more likely to decrease alcohol and drug use. Most MLH and their children had relatively healthy family relationships. Family-based HIV interventions should be limited to MLH who are experiencing substantial problems.

Intervention studies for caregivers of stroke survivors: a critical review

Visser-Meily A, van Heugten C, Post M, Schepers V, Lindeman E. (2005)

The objective of this review was to evaluate the effectiveness of different types of intervention programs for caregivers of stroke patients. A systematic search using Medline, PsychINFO, AMED and CINAHL till March 2003 was carried out and 22 studies were identified. Four types of support programs could be studied: providing specialist services, (psycho)education, counselling and social support by peers. Many different outcome domains and a variety of measures were used. Ten studies reported positive results on one or more outcome domains: reduction of depression (two studies) and burden (one), improvement of knowledge on stroke (five), satisfaction with care (one), family functioning (one), quality of life (three), problem solving skills (two), social activities (two), and social support (one). Three studies reported a negative result on caregiver outcome. We could not identify sufficient evidence to confirm the efficacy of interventions but counselling programs (3 out of 4) appear to have the most positive outcome.

Interventions aiming to improve school achievements of children in out-of-home care: a scoping review

Forsman, H. & Vinnerljung, B. (2012)

The educational underachievement of children in out-of-home care has been known for decades. In this scoping review, we compiled and analyzed – with a narrative approach – evaluated interventions that aimed to improve foster children's school achievements. Despite a comprehensive searching strategy, only eleven relevant studies were found, indicating that little has been done in intervention research to improve educational outcomes for children in public care. Nine out of the eleven interventions reported some positive results. Literacy was improved in most studies, while evaluated attempts to enhance numeracy skills yielded mixed results. Positive results came from a range of different interventions, e.g. tutoring projects and structured individualized support. We conclude that most focused interventions seem to improve foster children's poor academic achievements, but tutoring projects have so far the best empirical support from evaluations with rigorous designs. Also there's a definite need for more intervention research.

Interventions with video feedback and attachment discussions: Does type of maternal insecurity make a difference?

BAKERMANS-KRANENBURG, M. J., JUFFER, F. & VAN IJZENDOORN, M. H. (1998)

Parents' insecure representations of attachment are associated with lower parental sensitivity and insecure infant–parent attachment relationships, leading to less optimal conditions for the children's socio-emotional development. Therefore, two types of short-term intervention were implemented in a group of lower middle-class mothers with an insecure representation of attachment as assessed with the Adult Attachment Interview. In one group of mothers, the intervention efforts were directed at promoting maternal sensitivity by means of written information about sensitive parenting and personal video feedback. In the other group, additional discussions about the mothers' early attachment experiences took place, aiming at affecting the mothers' attachment representation. The interventions were implemented during four home visits between the 7th and the 10th month after the baby's birth. Preliminary results on 30 mothers pointed at an intervention effect: Mothers in both intervention groups were more sensitive at 13 months than mothers in a control group, t(28) = −2.3, effect size d = .87, p = .01. Mothers who were classified as insecure dismissing tended to profit most from video feedback, whereas mothers who were classified as insecure preoccupied tended to profit most from video feedback with additional discussions about their childhood attachment experiences, F(1,16) = 1.9, d = .65, p = .19. © 1998 Michigan Association for Infant Mental Health

Interviews with children of persons with a severe mental illness: investigating their everyday situation

Östman, M. (2008)

Research on children of persons with a severe mental illness focuses predominantly on parents' and others' perceptions. Children of mentally ill parents form a vulnerable group that has not been adequately paid attention to in psychiatric care institutions. Comparatively little is known about the children's recognition of their parents and the everyday situation of these families. The aim of the study was to investigate experiences of their life situation in children 10-18 years of age in a family with a parent with a severe mental illness. Eight children were interviewed concerning their everyday life situation. The interviews were analysed inspired from using thematic analysis. From the analysis of the material emerged aspects concerning the following themes: need for conversation, love for their family, maturity, experience of fear and blame, feelings of loneliness, responsibility and associated stigma. This study highlights the situation experienced by children of severely mentally ill persons who also are parents. The study may be found to be a basis for inspiring structured interventions and treatments programmes including children of the adult patients seeking psychiatric treatment.

Intimate partner violence and birth outcomes: A systematic review

Boy, A., & Salihu, H. M. (2004)

Abstract
OBJECTIVE:
There is a lack of comprehensive information on the relationship between domestic physical and emotional violence and pregnancy outcomes. Accordingly, we undertook this systematic review of the literature to examine the evidence on the association between physical and emotional abuse and pregnancy outcomes.
STUDY DESIGN AND METHOD:
A comprehensive literature search was carried out using pertinent key words that would retrieve any research article pertaining to the topic. This was supplemented by cross-referencing of the articles. A total of 296 articles were found; case reports and articles that failed to satisfy the study inclusion criteria were removed and 30 articles were included in the review.
RESULTS:
Overall, adverse pregnancy outcomes, including low birth weight, maternal mortality and infant mortality are significantly more likely among abused than nonabused mothers. Abused pregnant mothers present more often than nonabused mothers with kidney infections, gain less weight during pregnancy, and are more likely to undergo operative delivery. Fetal morbidity, such as low birth weight, preterm delivery, and small size for gestational age are more frequent among abused than nonabused gravidas. The risk for maternal mortality is three times as high for abused mothers. Black abused mothers are 3-4 times as likely to die as their white counterparts. Unmarried victims are also three times as likely to die as married abused mothers. Intimate partner violence is also responsible for increased fetal deaths in affected pregnancies (about 16.0 per 1000).
CONCLUSION:
Intimate partner violence is often a life-threatening event to both the mother and the fetus. This, in addition to the heightened level of feto-maternal morbidity and mortality, represents clear-cut justification for routine systematic screening for the presence of abuse during pregnancy.

Intimate Partner Violence and Children's Memory

Gustafsson, H. C., Coffman, J. L., Harris, L. S., Langley, H. A., Ornstein, P. A., & Cox, M. J. (2013)

The current study was designed to examine the relation between intimate partner violence (IPV) and children's memory and drew from a socioeconomically and racially diverse sample of children living in and around a midsized southeastern city (n = 140). Mother-reported IPV when the children were 30 months old was a significant predictor of children's short-term, working, and deliberate memory at 60 months of age, even after controlling for the children's sex and race, the families' income-to-needs ratio, the children's expressive vocabulary, and maternal harsh-intrusive parenting behaviors. These findings add to the limited extant literature that finds linkages between IPV and children's cognitive functioning and suggest that living in households in which physical violence is perpetrated among intimate partners may have a negative effect on multiple domains of children's memory development.

Intimate Partner Violence and Preschoolers’ Explicit Memory Functioning

Jouriles, E. N., Brown, A., McDonald, R., Rosenfield, D., Leahy, M., & Silver, C. (2008)

This research examines whether parents' intimate partner physical violence (IPV) relates to their preschoolers' explicit memory functioning, whether children's symptoms of hyperarousal mediate this relation, and whether mothers' positive parenting moderates this relation. Participants were 69 mothers and their 4- or 5-year-old child (34 girls). Mothers completed measures of IPV, children's hyperarousal symptoms, parent-child aggression, and positive parenting. Measures of explicit memory functioning were administered to preschoolers. As expected, IPV correlated negatively with preschoolers' performance on explicit memory tasks, even after controlling for parent-child aggression and demographic variables related to preschoolers' memory functioning. Preschoolers' hyperarousal symptoms did not mediate the relation between IPV and explicit memory functioning, but mothers' positive parenting moderated this relation. Specifically, the negative relation between IPV and preschoolers' performance on 2 of the 3 explicit memory tasks was weaker when mothers engaged in higher levels of positive parenting. These findings extend research on IPV and children's adjustment difficulties to explicit memory functioning in preschoolers and suggest that mothers can ameliorate the influence of IPV on preschoolers' memory functioning via their parenting.

Into adulthood: a follow-up study of 718 youths who were placed in out-of-home care during their teens

Vinnerljung B. & Sallnäs M. (2008)

ABSTRACT In this study, national register data were used to analyse long-term outcomes at age 25 for around 700 Swedish young people placed in out-of-home care during their teens. The sample consisted of 70% of all 13- to 16-year olds who entered out-of-home care in 1991. Results revealed a dividing line between young people placed in care for behavioural problems and those placed for other reasons. Young woman and men from the first group had – in comparison with peers who did not enter care – very high rates of premature death, serious involvement in crime, hospitalizations for mental-health problems, teenage parenthood, self-support problems and low educational attainment. Young people who were placed for other reasons had better outcomes, but still considerably worse than non-care peers. Young women tended to do better than young men, regardless of reasons for placement. Very high rates of hospitalizations for mental health problems were found among young people placed for behavioural problems. Breakdown of placement was found to be a robust indicator of poor long-term prognosis.

Into adulthood: a follow‐up study of 718 young people who were placed in out‐of‐home care during their teens - ResearchGate. Available from: http://www.researchgate.net/publication/230164185_Into_adulthood_a_followup_study_of_718_young_people_who_were_placed_in_outofhome_care_during_their_teens [accessed Aug 5, 2015].

IQ, scholastic performance and behaviour in sibs raised in contrasting environments.

Dumaret A (1985)

Medium- and long-term effects of types of placement of the offspring of lower class families have been studied. The progeny of 28 mothers was reconstituted. The subjects were divided into three groups: 35 children abandoned and adopted early in privileged environments (A), 46 'biological mother-reared' children remaining in their disadvantaged social environments (B) and 21 children raised in institutions or foster homes (C). Analyses focused on IQ, scholastic performance and behaviour. Results show that the social environment has important effects: the differences between the three groups are very significant. For A and B groups tested in the schools, comparisons were made with the classmates. For the C group the effects of long-term emotional deprivation are superimposed on the effects of the social environment.

Is disclosure therapeutic for children following exposure to traumatic violence?

Graham-Bermann, S. A., Kulkarni, M. R., & Kanukollu, S. N. (2011)

Trauma theory suggests that to recover from exposure to traumatic events, such as exposure to violence, therapeutic interventions should include opportunities to disclose and to process the fearful and stressful events. Yet little is known about the circumstances that foster disclosure of such information in therapeutic environments by children and related mental health outcomes for those children. In this study, the process of disclosure was examined among children ages 6 to 12 years (N = 121) in a community-based intervention program for children exposed to intimate partner violence (IPV). Therapists documented children's spontaneous disclosure in their group. Mothers and children completed demographic and standardized attitudinal and mental health questionnaires. Fifty-two percent of children spontaneously disclosed during therapy. Child ethnicity, harm to the child, internalizing behavioral adjustment problems, and engagement in therapy predicted disclosure. Disclosure within the group was associated with gains for individual children in internalizing behavioral adjustment problems and improvement in attitudes and beliefs concerning the acceptability of violence.

Is there intergenerational transmission of trauma? The case of combat veterans' children

Dekel, R., & Goldblatt, H (2008)

This article is a review of the literature on intergenerational transmission of posttraumatic stress disorder (PTSD) from fathers to sons in families of war veterans. The review addresses several questions: (1) Which fathers have a greater tendency to transmit their distress to their offspring? (2) What is transmitted from father to child? (3) How is the distress transmitted and through which mechanisms? And finally, (4) Which children are more vulnerable to the transmission of PTSD distress in the family? Whereas the existing literature deals mainly with fathers' PTSD as a risk for increased emotional and behavior problems among the children, this review also highlights the current paucity of knowledge regarding family members and extrafamilial systems that may contribute to intergenerational transmission of PTSD or to its moderation. Little is also known about resilience and strengths that may mitigate or prevent the risk of intergenerational transmission of trauma.

Israeli preschoolers under Scuds: a 30-month follow-up

Laor, N., Wolmer, L., Mayes, L. C., Gershon, A., Weizman, R., & Cohen, D. (1997)

OBJECTIVE:
Longitudinal studies of children exposed to traumatic events show contrasting findings regarding their symptomatic change over time. The present study reports on a 30-month follow-up of preschool children and their mothers who had been exposed to Scud missile attacks.

METHOD:
Families displaced during the Gulf War after their homes had been damaged by the missile attack and a control group whose homes remained intact were interviewed about posttraumatic and general symptomatology, the mothers' capacity to control images, and the children's adaptive behavior.

RESULTS:
Stress symptoms decreased in the displaced children but not in their mothers. Both reported more posttraumatic symptoms than did the control group. No differences in the children's adaptive behavior were observed. Posttraumatic symptoms of the displaced children correlated with the mothers' avoidant symptoms. The mothers' avoidant symptoms at follow-up were statistically explained by the mothers' symptoms during the war and their capacity for image control, the duration of displacement, and the cohesion of the family.

CONCLUSIONS:
The maternal stress-buffering capacity constitutes a central element in children's protective matrix and is crucial in minimizing long-term internal suffering of traumatized preschool children.

Issues of social support: The family and home care

Silverstone B, Horowitz A. (1987)

Stroke is one of the oldest but least understood diseases, and it is one of the major public health problems facing the elderly. Recent epidemiological investigations have found that the incidence of stroke has been underestimated by about 50%, and that the burden of disease is highest in minority populations. Recent clinical and basic neuroscience research indicates that stroke is neither unpredictable nor irreversible. Many risk factors for stroke are readily identifiable, and evidence-based treatment may be used to reduce the likelihood of stroke among those at risk. Rapid diagnosis and evaluation of stroke and transient ischemic attack and their treatment, including surgery, anticoagulation, antiplatelet and other medical therapies, reduce the chance of recurrence. More aggressive treatment of blood pressure, even among patients who are not necessarily hypertensive, may also reduce the risk of future strokes. Once ischemic stroke has occurred, emergent therapy using thrombolysis may significantly reduce disability, even among the elderly. This review presents an update on definitions of stroke and its subtypes, stroke epidemiology, and the results of recent studies of stroke prevention and acute treatment.

Gender roles and social policy in an ageing society: The case of Japan

Makita M (2010)

This article reviews the major underpinnings of the Japanese welfare state in the context of social care from a feminist perspective. In Japan, family-care responsibilities have traditionally been assigned to women; hence, care has long been a women's issue. However, as the social contract of a male breadwinner and a "professional housewife" gradually fades out, Japanese women find more opportunities to renegotiate their caring roles. Of course, this social transformation did not occur in isolation, it was influenced by patterns in economic development, state policies and mainly demographic changes. All this has stimulated new state responses in the form of social welfare expansion that arguably aim to relieve women of the burdens of family-care. The issue remains, however, as to whether Japan would be able to recognise that the main structural issues of population ageing do not originate from demographic changes, but from a strict gendered division of labour and gender inequality.

Gender symmetry, sexism, and intimate partner violence

Allen, C. T., Swan, S. C., & Raghavan, C. (2009)

This study of a predominantly Hispanic sample of 92 male and 140 female college students examines both gender symmetry in intimate partner violence (IPV) and inconsistent relationships found in previous studies between sexist attitudes and IPV. Results indicate that although comparable numbers of men and women perpetrate and are victimized in their relationships with intimate partners, the path models suggest that women's violence tends to be in reaction to male violence, whereas men tend to initiate violence and then their partners respond with violence. Benevolent sexism was shown to have a protective effect against men's violence toward partners. Findings highlight the importance of studying women's violence not only in the context of men's violence but also within a broader sociocultural context.

Gender, work, and attitudes

Kotsadam, A. (2011)

The thesis consists of four self-contained papers. Paper 3: Does informal eldercare impede women's employment? The case of European welfare states (Forthcoming in Feminist Economics) European states vary in eldercare policies and in gendered norms of family care, and this study uses these variations to gain insight into the importance of macro-level factors for the work–care relationship. Using advanced panel data methods on European Community Household Panel (ECHP) data, this study finds women's employment to be negatively associated with informal caregiving to the elderly across the European Union. The effects of informal caregiving seem to be more negative in the Southern European countries, less negative in the Nordic countries, and in between these extremes in the Central European countries included in the study. This study explains that since eldercare is a choice in countries with more formal care and less pronounced gendered care norms, the weaker impact of eldercare on women's employment in these countries has to do with the degree of degree of coercion in the caring decision. Paper 4: The employment costs of caregiving in Norway Informal eldercare is an important pillar of modern welfare states and the ongoing demographic transition increases the demand for it while social trends reduce the supply. Substantial opportunity costs of informal eldercare in terms of forgone labor opportunities have been identified, yet the effects seem to differ substantially across states and there is a controversy on the effects in the Nordic welfare states. In this study, the effects of informal care on the probability of being employed, the number of hours worked, and wages in Norway are analyzed using data from the Life cOurse, Generation, and Gender (LOGG) survey. New and previously suggested instrumental variables are used to control for the potential endogeneity existing between informal care and employment-related outcomes. In total, being an informal caregiver in Norway is found to entail substantially less costs in terms of forgone formal employment opportunities than in non-Nordic welfare states.

Gender, work, and attitudes

Kotsadam, A. (2011)

Abstract The thesis consists of four self-contained papers. Paper 1: The long term effect of own and spousal parental leave on mothers' earnings We take advantage of the introduction of a Norwegian parental leave reform in 1993 to identify the causal effect of parental leave on mothers' long-term earnings. The reform raised the total leave period by seven weeks, but reserved four weeks for the father. The reform process was fast, so all mothers were already pregnant at the time of the policy announcement. Applying a regression discontinuity design we find that women who had their last child immediately after the policy change had higher mean yearly earnings from 1995 to 2005 and long-run yearly earnings (in our last year of data in 2005) compared to women who had their last child immediately before the reform. However, the estimate is sensitive to extreme observations, to restrictions regarding eligibility, and to the exclusion of observations within a window of three days before and after the reform. Paper 2: Do laws affect attitudes? An assessment of the Norwegian prostitution law using longitudinal data (Forthcoming in International Review of Law and Economics) The question of whether laws affect attitudes has inspired scholars across many disciplines, but empirical knowledge is sparse. Using longitudinal survey data from Norway and Sweden, collected before and after the implementation of a Norwegian law criminalizing the purchase of sexual services, we assess the short-run effects on attitudes using a difference-indifferences approach. In the general population, the law did not affect moral attitudes toward prostitution. However, in the Norwegian capital, where prostitution was more visible before the reform, the law made people more negative toward buying sex. This supports the claim that proximity and visibility are important factors for the internalization of legal norms. Paper 3: Does informal eldercare impede women's employment? The case of European welfare states (Forthcoming in Feminist Economics) European states vary in eldercare policies and in gendered norms of family care, and this study uses these variations to gain insight into the importance of macro-level factors for the work–care relationship. Using advanced panel data methods on European Community Household Panel (ECHP) data, this study finds women's employment to be negatively associated with informal caregiving to the elderly across the European Union. The effects of informal caregiving seem to be more negative in the Southern European countries, less negative in the Nordic countries, and in between these extremes in the Central European countries included in the study. This study explains that since eldercare is a choice in countries with more formal care and less pronounced gendered care norms, the weaker impact of eldercare on women's employment in these countries has to do with the degree of degree of coercion in the caring decision. Paper 4: The employment costs of caregiving in Norway Informal eldercare is an important pillar of modern welfare states and the ongoing demographic transition increases the demand for it while social trends reduce the supply. Substantial opportunity costs of informal eldercare in terms of forgone labor opportunities have been identified, yet the effects seem to differ substantially across states and there is a controversy on the effects in the Nordic welfare states. In this study, the effects of informal care on the probability of being employed, the number of hours worked, and wages in Norway are analyzed using data from the Life cOurse, Generation, and Gender (LOGG) survey. New and previously suggested instrumental variables are used to control for the potential endogeneity existing between informal care and employment-related outcomes. In total, being an informal caregiver in Norway is found to entail substantially less costs in terms of forgone formal employment opportunities than in non-Nordic welfare states

Genetic and environmental influences on ADHD symptom dimensions of inattention and hyperactivity: A meta-analysis

Nikolas, M., & Burt, S. A. (2010)

Behavioral genetic investigations have consistently demonstrated large genetic influences for the core symptom dimensions of attention-deficit/hyperactivity disorder (ADHD), namely inattention (INATT) and hyperactivity (HYP). Yet little is known regarding potential similarities and differences in the type of genetic influence (i.e., additive vs. nonadditive) on INATT and HYP. As these symptom dimensions form the basis of the current Diagnostic and Statistical Manual of Mental Disorders subtype classification system, evidence of differential genetic influences would have important implications for research investigating causal mechanisms for ADHD. The current meta-analysis aimed to investigate the nature of etiological influences for INATT and HYP by comparing the type and magnitude of genetic and environmental influences each. A comprehensive literature search yielded 79 twin and adoption studies of INATT and/or HYP. Of these, 13 samples of INATT and 9 samples of HYP were retained for analysis. Results indicated that both dimensions were highly heritable (genetic factors accounted for 71% and 73% of the variance in INATT and HYP, respectively). However, the 2 dimensions were distinct as to the type of genetic influence. Dominant genetic effects were significantly larger for INATT than for HYP, whereas additive genetic effects were larger for HYP than for INATT. Estimates of unique environmental effects were small to moderate and shared environmental effects were negligible for both symptom dimensions. The pattern of results generally persisted across several moderating factors, including gender, age, informant, and measurement method. These findings highlight the need for future studies to disambiguate INATT and HYP when investigating the causal mechanisms, and particularly genetic influences, behind ADHD.

Genetic and Familial Environmental Influences on the Risk for Drug Abuse: A National Swedish Adoption Study

Kendler KS, Sundquist K, Ohlsson H, Palmér K, Maes H, Winkleby M, et al. (2012)

CONTEXT: Prior research suggests that drug abuse (DA) is strongly influenced by both genetic and familial environmental factors. No large-scale adoption study has previously attempted to verify and integrate these findings. OBJECTIVE: To determine how genetic and environmental factors contribute to the risk for DA. DESIGN: Follow-up in 9 public databases (1961-2009) of adopted children and their biological and adoptive relatives. SETTING: Sweden. PARTICIPANTS: The study included 18 115 adopted children born between 1950 and 1993; 78 079 biological parents and siblings; and 51 208 adoptive parents and siblings. MAIN OUTCOME MEASURES: Drug abuse recorded in medical, legal, or pharmacy registry records. RESULTS: Risk for DA was significantly elevated in the adopted offspring of biological parents with DA (odds ratio, 2.09; 95% CI, 1.66-2.62), in biological full and half siblings of adopted children with DA (odds ratio, 1.84; 95% CI, 1.28-2.64; and odds ratio, 1.41; 95% CI, 1.19-1.67, respectively), and in adoptive siblings of adopted children with DA (odds ratio, 1.95; 95% CI, 1.43-2.65). A genetic risk index (including biological parental or sibling history of DA, criminal activity, and psychiatric or alcohol problems) and an environmental risk index (including adoptive parental history of divorce, death, criminal activity, and alcohol problems, as well as an adoptive sibling history of DA and psychiatric or alcohol problems) both strongly predicted the risk for DA. Including both indices along with sex and age at adoption in a predictive model revealed a significant positive interaction between the genetic and environmental risk indices. CONCLUSIONS: Drug abuse is an etiologically complex syndrome strongly influenced by a diverse set of genetic risk factors reflecting a specific liability to DA, by a vulnerability to other externalizing disorders, and by a range of environmental factors reflecting marital instability, as well as psychopathology and criminal behavior in the adoptive home. Adverse environmental effects on DA are more pathogenic in individuals with high levels of genetic risk. These results should be interpreted in the context of limitations of the diagnosis of DA from registries.

Genetic and non-genetic influences on the development of co-occurring alcohol problem use and internalizing symptomatology in adolescence: a review

Saraceno L, Munafó M, Heron J, Craddock N, van den Bree MBM. (2009)

AIMS:
Alcohol problem use during adolescence has been linked to a variety of adverse consequences, including cigarette and illicit drug use, delinquency, adverse effects on pubertal brain development and increased risk of morbidity and mortality. In addition, heavy alcohol-drinking adolescents are at increased risk of comorbid psychopathology, including internalizing symptomatology (especially depression and anxiety). A range of genetic and non-genetic factors have been implicated in both alcohol problem use as well as internalizing symptomatology. However, to what extent shared risk factors contribute to their comorbidity in adolescence is poorly understood.
DESIGN:
We conducted a systematic review on Medline, PsycINFO, Embase and Web of Science to identify epidemiological and molecular genetic studies published between November 1997 and November 2007 that examined risk factors that may be shared in common between alcohol problem use and internalizing symptomatology in adolescence.
FINDINGS:
Externalizing disorders, family alcohol problems and stress, as well as the serotonin transporter (5-HTT) S-allele, the monoamine oxidase A (MAOA) low-activity alleles and the dopamine D2 receptor (DDR2) Taq A1 allele have been associated most frequently with both traits. An increasing number of papers are focusing upon the role of gene-gene (epistasis) and gene-environment interactions in the development of comorbid alcohol problem use and internalizing symptomatology.
CONCLUSIONS:
Further research in adolescents is warranted; the increasing availability of large longitudinal genetically informative studies will provide the evidence base from which effective prevention and intervention strategies for comorbid alcohol problems and internalizing symptomatology can be developed.

Genomförande av FoU-cirkel

Johansson, L. (2007)

Att hantera vardagen - en utbildning som stöd för anhörigvårdare, ÄO FoU-rapport 2007:1. L. Johansson and K. Renblad.

Getting evidence into practice: ingredients for change

Rycroft-Malone J, Harvey G, Kitson A, McCormack B, Seers K, Titchen A. (2002)

Mounting pressure is being exerted to ensure that the delivery of care is evidence-based and clinically effective. However, the challenge this presents to practitioners is complex. The authors propose that successful implementation of evidence into practice is a function of three elements: the nature of the evidence; the context in which the change is to take place; and the way the process is managed. A framework has been developed to represent these factors. For those about to embark on implementation work, this article closes by highlighting a number of key questions for consideration, stimulated by the framework.

Getting in touch' with people with severe learning disabilities

Caldwell, P. (1997)

This article explores innovative and interactive ways of working with people who have severe learning disabilities, special needs and/or challenging behaviour who, despite the efforts of those who support them, are not able to respond to attempts to interact with them. It examines the possibilities of communicating by using people's own behaviours and outlines how these methods of interaction can be developed into a 'language' which people with these disabilities recognize and find motivating. Entering into a person's world in a way that is not confusing or threatening may allow him/her to move from solitary self-stimulation to shared activity. People with these disabilities will then become aware of a world outside their own (sometimes they are aware of this but are unable to make a connection between what they perceive and themselves), and begin to understand their relationship to it. Surprise is an important element as it shifts attention from the inner space to the source of the intervention. A number of examples illustrate a range of person-centred approaches and the variety of disabilities that may be assisted.

'It has been a good growing experience for me': Growth experiences among African American youth coping with parental cancer

Kissil, K., Niño, A., Jacobs, S., Davey, M., & Tubbs, C. Y. (2010)

This qualitative focus group study describes posttraumatic growth experiences of African American adolescents currently coping with parental breast cancer. Twelve adolescents participated in three focus groups assessing their experiences with parental cancer. Spontaneous accounts of posttraumatic growth were reported by all participants. A content analysis revealed reports in four of the five domains of posttraumatic growth identified by Tedeschi and Calhoun (1996) which included: greater appreciation for life, enhanced interpersonal relationships, increased sense of personal strengths, and changed priorities. An additional domain, change in health behaviors and attitudes, also emerged. These findings add important knowledge to the developing field of research in posttraumatic growth in populations where available research is scarce, especially among adolescents and racial minorities.

Jag har en sjukdom men jag är inte sjuk - tio år senare.

Christina Renlund, Mustafa Can, Thomas Sejersen (2015)

Hur är det att var barn och ha en mamma med stark hjärna och hjärta, men muskler som är svaga? Vilka frågor och farhågor är det som dyker upp i ett barns funderingar? Och hur kan vi hjälpa och stödja ett barn att förstå? Vi får i ett kapitel i denna bok ta del av hur Liam 6 år, hans familj samt psykolog Christina Renlund finner sätt att hantera situationen. Liam berättar om sina funderingar och rädslor medan mamma Ninnie berättar om sina. Vad är kopplat till hennes sjukdom och vad tillhör det som Liam i den ålder han befinner sig i, ändå skulle fundera över. Efterhand som Liam växer och hamnar i nya situationer dyker nya utmaningar upp. Vi får bland annat ta del av hur det är när Liam ska börja skolan och Ninnie väljer att en dag komma med till skolan och berättar om sin muskelsjukdom för barnen, och hur stolt Liam är över sin mamma!
Christina Renlund lotsar oss i egenskap av psykolog, med mångårig erfarenhet av att träffa familjer i liknande situationer, genom olika utmaningar Liam och hans familj har att hantera. Samtalen och funderingarna varvas med råd och tydliggörande. Om vikten av att tidigt prata med barnen och rusta dem med kunskap och svar att använda när frågorna kommer och på det viset göra barnen tryggare.

Jag oxå! Dödsviktigt

Mia Berg, Anna Lindholm (form) (2012)

En mamma eller pappa dör och halva världen försvinner. Trots det går det att växa upp och fortsätta leva ett helt liv. Här möter du människor du känner igen som klarat det och hittat glädjen och uppfyllt drömmar.
Mediamannen Peter Settman, coachen och författaren Elizabeth Gummesson, sångaren Patrik Isaksson och musikern Marina Schiptjenko. Alla förlorade de en förälder som barn och här berättar de sina historier.
Det är rakt på sak om dödsbesked, förtvivlan och saknad. Men också fullt med hopp, livsglädje och bilder av den där särskilda sortens styrka och beslutsamhet. Den som kommer sen, när man inser att man klarar av även det som är riktigt svårt.
Dödsviktigt är till dig som förlorat din mamma eller pappa. Du ska veta att det finns fler som tänker och känner som du.
Dödsviktigt är till dig som står bredvid och inte vet vad du ska göra. Du får tips om vad du kan säga och hjälp att förstå vad döden gör med dem som blir kvar.
Dödsviktigt är också till alla er andra som någon gång sagt orden "om jag dör". Varje år förlorar över 3000 barn i Sverige en förälder och de lär sig tidigt att vi inte lever för alltid. Döden är en del av livet, allas liv. Och den blir lättare att leva med om vi gör det tillsammans. Därför är det dödsviktigt att prata om döden.

Jag vill säga något

Helena Alvesalo (2006)

Filmen vänder sig till den som vill inspireras till att använda TAKK, tecken som alternativ och kompletterande kommunikation. Vi får följa fyra barn i deras vardag. De är i olika åldrar och i olika behov av att kunna kommunicera. Gemensamt är att de och deras omgivning använder TAKK varje dag, i alla sammanhang.

Jag är med! Om personlig assistans och barns delaktighet i familjeaktiviteter.

Wilder J, Axelsson AK. (2013)

Boken handlar om att underlätta möjligheterna till delaktighet i familjens vardagsliv för barn och ungdomar som har omfattande funktionsnedsättningar. Boken bygger på erfarenheter och tankar från föräldrar till barn med personlig assistans samt deras personliga assistenter. Förhoppningen är att deras tips och idéer ska bidra till upptäckten av nya situationer och samspelsmöjligheter i vardagen som man kanske inte riktigt fått syn på än.

Boken erbjuder fördjupning om delaktighet, barns lärande och utveckling i familjen och konkreta tips om hur man kan arbeta för att underlätta barns delaktighet. Boken kan användas som en huvudbok för samtal om hur vardagslivet kan gestalta sig när barn har personlig assistans.

Boken riktar sig till föräldrar, personliga assistenter, anhöriga och personer som arbetar med barn och ungdomar som har omfattande funktionsnedsättningar. Författare är Jenny Wilder, forskare vid högskolan i Jönköping och forskare/ möjliggörare på Nationellt kompetenscentrum anhöriga (Nka), Anna Karin Axelsson, doktorand vid högskolan i Jönköping och Maggan Carlsson, handledare på Föreningen JAG.

Jag är också viktig. Att växa upp med en familjemedlem som är sjuk eller funktionshindrad

Sundsröm, Elina (2012)

- Jag skrev den här boken för att det är så viktigt för anhöriga barn att få plats, få stöd i andra och veta att de får känna alla känslor som ibland upplevs som »förbjudna« när man lever med en familjemedlem med funktionshinder eller sjukdom. Det hade jag behövt när jag var barn, hade en mamma som blivit förlamad och rullstolsburen och vi hade assistenter som gjorde det svårt att ha en privat familjesituation.

Elina Sundström är frilansjournalist och utbildar sig till vetenskapsjournalist. Hon är även utbildad ayurvedisk massageterapeut samt har skrivit Engagemangsguiden: en handbok om ideellt engagemang och volontärarbete som gavs ut av Rädda Barnens Ungdomsförbund år 2009.

Boken är för dig som arbetar inom hälso- och sjukvård, barnomsorg eller på annat sätt är i kontakt med barn och unga. Den ger dig kunskap, inspiration och verktyg för att ge unga anhöriga stöd, råd och information.

Den är också för dig som själv är ung anhörig, och innehåller särskilda reflektions- och diskussionspunkter riktade till dig.

Jag är också viktig. Om att vara ung anhörig.

Elina Sundström (2012)

Att växa upp som barn till en anhörig som är sjuk eller har ett funktionshinder innebär ofta påfrestningar som situationen i familjen för med sig. Alla familjer är olika, men för de unga anhöriga finns det ofta gemensamma erfarenheter. Dessa barn och unga kan behöva stöd och uppmärksamhet.

Unga anhöriga tar ofta på sig ett stort ansvar i sin familj. Då kan det finnas behov av bland annat praktisk hjälp i hemmet, men också av att få prata om de egna känslorna. Men ett barn med en sjuk eller funktionshindrad familjemedlem behöver inte nödvändigtvis må dåligt, och man vill ofta inte bli särbehandlad. Även om situationen i familjen kan föra med sig besvärligheter, kan den också föra samman familjen och vara en källa till styrka. I boken ser vi exempel på olika reaktioner och vägval.

Jag är också viktig innehåller intervjuer med professionella, unga anhörigas berättelser - några berättar själva, andra har blivit intervjuade - samt diskussionsunderlag och frågor för vidare reflektion. I boken finns även litteraturförslag och en organisationsförteckning.

Jag. Har. Inga. Ord. Kvar.

Anna Bergfors (2020)

Denna prosasamling föddes ur mitt behov av tröst.

Mitt behov av att sätta ord på mina känslor utifrån min vuxnes sons missbruk.

Orden tröstar mig och jag hoppas att mina ord även ska ge dig tröst.

Med dessa ord vill jag att du ska förstå att du som anhörig inte är ensam och det finns inget rätt eller fel i hur vi känner och vad vi känner.

Din anhöriges missbruk handlar inte om dig. Även om det såklart påverkar dig och det vi anhöriga måste göra för att leva ett anständigt liv är att förhålla oss till detta, att hitta strategier som funkar för oss.

Vi kommer använda olika strategier men Du har rätt att leva ditt liv som du önskar, du har rätt att inneha huvudrollen i ditt liv.

Denna prosasamling hjälper inte min son ur sitt missbruk men den hjälper mig att andas.

Julie-Om att växa upp med en förälder som inte räcker till.

Gunilla O. Wahlström (2006)

En bok som har romanens form men som bygger på verkliga händelser och ger en inblick i hur barn kan ha det idag. Julie växer upp med en psykiskt sjuk mamma.Boken bygger på autentiska händelser som några personer valt att berätta om och beskriver på ett bra sätt hur det kan vara att växa upp med en förälder som är psykiskt sjuk.

Glömskans spår - Demens från ett anhörigperspektiv

Larsson Mari (2020)

Boken handlar om min tid som demensanhörig. Den innehåller också råd och tips till anhöriga samt egna skrivna dikter. Mer information om boken finns på min bokblogg www.vingpenna.blogspot.se.

Första upplagan 2009, nytryck 2020

Good Grief: Exploring the Dimensionality of Grief Experiences and Social Work Support

Gordon, T. A. (2013)

This study explored the dimensionality of grief with a sample (n = 180) of caregivers of deceased loved ones; utilizing a positive grief scale, additional data were collected about perceptions of social worker practice behaviors in end-of-life care. Results revealed the presence of both positive and negative aspects of grief. Supportive social work practice behaviors at the end of life were present at least 52.2% of the time and specific practices were analyzed as to their association with positive or negative grief reactions. Results from this study suggest that grief is a multidimensional process and that social work practice behaviors can support positive aspects of grief with clients in all fields of practice.

Good grieving – an intervention program for grieving children

Heiney, S.P., Dunaway, N.C. & Webster, J. (1995)

Abstract
PURPOSE/OBJECTIVES:
To describe a program for grieving children including the agenda, activities, and logistics of organizing the program.
DATA SOURCES:
Clinical observations and evaluations from the program; literature review.
DATA SYNTHESIS:
A series of four seasonal programs were designed to promote a child's normal grieving process and enhance adjustment to the loss. Programs are cyclic, children are grouped by age, and activities are intended to promote expression of feelings, understanding of the loss, and good coping skills. A concurrent program for caregivers facilitates family communication and support.
CONCLUSIONS:
The program demonstrated positive behavioral changes in grieving children and provides a model for other nurses to use in organizing similar programs.
IMPLICATIONS FOR NURSING PRACTICE:
Nurses should be familiar with key elements of children's grief and incorporate this into their practice, especially when caring for terminally ill patients who have children.

Good grieving – an intervention program for grieving children

Heiney, S.P., Dunaway, N.C., & Webster, J. (1995)

Abstract
PURPOSE/OBJECTIVES:
To describe a program for grieving children including the agenda, activities, and logistics of organizing the program.
DATA SOURCES:
Clinical observations and evaluations from the program; literature review.
DATA SYNTHESIS:
A series of four seasonal programs were designed to promote a child's normal grieving process and enhance adjustment to the loss. Programs are cyclic, children are grouped by age, and activities are intended to promote expression of feelings, understanding of the loss, and good coping skills. A concurrent program for caregivers facilitates family communication and support.
CONCLUSIONS:
The program demonstrated positive behavioral changes in grieving children and provides a model for other nurses to use in organizing similar programs.
IMPLICATIONS FOR NURSING PRACTICE:
Nurses should be familiar with key elements of children's grief and incorporate this into their practice, especially when caring for terminally ill patients who have children.

Gôrbra för äldre : En film om gemenskap, tillgänglighet & välfärdsteknologi för ett gôrbra boende

Göteborgs stad (2012)

Göteborg, Norrköping och Västerås har försöksverksamhet inom Teknik för äldre II , ett regeringsuppdrag på Hjälpmedelsinstitutet. Uppdraget är att stödja utvecklingen av ny teknik och bättre boende för äldre och anhöriga. Göteborgs försöksverksamhet kallas Gôrbra för äldre och pågår 2011–2012. FoU i Väst utvärderar Gôrbra för äldre. I utvärderingen ingår en ekonomisk analys som ett bidrag till en samhällsekonomisk diskussion.

Kategorisering av barn i förskoleåldern – styrning och administrativa processer

Lutz, Kristian (2009)

The present thesis investigates, analyses and critically discusses the manner in which children with special needs are categorised in the Swedish preschool. The emergence of the category and its construction depends on a number of truths concerning children, related to historical and cultural processes in society. A main focus of the thesis is to investigate how legitimacy is established for the practice of defining deviance among preschoolers, and analyse the knowledge and rationalities that prevail in discursive practice. As part of this, the ways of defining children with special needs as a group are clarified, as well as the administrative procedures for handling their cases throughout the organisation. The study combines two strands within discourse analysis: classical discourse analysis with origins in Foucaults work and critical disourse analysis (CDA). The concept governmentality was used to make an analytical matrix, adapted to prescool practices. Data has been collected in a disadvantaged district belonging to the conurbation of a Swedish major city. Empirical material includes recording of an administrative meeting, application documents, interviews and national policy documents. The study shows that the categorisation have different effects and functions in different contexts. Implemental perspective: The practice of development evaluation of preschoolers has increased the written documentation, often based on techniques originating in compulsory school. These techniques are frequently ill adapted to the curriculum of the Swedish preschool, which emphasise the competent child and clearly encourages the child's agency in preschool activities. Evaluation techniques also play the role of an incentive driving towards increasing individualisation. Educators tend to distance themselves from generalising concepts, and often assume a relational standpoint to defining deviance in children, but adapt to techniques that require a more individually based practice, which places the problems with the child. When parents consent to submit application documents, power is transformed to a range of professional actors, and a client-expert relationship is established. Administrative perspective: On the management level, the child primarily is subject to an economical rationality, and is expected to fit into existing preschool activities. The empirical material of this thesis does not display the inclusive perspective which occupies such a prominent position in special education discussions concerning compulsory school. The administrative conversation observed in the study was characterised by a quantitative approach, concerning resources for children who are considered deviant. Discussions at the meeting did not concern any aspect of the quality of the support offered, and the relationship between children and educators was reduced to a number of resouce hours per child. Societal (professional) perspectives: In an analysis of how resources for children with special needs are allocated in the city district, results will depend on which type of knowledge and rationalities are judged to be legitimate. Children who received a diagnosis delivered by a physician, or who are in the course of being investigated at the habilitation centre, obtain the largest support measures. A pattern supported by national policy documents, who constitute a steering mechanism towards implementation in educational establishments. Development evaluations in preschool can be seen as a step in Foucaults term psycomplex , where psychology is manifested in the institutions dealing with preschool children and their activities. The close historical link between pedagogy and developmental psychology, combined with a general development in society towards giving the individual perspective a central position, may contribute to the dominance of psychiatric assesments in explaining deviance among preschoolers. - See more at: http://www.skolporten.se/forskning/avhandling/kategoriseringar-av-barn-i-forskolealdern-styrning-administrativa-processer/#sthash.qpaeHiJ3.dpuf

KBT inom barn och ungdomspsykiatrin

Öst L-G. (2010)

Kognitiv beteendeterapi (KBT) är en alltmer efterfrågad behandlingsform. Boken beskriver hur KBT kan tillämpas vid en rad olika psykiatriska diagnoser: separationsångest och paniksyndrom, generaliserat ångestsyndrom, specifi ka fobier, social fobi, tvångssyndrom, depression, beteendestörning och trotssyndrom, ADHD, ätstörningar, tics och Tourettes syndrom samt autism och självskadande beteende. Tillstånden beskrivs utifrån gällande diagnostiska kriterier, därefter visas hur KBT-modellen och beteendeanalysen kan se ut för respektive tillstånd och hur behandlingen kan läggas upp. Till de olika diagnoserna finns kliniska fallvinjetter. Boken avslutas med en översikt av det empiriska stödet för KBT vid de olika psykiska störningarna hos barn och ungdomar. Boken är avsedd som kursbok för all grundutbildning inom psykoterapi med KBT-inriktning. Den är också lämpad för professionellt verksamma behandlare.

Key worker services for disabled children: the views of parents

Greco, V., Sloper, P., Webb, R., & Beecham, J. (2007)

This study reports the findings from 68 interviews with parents of disabled children who are users of seven key worker schemes in England and Wales. The interviews which lasted for one hour each, were tape-recorded, transcribed and analysed according to both a priori and emerging themes. The findings from this study have implications for policy and practice, for example, the necessity of protected time for key workers, the necessity of conveying clear information about the key worker's role, the importance of access to training and information for the key worker, the need for key workers to be proactive, and for their involvement in care plan and review meetings.

Key worker services for disabled children: the views of staff

Greco, V., Sloper, P., Webb, R., & Beecham, J. (2006)

Service Framework. This study investigated the views of staff of key worker services concerning the organisation and management of the services. Interviews were carried out with key workers (N = 50), managers (N = 7) and members of multi-agency steering groups (N = 32) from seven key worker services in England and Wales. A response rate of 62% was obtained. Major themes emerging from the interviews were identified, a coding framework was agreed upon, and data were coded using the qualitative data analysis programme Max QDA. Results showed that although the basic aims of the services were the same, they varied widely in the key workers' understanding of their role, the amount of training and support available to key workers, management and multi-agency involvement. These factors were important in staff's views of the services and inform recommendations for models of service.

Key worker services for disabled children: what characteristics of services lead to better outcomes for children and families?

Sloper, P., Greco, V., Beecham, J., & Webb, R. (2006)

Background  Research has shown that families of disabled children who have a key worker benefit from this service and recent policy initiatives emphasize the importance of such services. However, research is lacking on which characteristics of key worker schemes for disabled children are related to better outcomes for families.

Methods  A postal questionnaire was completed by 189 parents with disabled children who were receiving a service in seven key worker schemes in England and Wales. Path analysis was used to investigate associations between characteristics of the services and outcomes for families (satisfaction with the service, impact of key worker on quality of life, parent unmet need, child unmet need).

Results  The four path models showed that key workers carrying out more aspects of the key worker role, appropriate amounts of contact with key workers, regular training, supervision and peer support for key workers, and having a dedicated service manager and a clear job description for key workers were associated with better outcomes for families. Characteristics of services had only a small impact on child unmet need, suggesting that other aspects of services were affecting child unmet need.

Conclusions  Implications for policy and practice are discussed, including the need for regular training, supervision and peer support for key workers and negotiated time and resources for them to carry out the role. These influence the extent to which key workers carry out all aspects of the key worker's role and their amount of contact with families, which in turn impact on outcomes.

Komet för föräldrar. En randomiserad effektutvärdering av ett föräldraprogram för barns beteende problem.

Kling Å, Sundell K, Melin L, Forster M. (2006)

En av de viktigaste riskfaktorerna för våldsbrottslighet är tidiga beteendeproblem. Barn som är okoncentrerade och bråkiga riskerar i högre utsträckning att misslyckas inlärningsmässigt och få kamratproblem. Det ökar i sin tur risken för mer allvarliga former av antisociala aktiviteter som alkohol- och drogmissbruk, kriminalitet samt psykisk ohälsa. Det finns alltså påtagliga fördelar med att så tidigt som möjligt försöka hjälpa barn som ofta bråkar och bryter mot normer. Föräldraträning är den bästa metoden för att minska dessa problem hos barn. Ingen annan metod har bättre forskningsstöd. I denna rapport undersöks om det i Sverige utvecklade föräldraträningsprogrammet Komet kan hjälpa föräldrar att bättre hantera beteendeproblem hos det egna barnet. Utvärderingen omfattar Komet i ordinarie verksamhet och har genomförts i form av en randomiserad kontrollerad studie med 159 föräldrar till barn i åldrarna tre till tio år som av föräldrarna bedömdes vara bråkiga och trotsiga. Familjerna lottades till ett av tre alternativ: den ordinarie versionen av Komet, en kortversion av Komet samt en grupp som fick vänta en termin på behandling (väntelista). Data samlades in före interventionernas start samt efter fyra respektive tio månader. Den sista mätningen omfattade endast familjer som fått någon av Komet-versionerna. De familjer som ej deltagit i datainsamlingen vid fyra respektive tio månader (13%) har inte tillåtits snedvrida randomiseringen. I stället har deras sista mätvärde flyttats fram och använts för bortfallet. Detta sätt att hantera bortfall är det rekommenderade. Resultaten visar att Komet ökat föräldrarnas föräldrakompetenser vid fyramånadersmätningen samt minskat barnens beteendeproblem och ökat deras sociala kompetenser. Jämfört med gruppen som befunnit sig på väntelista hade den ordinarie versionen av Komet starka effekter på föräldrakompetenser (ES =.89) och beteendeproblem (ES =.68) och medelstarka på sociala kompetenser (ES =.41). För kortversionen av Komet var motsvarande effekter svaga till medelstarka (ES =.39,.35 resp.14). Effekterna av Komet förefaller stabila eller ökande efter i genomsnitt tio månader. Efter kompensation för väntelistans resultat efter fyra månader (motsvarande resultat efter tio månader saknas) har det ordinarie Komet mycket starka effekter för föräldrakompetenser (ES = 1.05) och barns beteendeproblem (ES =.92) samt starka för sociala kompetenser (ES =.69). För kortversionen av Komet var effekterna något lägre (.61,.55 resp.38). De positiva effekterna av den ordinarie versionen av Komet är enligt två meta-analyser i nivå med eller överträffar de genomsnittliga effekterna i andra föräldraträningsprogram. Barnens minskade beteendeproblem kunde kopplas till de förändrade föräldrabeteendena; ju bättre föräldrakompetens föräldrarna visade desto färre beteendeproblem hos barnen. Sökord. Föräldraträning, bråkiga barn,

Growing up with parents who have learning difficulties

Booth, W., & Booth, T. (1998)

For this article we drew on material from a study in which we explored how people who were brought up in a family headed by a parent or parents with learning difficulties managed the transition to adulthood. Using evidence from in-depth interviews, we provided an assessment of how the now-adult children came through what would generally be seen as a risk-filled upbringing. Despite the problems they encountered in their childhood, many of which originated outside the home, most of the informants had maintained a valued relationship with their family and remained close to their mother.

Gråtens betydelse för patienter och närstående i palliativ hemsjukvård [Lic.].

Rydé, K. (2007)

AbstraktGråt är vanlig bland patienter och närstående men sällan studerat i palliativ vård. Gråten kan vara ett sätt för patienter och deras närstående att uttrycka sorg och hantera en situation fylld av stress som är orsakad av förluster, många allvarliga symtom och en nära förestående död.Studiernas övergripande syfte var att bidra till en djupare förståelse för vilken betydelse gråten har för patienter och deras närstående i palliativ hemsjukvård: Vad innebär gråten och hur påverkar den de berörda? Bandinspelade intervjuer gjordes med 14 patienter med cancersjukdom och 14 närstående i palliativ hemsjukvård. För att få en djupare förståelse genomfördes arbetet med ett hermeneutiskt metodologiskt angreppssätt enligt Gadamer.Resultatet visade att patienterna (studie I) beskrev olika dimensioner och funktioner av gråt; Intensiv och förtvivlad gråt för att ge uttryck för akuta behov: Stilla och sorgsen gråt som medvetet förlöste känslor; Tyst och tårlös gråt som en skyddande strategi. Som en tolkning av helheten sågs patienternas gråt (studie I) som ett sätt att uttrycka en inre känslomässig kraft, framkallad av olika faktorer, som orsakade förändringar i den nuvarande inre balansen. Genom att gråta öppet men också inombords skapades eller upprätthölls balansen. Studie (II) visade att de närstående upplevde att gråten var beroende av olika förutsättningar som attityder och mod, tid, trygghet, ärliga och tillitsfulla relationer. Omskakande och oroande händelser, utmattning i brist på egen tid och sympati från andra var omständigheter som utlöste gråten. De närstående försökte göra det bästa möjliga för patienten genom att anpassa eller dölja gråten, allt för att underlätta bördan och skapa en positiv motvikt till lidande och sorg. Tolkningen av helheten (studie II); närståendes gråt kunde vara ett uttryck för att dela något tillsammans för gemenskap, tröst och stöd eller att söka sig till ensamhet för enskildhet och återhämtning.Sammanfattningsvis kan gråten ses som en copingstrategi eftersom den reducerar spänningar och skapar befrielse, upprätthåller balans, ger tröst, ny energi och tillfällen för enskildhet. Det är ett sätt att uttrycka lidande men på samma gång kräver gråten energi och ger känslor av skam.En viktig del i professionens arbete bör därför vara att tillåta gråten, lyssna, vara närvarande, uppmuntra uttryck av känslor men också ge utrymme för enskildhet. Läkaren, sjuksköterskan och andra i teamet kan lindra patientens och närståendes känslor av skam och sårbarhet genom att bekräfta, legitimera olika uttryck för gråt och därmed skapa en tolerant, säker och trygg omgivning.

Guilt and shame in end-of-life care : the next-of-kin´s perspective

Werkander Harstäde, C. (2012)

Aim: The overall aim of the thesis was to explore and describe the concepts of guilt and shame and gain a greater understanding of the next-of-kin's experiences of guilt and shame in end-of-life care.
Methods: Study I was a qualitative secondary analysis of 47 interviews with next-of-kin searching for experiences of guilt and shame. In study II a semantic concept analysis of the two concepts guilt and shame was performed. In studies III and IV a hermeneutic approach inspired by Gadamer was used to analyze next-of-kin's experiences of guilt (Study III), and shame (Study IV) in end-of-life care.
Main findings: The concept of guilt focus on behaviour and the concept of shame on the influence on the self. The situation of being next-of-kin in end-of-life care involves a commitment to make the remaining time for the loved one as good as possible. When, for some reason, the commitment cannot be accomplished there is a risk that the next-of-kin experience guilt such as not having done enough, not having been together during important events, not having talked enough to each other, or not having done the right things. Aspects such as not having fulfilled a commitment, omission, and being the cause of can be present in these experiences. The guilt experience has a focus on what the next-of-kin has, or has not done. The experiences of shame are also linked to a perception that the remaining time for the loved one should be as good as possible. Shame can occur when the next-of-kin is involved and actually causes harm to the loved one as well as in situations that are beyond their control. Shame that the next-of-kin experience can also emanate from being put in situations by other people. Feelings of inferiority and powerlessness, second order shame, and family conflicts that are brought into the open are experiences of shame found in the studies as well as ignominy, humiliation, and disgrace. The shame experience has a focus on the next-of-kin's self.
Conclusion: The situation of being next-of-kin in end-of-life care is complex and demanding, something that health professionals should be aware of. Acknowledgement of experiences of guilt and shame can help the next-of-kin in their adaptation to the end-of-life situation as a whole and maybe also give useful tools to support next-of-kin during bereavement.

Guilt and shame in end-of-life care : the next-of-kin´s perspective

Werkander Harstäde, C. (2012)

Aim: The overall aim of the thesis was to explore and describe the concepts of guilt and shame and gain a greater understanding of the next-of-kin's experiences of guilt and shame in end-of-life care.

Methods: Study I was a qualitative secondary analysis of 47 interviews with next-of-kin searching for experiences of guilt and shame. In study II a semantic concept analysis of the two concepts guilt and shame was performed. In studies III and IV a hermeneutic approach inspired by Gadamer was used to analyze next-of-kin's experiences of guilt (Study III), and shame (Study IV) in end-of-life care.

Main findings: The concept of guilt focus on behaviour and the concept of shame on the influence on the self. The situation of being next-of-kin in end-of-life care involves a commitment to make the remaining time for the loved one as good as possible. When, for some reason, the commitment cannot be accomplished there is a risk that the next-of-kin experience guilt such as not having done enough, not having been together during important events, not having talked enough to each other, or not having done the right things. Aspects such as not having fulfilled a commitment, omission, and being the cause of can be present in these experiences. The guilt experience has a focus on what the next-of-kin has, or has not done. The experiences of shame are also linked to a perception that the remaining time for the loved one should be as good as possible. Shame can occur when the next-of-kin is involved and actually causes harm to the loved one as well as in situations that are beyond their control. Shame that the next-of-kin experience can also emanate from being put in situations by other people. Feelings of inferiority and powerlessness, second order shame, and family conflicts that are brought into the open are experiences of shame found in the studies as well as ignominy, humiliation, and disgrace. The shame experience has a focus on the next-of-kin's self.

Conclusion: The situation of being next-of-kin in end-of-life care is complex and demanding, something that health professionals should be aware of. Acknowledgement of experiences of guilt and shame can help the next-of-kin in their adaptation to the end-of-life situation as a whole and maybe also give useful tools to support next-of-kin during bereavement.

Guilt and shame in end-of-life-care – the next-of-kin’s perspective

Harstäde Werkander, Carina (2012)

Akademisk avhandling

Aim: The overall aim of the thesis was to explore and describe the concepts of guilt and shame and gain a greater understanding of the next-of-kin's experiences of guilt and shame in end-of-life care.

Methods: Study I was a qualitative secondary analysis of 47 interviews with next-of-kin searching for experiences of guilt and shame. In study II a semantic concept analysis of the two concepts guilt and shame was performed. In studies III and IV a hermeneutic approach inspired by Gadamer was used to analyze next-of-kin's experiences of guilt (Study III), and shame (Study IV) in end-of-life care.

Main findings: The concept of guilt focus on behaviour and the concept of shame on the influence on the self. The situation of being next-of-kin in end-of-life care involves a commitment to make the remaining time for the loved one as good as possible. When, for some reason, the commitment cannot be accomplished there is a risk that the next-of-kin experience guilt such as not having done enough, not having been together during important events, not having talked enough to each other, or not having done the right things. Aspects such as not having fulfilled a commitment, omission, and being the cause of can be present in these experiences. The guilt experience has a focus on what the next-of-kin has, or has not done. The experiences of shame are also linked to a perception that the remaining time for the loved one should be as good as possible. Shame can occur when the next-of-kin is involved and actually causes harm to the loved one as well as in situations that are beyond their control. Shame that the next-of-kin experience can also emanate from being put in situations by other people. Feelings of inferiority and powerlessness, second order shame, and family conflicts that are brought into the open are experiences of shame found in the studies as well as ignominy, humiliation, and disgrace. The shame experience has a focus on the next-of-kin's self.

Conclusion: The situation of being next-of-kin in end-of-life care is complex and demanding, something that health professionals should be aware of. Acknowledgement of experiences of guilt and shame can help the next-of-kin in their adaptation to the end-of-life situation as a whole and maybe also give useful tools to support next-of-kin during bereavement.

Haja ADHD : Om nuets förbannelse, hjärnans skärmsläckare och vikten av dagdrömmeri

Björn Roslund (2018)

Haja adhd tar med dig på en spännande och initierad djupdykning i hur det är vid adhd och inte minst varför.

Varför har personer med adhd så svårt för att njuta av framtida segrar, och hur hänger det ihop med avhopp från utbildningar och drogers lockande låga?

Är det psykedeliska drömspel som hjärnans skärmsläckare (default mode network) bjuder oss på bara ett ointressant bakgrundsbrus, eller rent av huvudpersonen i kunskapen om vad adhd egentligen är?

Hur kan jammande jazzmusiker skapa förståelse för hur grupper av hjärnregioner spelar tillsammans, men också duckar för varandra?

Hur kan adhd vara så starkt kopplat till risker, eller rent av undergångsfaktorer, men samtidigt ha psykiatrins bästa prognos?

Med energi och lätthet förmedlar psykiatern Björn Roslund avancerad kunskap som gör skillnad i hur vi ser på och kan leva med adhd. Boken är skriven för dig som själv har adhd, anhöriga och för alla nyfikna som vill lära sig mer.

Han är god som saltlakrits: om att få ett syskon med cystisk fibros

Ranung, Moa (2019)

Barn och ungdom

Lillebror har hamsterkinder och stjärnögon. Han har också en ovanlig sjukdom som heter cystisk fibros. Den syns inte på honom men han kommer alltid att ha den. Ibland pussar jag honom på pannan. Då smakar det jättemycket salt. Han är god som saltlakrits. Boken är för barn eller syskon till barn med cystisk fibros, eller andra som har ett barn med cystisk fibros i sin närhet. På ett pedagogiskt och lekfullt sätt förklaras sjukdomen genom en storebrors ögon

Handbook for the study of parental acceptance and rejection

Rohner R. (1991)

A Handbook containing description of the theoretical basis for study of parental acceptance and rejection, interpersonal relationships, and mental health outcomes related to these relationships. Measures to assess parent-child relations, intimate partner relations, behavioral control, discipline, parenting education, and other issues are included in the Fourth Edition of the Handbook.

Handbook of bereavement research: consequences, coping and care

Hansson, R.O., Stroebe, W. & Schut, H. (2001)

New research continues to challenge our assumptions about the fundamental nature and course of grief: its roots in our biology, our emotions, our cognitions, and our social interactions. The Handbook of Bereavement Research provides a broad view of diverse contemporary approaches to bereavement, examining both normal adaptation and complicated manifestations of grief.
In this volume, leading interdisciplinary scholars focus on three important themes in bereavement research: consequences, coping and care. In exploring the consequences of bereavement, authors examine developmental factors that influence grief both for the individual and the family at different phases of the life cycle. In exploring coping, they describe exciting new empirical studies about how people can and do cope with grief, without professional intervention. Until recently, intervention for the bereaved has not been scientifically guided and has become the subject of challenging differences of opinion and approach.
Chapters in the care section of the volume critically examine interventions to date and provide guidance for assessment and more empirically guided treatment strategies. The Handbook provides an up-to-date comprehensive review of scientific knowledge about bereavement in an authoritative yet accessible way that will be essential reading for researchers, practitioners, and health care professionals in the 21st century.

Hannahs mamma får en fobi

Alphonse Elisabet (2011)

text och illustrationer: Elisabet Alphonse

barn/ungdom

Boken handlar om Hannahs mamma och hur en getingfobi kan påverka en förälders vardag.

Health and Care in an Enlarged Europe.

Alber J, Köhler U. (2004)

Examining quality of life in 28 European countries, including the acceding and candidate countries as well as the current Member States of the EU, this report explores how Europeans perceive their health, to what extent they display healthy and unhealthy lifestyles, how easily they can access their national health care system and how satisfied they are with its performance.The analysis is based on data from the European Commission's Eurobarometer survey carried out in the acceding and candidate countries in Spring 2002 and standard EU 15 Eurobarometers. A summary of this report is also available

Health and wellbeing in informal caregivers and non-caregivers: a comparative cross-sectional study of the Swedish general population

Berglund E, Lytsy P, Westerling R (2015)

BACKGROUND: Informal caregiving by relatives is a great resource for individuals
as well as for society, but the caregiving role is associated with health
problems for the caregiver. This study aimed to compare caregivers' self-rated
health, number of recent days with poor health and psychological wellbeing with
that of non-caregivers in a general Swedish population.
METHODS: From 2004 to 2013, 90,845 Swedish people completed a postal
questionnaire about their health, number of recent days with poor health during
last month, psychological wellbeing and if they were performing caregiving or
not. Descriptive statistics, chi-square analysis, ANOVA, logistic regressions and
negative binomial regression models were used to investigate associations between
being a caregiver or not and health and wellbeing. Negative binomial regression
was used to assess the relation between caregiver status and recent days with
poor health or functioning.
RESULTS: Eleven percent reported having a caregiving role. Caregivers reported
poorer self-rated health compared to non-caregivers, also in adjusted models;
odds ratio (OR): 1.07 with a 95% confidence interval (CI): 1.01-1.13. Caregivers
also reported lower psychological wellbeing compared to non-caregivers; OR: 1.22,
CI: 1.15-1.30. Caregiving status was associated with more recent days with poor
physical health and more recent days with poor mental health.
CONCLUSIONS: This study suggests that caregivers have worse perceptions in
self-rated health and psychological wellbeing compared with non-caregivers,
indicating that the role of caregiver is adversely associated with health. This
association also appears in terms of reporting days of poor health in the last
month. The underlying mechanism of these associations, including the potential
detrimental health effects of being a caregiver, needs to be investigated in
longitudinal studies.

Health at a glance 2011. OECD indicators

OECD (2011)

This second edition of Government at a Glance almost doubles the number of available indicators of OECD governments' performance, to nearly 60.
The indicators compare the political and institutional frameworks of government across OECD countries as well as government revenues and expenditures, employment, and compensation.
This publication provides evidence for policy makers by measuring the performance of governments in a comparative perspective. This also allows countries to benchmark their performance against other countries.
There are also indicators describing government policies and practices on integrity, e-government and open government, and introduce several composite indexes summarising key aspects of public management practices in human resources management, budgeting, procurement, and regulatory management.

Health Behaviors Among Baby Boomer Informal Caregivers

Hoffman GJ, Lee J, Mendez-Luck CA. (2012)

Purpose of the Study: This study examines health-risk behaviors among "Baby Boomer" caregivers and non-caregivers. Design and Methods: Data from the 2009 California Health Interview Survey of the state's non-institutionalized population provided individual-level, caregiving, and health behavior characteristics for 5,688 informal caregivers and 12,941 non-caregivers. Logistic regression models were estimated separately for four individual health-risk behaviors -- smoking, sedentary behavior, and regular soda and fast-food consumption -- as well as a global health-risk measure. Results: Controlling for psychological distress and personal characteristics and social resources such as age, gender, income and education, work and marital status, and neighborhood safety, caregivers had greater odds than non-caregivers of overall negative health behavior and of smoking and regular soda and fast-food consumption. We did not observe significant differences in odds of negative behavior related to stress for spousal caregivers and caregivers in the role for longer periods of time or those providing more hours of weekly care compared with other caregivers. Implications: Our study found evidence that Baby Boomer caregivers engage in poor health behaviors that are associated with exposure to caregiving. Baby Boomer caregivers may be at risk for certain behavioral factors that are associated with disability and chronic illness.

Health care professionals' perspectives of the experiences of family caregivers during in-patient cancer care

Ekstedt M, Stenberg U, Olsson M, Ruland CM (2014)

Being a family member of a patient who is being treated in an acute care setting
for cancer often involves a number of challenges. Our study describes Norwegian
cancer care health professionals' perceptions of family members who served as
family caregivers (FCs) and their need for support during the in-hospital cancer
treatment of their ill family member. Focus group discussions were conducted with
a multidisciplinary team of 24 experienced social workers, physicians, and nurses
who were closely involved in the patients' in-hospital cancer treatment and care.
Drawing on qualitative hermeneutic analysis, four main themes describe health
professionals' perceptions of FCs during the patient's in-hospital cancer care:
an asset and additional burden, infinitely strong and struggling with
helplessness, being an outsider in the center of care, and being in different
temporalities. We conclude that it is a challenge for health care professionals
to support the family and create room for FC's needs in acute cancer care. System
changes are needed in health care, so that the patient/FC dyad is viewed as a
unit of care in a dual process of caregiving, which would enable FCs to be given
space and inclusion in care, with their own needs simultaneously considered
alongside those of the patient.

Health economic analysis on a psychosocial intervention for family caregivers of persons with dementia

Dahlrup B, Nordell E, Steen Carlsson K, Elmståhl S. (2014)

BACKGROUND/AIMS: Psychosocial intervention has shown positive effects on the
caregivers' burden and satisfaction. The aims of this study were to describe the
cost and cost-effectiveness of such an intervention.
METHODS: We analyzed resource use and costs of formal care for 308 persons with
dementia and their caregivers' health-related quality of life (HRQoL).
RESULTS: The costs of home help services were lower in the subgroup of spouse
caregivers in the intervention group and the cost of nursing home placement was
lower in the intervention group. While the person with dementia lived at home,
caregivers in the intervention group reported a higher HRQoL (p < 0.01). After
the person with dementia had moved to a nursing home, spouses in the control
group had a lower HRQoL (p < 0.001).
CONCLUSION: The result can be interpreted as a positive effect of the
intervention focusing on the identified specific needs of the family caregivers.

Health economic analysis on a psychosocial intervention for family caregivers of persons with dementia

Dahlrup B, Nordell E, Steen Carlsson K, Elmståhl S. (2014)

BACKGROUND/AIMS: Psychosocial intervention has shown positive effects on the
caregivers' burden and satisfaction. The aims of this study were to describe the
cost and cost-effectiveness of such an intervention.
METHODS: We analyzed resource use and costs of formal care for 308 persons with
dementia and their caregivers' health-related quality of life (HRQoL).
RESULTS: The costs of home help services were lower in the subgroup of spouse
caregivers in the intervention group and the cost of nursing home placement was
lower in the intervention group. While the person with dementia lived at home,
caregivers in the intervention group reported a higher HRQoL (p < 0.01). After
the person with dementia had moved to a nursing home, spouses in the control
group had a lower HRQoL (p < 0.001).
CONCLUSION: The result can be interpreted as a positive effect of the
intervention focusing on the identified specific needs of the family caregivers.

Health Education Needs of Patients with Schizophrenia and their Relatives

Gumus, Aysun Babacan (2008)

The purpose of this study was to determine the health education needs of patients with schizophrenia and their relatives. A total of 80 patients and 80 relatives were included in the study. The data were collected using Descriptive Characteristics Questionnaire and Evaluation of Health Educational Needs Form. The subjects that patients and their relatives felt they had the greatest need to learn more about were general information about schizophrenia, coping with symptoms of schizophrenia, and communication and social relationships. It was determined that the patients' health education needs were affected by their employment status, income level, and longest place of residence, and their relatives' health education needs, by their marital status, degree of family relationship, educational level, income level, whether or not they were a member of an association or group, and whether or not they had received education about schizophrenia. On the basis of the health education needs identified by the patients with schizophrenia and their relatives, a health education program should be prepared.

Health-promoting conversations about hope and suffering with couples in palliative care.

Benzein, E., & Saveman, B. (2008)

BACKGROUND:
Families living with a dying relative face existential challenges which need to be met by caregivers in a dialogue.
AIM:
To describe couples' experiences of participating in nurse-initiated health-promoting conversations about hope and suffering during home-based palliative care.
METHOD:
Data comprised semi-structured evaluative interviews with six couples. Each couple together had previously participated in three health-fostering conversations with nurses. Data were analyzed by content.
RESULT:
Talking with nurses about existential issues such as hope and suffering made couples feel that they were part of a trustful relationship, and that it was a healing experience. It gave them the opportunity to unburden themselves, as well as a way of learning and finding new strategies for managing daily life.
CONCLUSION:
Health-promoting conversations about hope and suffering should be implemented as a natural part of the caring relationship between caregivers and families in the palliative context.

Hela människan-hjulet en samtalsmodell för livskunskap & känsla av sammanhang

Hagborg, E., Jonsson, K Y., & Salmson, K. (2010)

Hela människan-hjulet är en handfast och praktiskt inriktad metodbok för alla som vill arbeta med stödgrupper för barn, unga, vuxna eller familjer. För att på ett ansvarsfullt sätt kunna arbeta med stödgrupper krävs grundläggande kunskaper inom många olika livsområden. Detta belyses i bokens teoretiska första del som handlar om genus och etik, alkohol och droger, fattigdom och folkhälsa, stödfunktioner och prevention, lek, kreativitet, livsåskådning samt känslor. På denna teoretiska kunskapsbas, tron på mänskliga rättigheter och speciellt barnkonventionen, vilar metodiken i Hela människan-hjulet. I andra delen finns instruktioner och arbetsmaterial till de gruppträffar som utgör den praktiska tillämpningen av metoden. Materialet kan även laddas ner från www.studentlitteratur.se/helamanniskanhjulet. Metoden är utarbetad och prövad i praktiska och professionella sammanhang mot bakgrund av stor teoretisk kunskap och passar yrkesverksamma inom de flesta områden inom socialt arbete eller stödjande verksamheter.

Held to ransom : parents of self-harming adults describe their lived experience of professional care and caregivers.

Lindgren B-M, Åström S, Hällgren Graneheim U. (2010)

The aim of the study was to discover and describe lived experiences of professional care and caregivers among parents of adults who self-harm. Narrative interviews were conducted with six parents of daughters with self-harming behaviours and analysed using a phenomenological hermeneutic approach. The meanings of the parents' narratives of their lived experiences of professional care and caregivers were interpreted as their being involved in 'limit situations' comparable to hostage dramas. Several meaningful themes contributed to this interpretation: being trapped in a situation with no escape; being in the prisoner's dock; groping in the dark; and finding glimmers of hope. Parents of daughters who were in care because of self-harming often felt obliged to pay an emotional ransom, which included feelings of being accused, being 'broken', being confused, and feeling lost. Moments of peace occurred as welcome breaks offering a short time of rest for the parents. Situations that were understood by the parents and solved in a peaceful way were experienced as a respite and inspired parents with hope for their daughters' recovery.

Help for bereaved children: a preventative approach

Davies, C. (1996)

This paper describes the work undertaken with children and adolescents who have lost a significant person in their lives through death. The author works with the paediatric nurse member of a palliative care team running groups for children and adolescents who have been bereaved.

The aim of the project is to invite the child/adolescent as soon as possible after bereavement to participate in groups with others who are grieving. This groups allow participants to express their feelings through art, play and discussion in a safe and confidential environment.

It is hoped by using a preventative approach such as this, that the incidence of some of the results of unresolved childhood grief, such as failed relationships, depression and ill-health in adult life can be minimised.

Helpful citizens and caring families: Patterns of informal help and caregiving in sweden in a 17-year perspective

Jegermalm, M. and E. J. Grassman (2012)

This article reports on an analysis of informal help and caregiving in Sweden with, for the first time, a focus on patterns of change over 17 years regarding scope, type of caregivers and the recipients of help. The discussion is based on results from a national survey repeated four times between 1992 and 2009. In the 1990s, the figures were stable, but from the late 1990s to 2009, there seems to have been a dramatic increase in the extent of informal help giving. Concerning types of helpers, the patterns implied involvement not only from family members, but also from other types of helpers. Two interpretative perspectives were used in the analysis: the first from recent welfare state changes and the substitution argument; the second from the present debate on civil society and its possible and changing role. These perspectives represent two partly complementary approaches to the understanding of the dynamics of informal involvement in contemporary Swedish society.

Helping your children cope with cancer. A guide for parent and families.

Van Dernoot, P. (2005)

Cancer is bad news. It' s frightening to even think about it. Now think how frightening it would be for your children to know you have cancer. How do you tell them? How do you deal with the trauma and the pain? How do you prepare for the emotional and psychological upheaval a family endures when a parent has cancer? Peter Van Dernoot has gathered the real-life stories and experiences of over twenty parents who have been diagnosed with cancer. They share their deepest fears and their highest hopes as they provide the reader with invaluable advice, guidance and inspiration. Now including all-new stories from parents and advice from professional counselors, this groundbreaking book is a very special gift from families affected by cancer to families affected by cancer

Kommunikation genom teknik–ur ett vardagsperspektiv

Rydeman, B., & Zachrisson, G. (2004)

En studie i två delar rörande målgruppen barn med grava rh – kontaktanvändare: Del 1: Inventering och beskrivning av dynamiska kommunikationsprogram och styrsätt (bl.a. MindMouse/CyberLink), del 2: Kommande interventionsstudie.

Projektet har en egen hemsida www.kommed.nu där du kan läsa mer. Där finns bl a rapporter och en mängd annan intressant information att hämta.

Projektansvariga: Gerd Zachrisson DART och Bitte Rydeman, DAKO i Halland.

Medel: 2-årigt projekt med stöd från HI - "IT i praktiken"

Kommunikation hos och med barn och ungdomar med flerfunktionsnedsättningar

Wilder, J (2014)

Nationellt kompetenscentrum anhöriga, Nka, har fått i uppdrag av Socialdepartementet
att utveckla ett nationellt kunskapsstöd till föräldrar och anhöriga till barn och ungdomar med flerfunktionsnedsättningar. Syftet med kunskapsstödet är att underlätta kunskapsinhämtning, erfarenhetsutbyte och nätverkskontakter för anhöriga

Senast uppdaterad 2021-01-25 av Peter Eriksson, ansvarig utgivare Lennart Magnusson